Read Like A Writer

There are two ways to learn how to write fiction: by reading it and by writing it. Yes, you can learn lots about writing stories in workshops, in writing classes and writing groups, at writers' conferences. You can learn technique and process by reading the dozens of books like this one on fiction writing and by reading articles in writers' magazines. But the best teachers of fiction are the great works of fiction themselves. You can learn more about the structure of a short story by reading Anton Chekhov's 'Heartache' than you can in a semester of Creative Writing 101. If you read like a writer, that is, which means you have to read everything twice, at least. When you read a story or novel the first time, just let it happen. Enjoy the journey. When you've finished, you know where the story took you, and now you can go back and reread, and this time notice how the writer reached that destination. Notice the choices he made at each chapter, each sentence, each word. (Every word is a choice.) You see now how the transitions work, how a character gets across a room. All this time you're learning. You loved the central character in the story, and now you can see how the writer presented the character and rendered her worthy of your love and attention. The first reading is creative—you collaborate with the writer in making the story. The second reading is critical.


John Dufresne, from his book, The Lie That Tells A Truth: A Guide to Writing Fiction

Header

Liquid Story Binder XE by Black Obelisk Software

Disable Copy Paste

Amazon Quick Linker

Saturday, November 28, 2015

The Romance of Lust (1873) A Classic Victorian Erotic Novel by Anonymous 1892 Edition

VOLUME I.

CONTENTS

The Novice--Mrs. Benson--Mary--Mrs. Benson's Correspondence with Mrs.
Egerton--Miss Evelyn--Eliza

There were three of us--Mary, Eliza, and myself. I was approaching
fifteen, Mary was about a year younger, and Eliza between twelve and
thirteen years of age. Mamma treated us all as children, and was blind
to the fact that I was no longer what I had been. Although not tall for
my age, nor outwardly presenting a manly appearance, my passions were
awakening, and the distinctive feature of my sex, although in repose it
looked magnificent enough, was very sufficiently developed when under
the influence of feminine excitement.

As yet, I had absolutely no knowledge of the uses of the different
organs of sex. My sisters and I all slept in the same room. They
together in one bed, I alone in another. When no one was present, we
had often mutually examined the different formations of our sexes.

We had discovered that mutual handlings gave a certain amount of
pleasing sensation; and, latterly, my eldest sister had discovered that
the hooding and unhooding of my doodle, as she called it, instantly
caused it to swell up and stiffen as hard as a piece of wood. My
feeling of her little pinky slit gave rise in her to nice sensations,
but on the slightest attempt to insert even my finger, the pain was too
great. We had made so little progress in the _attouchements_ that not
the slightest inkling of what could be done in that way dawned upon us.
I had begun to develope a slight growth of moss-like curls round the
root of my cock; and then, to our surprise, Mary began to show a
similar tendency. As yet, Eliza was as bald as her hand, but both were
prettily formed, with wonderfully full and fat mounts of Venus. We were
perfectly innocent of guile and quite habituated to let each other look
at all our naked bodies without the slightest hesitation; and when
playing in the garden, if one wanted to relieve the pressure on the
bladder, we all squatted down together, and crossed waters, each trying
who could piddle fastest. Notwithstanding these symptoms of passion
when excited, in a state of calm I might have passed for a boy of ten
or eleven.

My father had left us but moderately provided for, and mamma, wishing
to live comfortably, preferred giving me lessons along with my sisters
at home to sending me to school; but her health beginning to fail, she
inserted an advertisement in the _Times_ for a governess. Out of a
large number of applicants, a young lady, of the name of Evelyn, was
selected. Some ten days afterwards she arrived, and became one of the
family.

We did not see much of her the first evening, but after breakfast the
following morning, mamma accompanied her to what was considered our
school-room, and said, "Now, my dears, I place you under Miss Evelyn's
care; you must obey her in all things; she will teach you your lessons,
as I am unable to do so any longer." Then, turning to our new
governess, "I fear you will find them somewhat spoiled, and unruly; but
there is a horse, and Susan will make you excellent birch rods whenever
you require them. If you spare their bottoms when they deserve
whipping, you will seriously offend me." As mamma said this, I observed
Miss Evelyn's eyes appeared to dilate with a sort of joy, and I felt
certain that, severely as mamma had often whipped us, if we should now
deserve it, Miss Evelyn would administer it much more severely. She
looked amiability itself, and was truly beautiful in face and person,
twenty-two years of age, full and finely formed, and dressed always
with the most studied neatness. She was, in truth, a seductive
creature. She made an instantaneous impression on my senses. There was,
however, somewhat of a sternness of expression, and a dignity of
carriage, which caused at once to fear and respect her. Of course, at
first, all went smoothly enough, and seeing that mamma treated me
precisely as she did my sisters, I came to be regarded as quite a child
by Miss Evelyn. She found that she had to sleep in the same room with
my sisters and myself. I fancied that on the first night Miss Evelyn
did not approve of this arrangement, but gradually became familiarized
with it, and seemed to think no more about it.

When bedtime came, we all kissed mamma and retired early, as usual.
Miss Evelyn followed some hours later. When she came in, she carefully
locked the door, then looked at me to see if I was asleep. Why, I know
not, but I was instinctively prompted to feign sleep. I did so
successfully, notwithstanding the passing of the candle before my eyes.
So she at once commenced undressing. When her back was turned, I opened
my eyes, and greedily devoured her naked charms as they were gradually
exhibited before me. The moment she turned round, I was again as if
asleep. I have said that my passions had begun to develope themselves,
but as yet I did not understand their force or direction. I well
remember this first night, when a fine ripe woman gradually removed
every particle of dress within a couple of yards of me--the effect of
each succeeding charm, from her lovely and beautifully formed bubbies
to the taking off her shoes and stockings from her well-formed legs and
small feet and ankles, caused my prick to swell and stiffen to a
painful extent. When all but her chemise was removed, she stopped to
pick up her petticoats that she had allowed to fall to her feet, and in
lifting them, raised also her chemise, and exposed to my view a most
glorious bottom--dazzlingly white and shining like satin. As the light
was full upon it, and she was still in a stooping position, I could see
that below her slit she was well covered with dark hair. Turning round,
to put her petticoats on a chair, and to take up her night-gown, she
slipped her chemise from her arm, and letting it fall to the ground
while she lifted the night-gown over her head, I had for some seconds a
view of her beautiful belly, thickly covered with dark curly hair over
the mount of Venus. So voluptuous was the sight, I almost shuddered, so
intense was my excitement. She now sat down on the bed to take off her
shoes and stockings. Oh! what beautiful thighs, legs, ankles, and feet
she had!

I am now advanced in life, and have had many handsome and well-formed
women, but I never saw limbs more voluptuously formed.

In a few minutes the light was extinguished, and a rushing rill flowed
into the night vase; very different from the gentle tricklings from
myself and sisters as we often squatted down opposite each other and
crossed water, laughing at the different sources from which they
flowed. My sisters often envied me the power of directing the spurt
where I pleased, so little were we from dreaming of the real intent of
that projecting little instrument.

I heard the charming creature get into bed, and shortly breath hard. As
for me, I could not sleep. I lay awake the greater part of the night,
afraid to be restless, lest I should disturb Miss Evelyn and give her
reason to think I had been observant of her undressing. When at last I
dozed off, it was but to dream of all the charms I has seen.

About a month passed thus. Every night Miss Evelyn became more and more
at her ease, and confident of my mere childishness, often gave me
glorious and lengthened glimpses of her beautifully developed charms:
although it was only about every other night that I could enjoy them,
for, as they always produced sleeplessness afterwards, the following
night nature assured her rights, and I usually slept profoundly when I
would have preferred continued gazing on the charms of my lovely
governess. But, doubtless, those exhausting sleeps helped to throw her
off her guard, and gave me better opportunities than I should otherwise
have had. Once or twice she used the night ware before putting on her
night-gown, and I could see the rosy-lipped opening embosomed in
exquisite dark curls, pouring out its full measure of water; showing a
fine force of nature, and driving me wild with excitement. Yet it is
singular that I never once thought of applying to my fingers for relief
from the painful stiffness that nearly burst my prick asunder.

Whether mamma had observed my very frequent projection of my trousers,
or began to think it better I should not sleep in the same room as Miss
Evelyn, I cannot say, but she had my bed removed into her own. However,
I was so thoroughly treated as a mere boy by every one in the house,
that Miss Evelyn seemed to forget my sex; and there was at all times a
freedom of carriage and an _abandon_ in her attitudes that she
certainly would not have indulged in if she had felt any restraint from
considering herself in the presence of a youth of the age of puberty.

In cold weather I used to sit on a low stool by the fire--Miss Evelyn
was seated in front, I had my lesson book on my knee, and she herself
would place her beautiful feet on the high school fender, with her work
in her lap, while she heard my sisters repeat their lesson, totally
unconscious that for half an hour at a time she was exposing her
beautiful legs and thighs to my ardent gaze; for sitting much below
her, and bending my head as if intent on my lesson, my eyes were below
her raised petticoats. Her close and tight-fitting white stockings
displayed her well-formed legs, for while confined to the house during
our morning lessons she did not wear drawers; so that in the position
she sat in, with her knees higher than her feet on the already high
fender, and her legs somewhat apart to hold her work in her lap more
easily, the whole glorious underswell of both thighs, and the lower
part of her fine large bottom, with the pinky slit quite visible,
nestled in a rich profusion of dark curls, were fully exposed to my
view. The light from the fire glancing under her raised petticoats
tinged the whole with a glow, and set me equally in a blaze of desire
until I was almost ready to faint. I could have rushed headlong under
her petticoats, and kissed and fondled that delicious opening and all
its surroundings. Oh, how little she thought of the passion she was
raising. Oh! dear Miss Evelyn, how I did love you from the dainty kid
slipper and tight glossy silk stocking, up to the glorious swell of the
beautiful bubbies, that were so fully exposed to me nearly every night,
and the lovely lips of all that I longed to lovingly embrace.

Thus day after day passed away, and Miss Evelyn became to me a goddess,
a creature whom, in my heart of hearts, I literally worshiped. When she
left the school-room, and I was alone, I kissed that part of the fender
her feet had pressed, and the seat on which she sat, and even the air
an inch above, imagination placing there her lovely cunt. I craved for
something beyond this without knowing exactly what I wanted; for, as
yet, I really was utterly ignorant of anything appertaining to the
conjunction of the sexes.

One day I had gone up to my sisters' bedroom where the governess slept,
that I might throw myself on her bed, and in imagination embrace her
beautiful body. I heard some one approaching, and knowing that I had no
business there, I hid myself under the bed. The next moment Miss Evelyn
herself entered, and locked the door. It was about an hour before
dinner. Taking off her dress, and hanging it on the wardrobe, she drew
out a piece of furniture, which had been bought for her, the use of
which had often puzzled me; she took off the lid, poured water into its
basin, and placed a sponge near it. She then took off her gown, drew
her petticoats and chemise up to her waist and fastened them there,
straddled across it, and seated herself upon it.

I thus had the intoxicating delight of gazing on all her beautiful
charms, for when she tucked up her clothes she stood before her glass,
presenting to my devouring glance her glorious white bottom in all its
fullness, turning to approach the bidet, she equally exposed her lower
belly and beautiful mount, with all its wealth of hair. While
straddling over the bidet before she sat down, the whole of her
pinky-lipped cunt broke on my enraptured sight. Never shall I forget
the wild excitement of the moment. It was almost too much for my
excited senses; fortunately, when seated, the immediate cause of my
almost madness vanished. She sponged herself well between the thighs
for about five minutes. She then raised herself off the bidet, and for
a moment again displayed the pouting lips of her cunt--then stood
fronting me for two or three minutes while she removed, with the rinsed
sponge, the trickling drops of water which still gathered on the rich
bush of curls around her quim. Thus her belly, mount and thighs, whose
massy-fleshed and most voluptuous shape were more fully seen by me than
they had heretofore been, and it may easily be conceived into what a
state such a deliberate view threw me.

Oh, Miss Evelyn, dear, delicious Miss Evelyn! what would you have
thought had you known that I was gazing on all your angelic charms, and
that my eager eyes had been straining themselves to penetrate the
richness of those charming pouting lips which lay so snugly in that
rich mass of dark curling hair. Oh! how I do long to kiss them; for at
that time I had no other idea of embracing and still less of
penetrating them.

When her ablutions were completed, she sat down and drew off her
stockings, displaying her beautiful white calves and charming little
feet. I believe it was this first admiration of really exquisitely
formed legs, ankles and feet, which were extraordinarily perfect in
make, that first awakened my passion for those objects, which have
since always exercised a peculiar charm over me. She was also so
particularly neat in her shoes--little dark ones--that were _bijoux_ to
look at, I often took them up and kissed them, when left in the room.
Then her silk stockings, always drawn up tight and fitting like a
glove, set off to the greatest advantage the remarkable fine shape of
her legs.

Putting on silk for cotton stockings, she took down a low-bodiced
dress, finished her toilet, and left the room. I crawled out from under
the bed, washed my face and hands in the water of the bidet, and even
drank some in my excitement.

Some six weeks had now elapsed since the arrival of Miss Evelyn. The
passion that had seized me for her had so far kept me most obedient to
her slightest command, or even wish, and, from the same cause,
attentive to my lessons, when not distracted by the circumstances
already detailed. My example had also had the effect of keeping my
sisters much in the same groove, but it was impossible this could last
--it was not nature. As long as all went smoothly, Miss Evelyn seemed
to be all amiability. We fancied we could do as we liked, and we grew
more careless.

Miss Evelyn became more reserved, and cautioned us at first, and then
threatened us with the rod. We did not think she would make use of it.
Mary grew impertinent, and one afternoon turned sulky over her lessons,
and set our teacher at defiance. Miss Evelyn, who had been growing more
and more angry, had her rise from her seat. She obeyed with an impudent
leer. Seizing her by the arm, Miss Evelyn dragged the struggling girl
to the horse. My sister was strong and fought hard, using both teeth
and nails, but it was to no purpose. The anger of our governess was
fully roused, and raising her in her arms, she carried her forcibly to
the horse, placed her on it, held her firmly with one hand while she
put the noose round her with the other, which, when drawn, secured her
body; other nooses secured each ankle to rings in the floor, keeping
her legs apart by the projection of the horse, and also forcing the
knees to bend a little, by which the most complete exposure of the
bottom, and, in fact, of all her private parts too, was obtained.

Miss Evelyn then left her, and went to mamma for a rod. In a few
minutes she returned, evidently flushed with passion, and proceded to
tie Mary's petticoats well up to her waist, leaving her bottom and her
pinky slit quite bare and exposed directly before my eyes. It was quite
two months since I had seen her private parts, and I was well surprised
to observe the lips more pouting and swelled out, as well as the
symptoms of a mossy covering of the mount much more developed. Indeed,
it was in itself more exciting than I had expected, for my thoughts had
so long dwelt only on the riper beauties of Miss Evelyn that I had
quite ceased to have any toying with Mary.

This full view of all her private parts reawakened former sensations
and strengthened them. Miss Evelyn first removed her own scarf, laying
bare her plump ivory shoulders, and showing the upper halves of her
beautiful bubbies, which were heaving with the excitement of her anger.
She bared her fine right arm, and grasping the rod, stepped back and
raised her arm; her eyes glistened in a peculiar way. She was indeed
beautiful to see.

I shall never forget that moment--it was but a moment. The rod whistled
through the air and fell with a cruel cut on poor Mary's plump little
bottom. The flesh quivered again, and Mary, who had resolved not to
cry, flushed in her face, and bit the damask with which the horse was
covered.

Again the arm was raised, and again, with a sharp whistle, it fell on
the palpating buttocks below it. Still her stubborn temper bore her up,
and although we saw how she winced, not a sound escaped her lips.
Drawing back a step, Miss Evelyn again raised her hand and arm, and
this time her aim was so true that the longer points of the rod doubled
between the buttocks and concentrated themselves between the lips of
Mary's privates. So agonising was the pain that she screamed out
dreadfully. Again the rod fell precisely on the same spot.

"Oh! oh! oh! Dear Miss Evelyn. I will never, no, never, do so again."

Her shrieks were of no avail. Cut succeeded cut, yell succeeded yell
--until the rod was worn to a stump, and poor Mary's bottom was one
mass of weals and red as raw beef. It was fearful to see, and yet such
is our nature that to see it was, at the same time, exciting. I could
not keep my eyes from her pouting quim, the swelling lips of which,
under the severity of the punishment it was undergoing, not only seemed
to thicken, but actually opened and shut, and evidently throbbed with
agony. But all this was highly exciting for me to witness. I then and
there resolved to have a closer inspection at a more convenient
opportunity, which did not fail me in the end.

Meanwhile, her spirit was completely cowed, or rather, crushed. Indeed,
we were all fully frightened, and now knew what we had to expect, if we
did not behave ourselves. There was now no fear of any manifestation of
temper, and we felt we must indeed obey implicitly whatever our
governess chose to order. We instinctively learned to fear her.

A very few days after this memorable whipping, some visitors arrived
--a gentleman and lady. The gentleman was an old friend of mamma's, who
had lately married, and mamma had asked them to visit her on their
wedding tour and spent a short time with us.

The gentleman was a fine-looking man, tall and powerfully built; the
lady rather delicate looking, but well shaped, with good breasts and
shoulders, small waist, and spreading haunches, well-formed arms, small
hands and feet, and very brilliant eyes.

I think it was about three days after their arrival that one afternoon
I went into the spare room, which was occupied by these visitors; while
there, I heard them coming upstairs. The lady entered first, and I had
just time to slip into a closet and draw the door to; it was not quite
closed, but nearly so. In a minute the gentleman followed, and gently
shutting the door, locked it. Mrs. Benson smiled, and said--

"Well, my love, you are a sad teaser; you let me have no rest. Surely,
you had enough last night and this morning without wanting it again so
soon?"

"Indeed, I had not," he said, "I never can have enough of your
delicious person. So come, we must not be long about it, or our absence
will be observed."

He seized her round the waist, and drew her lips to his, and gave her a
long, long kiss; squeezing her to him, and moving himself against her.
Then seating himself, he pulled her on his knee, and thrust his hand up
her petticoats, their mouths being glued together for some time.

"We must be quick, dear," she murmured.

He got up, and lifted her on the edge of the bed, threw her back, and
taking her legs under his arms, exposed everything to my view. She had
not so much hair on her mount of Venus as Miss Evelyn, but her slit
showed more pouting lips, and appeared more open. Judge of my
excitement when I saw Mr. Benson unbutton his trousers and pull out an
immense cock. Oh, dear, how large it looked; it almost frightened me.
With his fingers he placed the head between the lips of Mrs. Benson's
sheath, and then letting go his hold, and placing both arms so as to
support her legs, he pushed it all right into her to the hilt at once.
I was thunderstruck that Mrs. Benson did not shriek with agony, it did
seem such a large thing to thrust right into her belly. However, far
from screaming with pain, she appeared to enjoy it. Her eyes glistened,
her face flushed, and she smiled most graciously on Mr. B. The two
appeared very happy. His large cock slipped in and out quite smoothly,
and his hands pressed the large glossy buttocks and pulled them to him
at each home thrust. This lasted nearly five minutes, when all at once
Mr. B. stopped short, and then followed one or two convulsive
shoves--he grinning in a very absurd way at her. He remained quiet for
a few minutes, and the drew out his cock, all soft, with slimy drops
falling from it onto the carpet. Taking a towel, he wiped up the
carpet, and wrapping it round his cock, went to the basin and washed it.

Mrs. Benson lay for a few minutes longer all exposed, her quim more
open than before, and I could see a white slime oozing from it.

You can hardly imagine the wild excitement this scene occasioned me.
First, the grand mystery was at once explained to me, and my ignorant
longings now knew to what they tended. After giving me plenty of time
to realise all the beauties of her private parts, she slipped down on
the floor, adjusted her petticoats, and smoothed the disordered
counterpane, and then went to the glass to arrange her hair. This done,
she quietly unlocked the door, and Mr. Benson went out. The door was
then relocked, and Mrs. B. went to the basin, emptied and filled it,
then raised up her petticoats, and bathed the parts between her legs
with a sponge, and then rubbed all dry with a towel; all this time
exposing everything to my ardent gaze. But, horror of horrors! she
after this came straight to the closet and gave a slight scream on
discovering me there. I blushed up to the ears, and tried to stammer
out an excuse. She stared at me at first in silent amasement; but at
last said--

"How came you here, sir, tell me?"

"I was here when you came up; I wanted my football, which was in this
closet, and when I heard you coming, I hid myself, I don't know why."

For some minutes she seemed to consider and examine me attentively. She
then said--

"Can you be discreet?"

"Oh, yes, ma'am."

"You will never tell any one what you have seen?"

"No ma'am."

"Well, keep this promise, and I shall try what I can do to reward you.
Now, go downstairs."

I went to the school-room, but I was greatly agitated, I scarcely knew
what I was doing. The scene I had witnessed had complete possession of
my thoughts. In years but a boy, the mystery now practically explained
to me had awakened all the passions of a man. Instead of studying my
lessons, my thoughts wandered to Mrs. B., thrown back on the bed with
her fine legs and thighs fully exposed; above all, the sight of the
pinky gash, with its fleecy hair at the bottom of her belly, which I
had seen for some minutes all open and oozing out the slimy juice that
followed the amorous encounter they had been indulging in. It seemed so
much more developed than Miss Evelyn's. I felt sure that Miss Evelyn
could never take in such a thick long thing as Mr. B. had thrust into
his wife, and yet it appeared to go in so easily, and moved about so
smoothly, and so evidently to the satisfaction and utmost delight of
both, as was proved by their ardent embracings, fond murmurs, and
voluptuous movements, especially just before they both ceased together
all movement whatever.

Then I thought, how delicious it would be to treat Miss Evelyn in the
same way, and to revel with my stiff-standing prick in her delicious
quim, which in my mind's eye I saw before me as I had viewed in on her
rising from the bidet, when I lay hid under the bed. Then I thought of
my sister Mary's smaller, although attractive little quim, and I
resolved, as that was the easiest to get hold of, to initiate her in
all the newly discovered mysteries. I fully determined that my own
first lesson, as well as hers, should be taken on her little fat chubby
cunt. Then the recollection of its pouting and throbbing lips under the
fearful flagellation she had undergone, began to excite me, and made my
cock stand stiff and throb again. All the weeks of excitement I had now
constantly been under had produced a wonderful effect on my pego, which
had become considerably more developed when in a state of erection. As
you may suppose, with such distracting thoughts, I did not get on with
my lessons. Miss Evelyn, for some reason or other, was out of humour
that morning, and more than once spoke crossly to me for my evident
inattention. At length she called me to her, and finding that I had
scarcely done anything, she said--

"Now, Charles, I give you ten minutes longer to finish that sum, if not
done in that time I shall whip you; you are exhibiting the mere spirit
of idleness. I do not know what has come over you, but if persisted in,
you shall certainly be punished."

The idea of the beautiful Miss Evelyn whipping my bare bottom did not
tend to calm my excitement, on the contrary, it turned my lewd thoughts
upon the beauties of her person, which I had so often furtively gazed
upon.

It was close upon four o'clock, at which hour we always broke up for a
run in the garden for an hour, and during this period I had resolved to
begin instructing Mary in the secret mysteries I had so lately been a
witness to. But fate had ordered it otherwise, and I was to receive my
first practical lesson and be initiated on the person of a riper and
more beautiful woman; but of this hereafter. At four o'clock I had done
nothing with my task--Miss Evelyn looked grave:

"Mary and Eliza, you may go out, Charles will remain here."

My sisters, simply imagining that I was kept to finish my lessons, ran
into the garden. Miss Evelyn turned the key in the door, opened a
cupboard, and withdrew a birch rod neatly tied up with blue ribbons.
Now my blood coursed through my veins, and my fingers trembled so that
I could hardly hold my pencil.

"Put down your slate, Charles, and come to me."

I obeyed, and stood before my beautiful governess, with a strange
commixture of fear and desire.

"Unfasten your braces, and pull down your trousers."

I commenced doing this, though but very slowly. Angry at my delay her
delicate fingers speedily accomplished the work. My trousers fell to my
feet.

"Place yourself across my knees."

Tremblingly, with the same commixture of feeling, I obeyed. Her silk
dress was drawn up to prevent its being creased--my naked flesh pressed
against her snowy white petticoats. A delicate perfume of violet and
vervain assailed my nerves. As I felt her soft and delicate fingers
drawing up my shirt, and passing over my bare posteriors, while the
warmth of her pulpy form beneath me penetrated my flesh, nature exerted
her power, and my prick began to swell out to a most painful extent. I
had but little time, however, to notice this before a rapid succession
of the most cruel cuts lacerated my bottom.

"Oh, dear! Oh, dear! Oh, dear! Oh, Miss Evelyn. I will do the sum if
you will only forgive me. Oh, oh, oh, &c."

Holding me firmly with her left arm, Miss Evelyn used the rod most
unmercifully. At first, the pain was excruciating, and I roared out as
loud as I could, but gradually the pain ceased to be so acute, and was
succeeded by the most delicious tickling sensation. My struggles at
first had been so violent as to greatly disorder Miss Evelyn's
petticoats, and to raise them up so as to expose to my delighted eyes
her beautifully formed silk-clad legs up to the knees, and even an inch
or two of naked thigh above.

This, together with the intense tickling irritation communicated to my
bottom, as well as to the friction of my cock against the person of
Miss Evelyn in my struggles, rendered me almost delirious, and I tossed
and pushed myself about on her knees in a state of perfect frenzy as
the blows continued to be showered down upon my poor bottom. At last
the rod was worn to a stump, and I was pushed off her knees. As I rose
before her, with my cheeks streaming with tears, my shirt was jutting
out considerably in front in an unmistakeable and most prominent
manner, and my prick was at the same time throbbing beneath it with
convulsive jerks, which I could by no means restrain.

Miss Evelyn glared at the projection in marked astonishment, and her
open eyes were fixed upon it as I stood rubbing my bottom and crying,
without attempting to move or button up my trousers. She continued for
a minute or two to stare at the object of attraction, flushing scarlet
up to the forehead, and then she suddenly seemed to recollect herself,
drew a heavy breath, and rapidly left room. She did not return until
after my sisters came back from the garden, and seemed still confused,
and avoided fixing her eye upon me.

In two days afterwards, all disagreeable marks of this very severe
whipping had disappeared. On the following day we were invited to pass
the afternoon at the grange, a beautiful place about two miles from us.
The afternoon was fine and warm; we walked there, and arrived about
four o'clock. Mr. and Mrs. Robinson were in the drawing-room, but at
once desired us to go in the garden and amuse ourselves with their
three daughters, whom we would find there. We went at once, and found
them amusing themselves on a swing. Sophia, the eldest, about nineteen,
was swinging a sister about two years younger, a very fine, fully
developed young woman. Indeed, all three sisters were finer women and
more beautiful than the average of young ladies.

Another sister, Agnes, was not seated, but standing on the board
between the ropes. Sophia was making both mount as high as possible.
They were laughing loudly, when we found them, at the exposure each
made--one in advancing, the other retiring. Agnes's light dress of
muslin and single petticoat, as she retired and the wind came up from
behind, was bulged out in front, and exposed her limbs up to her belly,
so that one could see that her mount was already well furnished. The
other, in advancing, threw her legs up, and exposed all the underside
of her thighs and a part of her bottom, and you could just discern that
there was dark hair between the lower thighs and bottom.

As they considered me but a child, I was no check to their mirth and
sport. On the contrary, the gave me a long rope to pull down the swing
when at its highest, and I sat down on the grass in front for greater
convenience. The fine limbs and hairy quims exposed freely before me
from moment to moment excited my passions. None of them wore more than
one petticoat, and they had no drawers, so that when they mounted to
the highest point from me, I had the fullest possible view of all. My
cock soon rose to a painful extent, which I really believe was noticed
and enjoyed by them, I observed, too, that I was an object of attention
to Miss Evelyn, who shortly seated herself in the swing, and allowed me
to swing her with the end of the rope. I even fancied that she threw up
her legs more than was at all necessary; at all events, she naturally,
with the strong feelings I had towards her, excited me more than all
the rest.

We were as merry as could be, and we passed a delightful evening until
eight o'clock, when it began to rain. As it continued, and became very
heavy, Mr. Robinson ordered out the closed carriage to take us home. It
was a brougham, only seated for two. Mary took Eliza on her knee, Miss
Evelyn took me upon hers. I know not how it happened, but her lovely
arm soom passed round my body as if to hold me on her knee, and her
hand fell, apparently by accident, exactly on my cock--the touch was
electric. In an instant, my member stood stiff and strong beneath her
hand. Still Miss Evelyn, who must have felt the movement going on
beneath her fingers, did not remove her hand, but rather seemed to
press more upon it. In my boyish ignorance, I imagined she was not
aware of what was happening. The motion and jolting of the carriage
over rough road caused her hand to rub up and down upon my erected and
throbbing member. I was almost beside myself, and to conceal my
condition I feigned sleep. I let my head fall on Miss Evelyn's shoulder
and neck--she allowed this.

Whether she thought I had really fallen asleep I know not, but I was
quite sensible that her fingers pressed my swollen and throbbing cock,
and I fancied she was measuring its size.

The tight grasp she managed to gain, and the continued jolting of the
carriage, brought me up at last to such a pitch state that a greater
jolt than usual, repeated two or three times in succession, each
followed by a firmer pressure of her charming fingers, caused me such
an excess of excitement that I actually swooned away with the most
delicious sensation I had ever experienced in my life. I was some time
before I knew where I was, or what I was about, and was only made
conscious of our arrival at home by Miss Evelyn shaking me to rouse me
up. I stumbled up, but though partially stupefied, I fancied Miss
Evelyn's eyes shone with a brilliancy I had never before observed, and
that there was a bright hectic flush on her cheek. She refused to go
into the parlour, but hurried to bed on pretence of a headache.

When I retired to bed, and took off my shirt, I found it all sticky and
wet in front.

It was thus I paid down my first tribute to Venus. I thought long over
this evident approach to familiarity on the part of Miss Evelyn, and
went to sleep with a lively hope of a more private interview with her,
when I trusted that her evident passion would initiate me in the
pleasures to be derived from her beauteous body.

But again fate intervened, and another, not less beautiful, more
experienced, and more inclined for the sport, was to be my charming
mistress in love's revels.

Two days after this, Mr. Benson was unexpectedly called away on
pressing affairs, which he feared might detain him three weeks. He left
Mrs. B. with us. As he had to be driven about nine miles to the town
where the coach passed, mamma took the opportunity of going to the town
with him. Mrs. B. complained of not being equal to the fatigue, and
mamma told Miss Evelyn she would like her company, and as the two girls
wanted new shoes, they could go also; I was to remain at home, and
mamma desired me to be quiet and attentive to Mrs. Benson, who,
observing no one, said to me, with a peculiar look:

"I shall want you to hold my skeins, Charlie, so don't go out of the
way, but be ready for me as soon as they are gone."

She then went up to her bedroom, where Mr. B. immediately joined her,
no doubt to re-enact the scene I had already witnessed from the closet
on a previous day. They were fully half an hour occupied together. At
length, all was ready, and off they went, leaving me to a fate I had
little dreamt of.

Mrs. B. proposed we should go up to the drawing-room, which looked out
to the garden, and was nowhere overlooked. I followed her, and could
not help admiring her fine figure as she preceded me in going upstairs.
Although pale in complexion, she was well made, and very elegant in her
carriage, and sat down on a low easy chair, throwing herself completely
back, and crossing one leg over the other, apparently without being
aware that she carried her petticoats up with the action, and exhibited
the beautiful underleg up to the garter.

I had never forgotten the day, when secreted in the closet, I had seen
them completely exposed, and how charming they were. Her present
negligent attitude, although far from the same exposure I speak of, was
still, with the former recollection running in my head, enough to set
my whole blood on fire. I have before remarked what a power beautiful
and well-stockinged legs, and ankles and small feet, had upon my
nervous system, and so it was now. As I gazed upon her handsome legs,
ankles, and feet, I felt my prick swell and throb in a manner that
could not fail to be perceptible to Mrs. B, especially as her head lay
on a level with that part of my person as I stood before her.

Although she continued knitting, I could see that her eyes were
directed to that part of my person, and fixed upon the increasing
distention of my trousers. In a few minutes she gave me a skein of
worsted to hold, and desired me to kneel in front of her, so as to
bring my hands down to the level of the low chair on which she was
seated.

I knelt close to the footstool on which her foot rested; it was raised
up, and a very slight movement brought it against my person, at first
rather below where my throbbing prick was distending my trousers. As
she commenced to wind her ball, she gradually pushed her foot further
forward, until the toe actually touched the knob of my cock, and
occasionally moved it right and left, exciting me beyond measure.

I flushed up to the very ears, and trembled so violently that I thought
I should have dropped the skein.

"My dear boy, what is the matter with you, that you blush and tremble
so, are you unwell?"

I could not answer, blushed more than ever. The skein at length was
finished.

"Charles," she said, "get up, and come here."

I rose and stood by her side.

"What have you got in your trousers that is moving?"

And here her busy fingers commenced unbuttoning them. Released from
confinement, out started my prick--stiff as iron, and as large as that
of a youth of eighteen. Indeed, I was better hung than one boy selected
out of five hundred of that age. Mrs. B., who had pretended to be
perfectly astonished, exclaimed--

"Good gracious, what a pego! Why Charles, my darling, you are a man not
a boy. What a size to be sure!" and she gently handled it. "Is it often
in this state?"

"Yes, ma'am."

"For how long?"

"Ever since Miss Evelyn came."

"And pray, sir, what has Miss Evelyn's coming had to do with it?"

"I--I--I--I--"

"Come now, Charles, be candid with me; what is it you mean where you
say Miss Evelyn has caused you to be in such a state, have you shown
her this, and has she handled it?"

"Oh! dear no; never, never!"

"Is it her face, her bosom, or her legs that have captivated you?"

"It was her feet and ankles, ma'am, with her beautiful legs, which she
sometimes exhibited without knowing."

"And do all ladies' legs and ankles produce this effect upon you?"

"Oh, yes, ma'am, if they are neat and pretty!"

"And what make you so excited now?"

"It was the sight of your beautiful legs just now, and the recollection
of what I saw the other day, ma'am," I stammered out, blushing more
than ever.

While this conversation was going on, her soft hand grasped my
distended prick, and had commenced slowly slipping the loose skin over
the swollen head, and allowing it to slip back again.

"I suppose, Charles, after what you saw in the closet, you know what
this is meant to do."

I muttered out an indistinct reply that I did, and I hung down my
blushing face.

"You have never put it into a lady, have you?"

"Oh! dear no, ma'am."

"Would you like to do so?"

I did not answer, but sheepishly held down my head.

"Did you see what I had in the same place, when you were in the closet?"

I muttered, "Yes, ma'am."

"Would it afford you any pleasure to see it again?"

"Oh, yes; so much!"

Mrs. B. rose, went to the window, drew down the blind, then gently
turned the key in the door. Returning to the chair, and drawing well up
her dress, petticoats and chemise, she exposed all her person up to the
middle of her belly; and sat down stretching herself backwards, and
opening her thighs well.

"Well, my dear boy, look at it if you wish."

I was no longer shy. Nature prompted me to an act of gallantry that
gratified the lady immensely. Falling on my knees, I glued my lips to
the delicious spot, pushing my tongue in as far as I could, and sucked
it. It was quite spunky; I had no doubt but that Mr. B. had fucked her
two or three times just before leaving. This, however, made no
difference to me. The attack was as unexpected as it was delightful to
the lady. She placed both hands on my head and pressed my face against
her throbbing cunt. She was evidently hotly excited, not only by what I
was then doing, but by the scene, the conversation, and the handling of
my prick, which she had been indulging in. She wriggled her bottom
nervously below me, I continued to greedily lick her moist and juicy
cunt.

"Oh! oh! dear Charles, what exquisite delight you are giving me. Oh!
oh!"

And she pressed my face more fully into the gaping sheath, and
thrusting her bottom up at the same time, spent right into my mouth,
over my cheeks, chin, and neck. Her thighs closed convulsively round my
head, and for some moments she remained still. I continued to lick
away, and swallowed the delicious spunk that still flowed from her. At
last she spoke again--

"Oh! you darling Charles, I love you for ever; but get up, it is now my
turn to give you a taste of the exquisite pleasure you have given me."

I raised myself, and she drew me to her, and gave me a long kiss,
licking her own sperm from off my lips and cheek; and desiring me to
thrust my tongue into her mouth, she sucked it deliciously, while her
soft hand and gentle fingers had again sought, found, and caressed my
stiff-standing prick. She then desired me to lay myself on the floor,
with three pillows to raise my head, and lifting up all her petticoats,
and striding across me, with her back to my face, she knelt down, then
stooping forward, she took my standing prick in her mouth, and at the
same time lowering her buttocks, brought her beautiful cunt right over
and down upon my mouth, the pillows exactly supporting my head at the
proper level, to command a thorough enjoyment of the whole, which now I
had completely before my eyes.

In the former sucking my own position hid everything from view beyond
the rich mass of hair adorning her splendid mount of Venus, which I
found to be much more abundant than it had appeared to me when I had
seen it from the closet. When I applied my lips to the delicious gap, I
found that she had the most beautiful silky light curls running up to
and around her charming pink bottom-hole, and losing themselves in the
chink between the buttocks. I applied myself furiously to the delicious
gash, and sucked and thrust my tongue in alternately. I could see by
the nervous twitching of her buttocks, and the bearing down of her
whole bottom on my face, how much she was enjoying it. I, to, was in an
extasy of delight. One hand gently frigged the lower portion of my
prick, while the other played with my balls, and her beautiful mouth,
lips, and tongue sucked, pressed, and tickled the head of my excited
prick. The more furiously I sucked her cunt, the more her lips
compressed the head of my pego, and her tongue sought to enter the
urethra, giving me almost overpowering delight. Such reciprocal efforts
soon brought on the extatic crisis, I cried out:

"Oh, lady! oh, dear lady! let me go; I am dying!"

She knew well enough what was coming, but she had her own way, and at
the instant that she again poured down upon my mouth and face a
plenteous discharge, her own rosy mouth received a torrent of my sperm.

For some minutes we lay mutually breathless and exhausted. Then Mrs. B.
rose, shook down her clothes, assisted me to rise, and taking me in her
arms, and pressing me lovingly to her bosom, told me I was a dear
charming fellow, and had enraptured her beyond measure. She then
embraced me fondly, kissing my mouth and eyes, and desiring me to give
her my tongue, sucked it so sweetly.

"Now, fasten up your trousers, my darling boy."

When I had done so, the blind was drawn up, and the door unlocked.

We sat down, I by her side with one arm round her lovely neck, and the
other clasped in her hand.

"I am sure I can depend upon your prudence, my dear Charles, to keep
all this a profound secret from every one. Your mamma thinks you a
child, and will suspect nothing. I shall take an opportunity of
suggesting that you shall sleep in the small room adjoining my bedroom,
and with which there is a door of communication. When every one is gone
to bed, I shall open the door, and you shall come and sleep with me,
and I will let you enjoy me as you saw Mr. B. do the other day. Will
you like that?"

"Oh! above all things, oh, yes. But you must also allow me to kiss that
delicious spot again that has just given me such pleasure. Will you
not, ma'am?"

"Oh, yes, my darling boy, whenever we can do so safely, and unobserved;
but I must impress upon you never to seem very familiar with me before
any one, or to take the slightest liberty unless I invite you to do so.
Anything of the sort would certainly draw attention, and lead to our
detection, and at once put an end to what I mean shall be a delightful
connection for you as well as myself."

I, of course, promised the most perfect obedience to her very prudent
directions. The ice was broken, and we allowed no ceremony to stand
between us. I grew again very excited, and would fain have proceeded at
once to try again to fuck her as well as suck her, but she was
inexorable, and told me I should only spoil the pleasure we should
afterwards have in bed. The day passed like an hour in her charming
society.

The carriage brought mamma and party to dinner. Mamma hoped I had
behaved well, and been attentive to Mrs. B. in her absence. She
answered nothing could be better, and that I was quite a model
youth--so gentle and so obedient.

My mother found that she had caught cold, and had febrile symptoms
after dinner. Mrs. B. persuaded her to retire to bed, and accompanied
her. When in her room, she apparently noticed, for the first time, my
little bed. She took the opportunity of suggesting that it would be
much better to remove it to the small room, so as to leave my mother in
perfect quiet, which my coming to bed might disturb.

This was said in such an innocent natural manner, that no suspicion was
excited on the part of mamma or anybody else. Mamma only making the
objection that my early rising might by my noise disturb Mrs. B. in the
next room.

"Oh, no; I am not so easily disturbed, besides he has been so well
behaved all day, that I am sure, if I tell him to be quiet in the
morning, he will not fail to do so."

So it was settled, and my bed was at once removed to the little room.

I know not what Miss Evelyn thought of this; at any rate, she made no
remark, and I went to bed early. It will easily be conceived that I did
not go to sleep. The hours struck one after the other, and no
appearance of my amiable instructress. The remembrance of all her
charms was ever present to my mind's eye, and I longed once more to
dart my tongue into her moist and juicy cunt, as well as to try the new
method that was to initiate me into the real secrets of Venus.

The long delay of her coming put me in a perfect fever. I tossed and
tumbled in bed; my prick throbbed almost to bursting. Fortunately, I
had never frigged myself, and that resource never occured to me, or I
might have rendered myself quite incapable of enjoying the raptures my
beautiful benefactress afterwards entranced me with. At last I heard
voices and footsteps on the stairs. Mrs. B. bid Miss Evelyn good night,
and the next minute her door was opened, closed again, and the key
turned in the lock. I had taken the precaution to do so with my door. I
heard her use the night vase, and then she opened my door, at once
coming to my bed side. Seeing me awake and quite flushed, she kissed
me, and whispered--

"Have you not been to sleep, Charles?"

"No, ma'am," I answered, in the same subdued tone, "I could not sleep."

"Why, dear boy?"

"Because I was going to sleep with you."

Her lips pressed mine, and her soft hand, thrust under the clothes;
sought for and caressed my stiff-standing prick--it was as hard as iron.

"Poor boy, I am afraid you have been suffering. How long has it been in
this state?"

"All the evening, ma'am, and I did think you were such a long time in
coming."

"Well, Charles, I could not come sooner without causing suspicion--I
thought Miss Evelyn was suspicious, so I pretended to have no desire to
go to bed; and even when she showed evident symptoms of drowsiness
after her long ride, I rallied her upon it, and begged her to sit up
with me yet a little; until at last she could hold out no longer, and
begged me to let her retire. I grumblingly complied, and she is thrown
completely off any scent on our account, as she could never suppose I
was impatient as you to come here. I shall undress as fast as possible,
and then do my best to relieve you of this painful stiffness. Get up,
shut this door, and come to my bed. My room has an inner baize door,
and we shall there be certain of not being overheard."

I instantly complied, and she commenced undressing. Every detail of her
charming toilet was devoured by my greedy eyes. Her smooth, glossy, and
abundant hair, arranged in braids, was neatly fastened in under a
coquettish lace cap with pretty blue ribbons. Her _chemise de nuit_ of
the finest, almost transparent cambric was edged with fine openwork.
She looked devine. The drawers of the commode contained scent bags of
that peculiar odour which is generally found to perfume the persons of
the most seductive women. In another moment she was in bed, clasping me
in her arms.

"Now, Charles, you must be a good boy, and make no noise, and allow me
to teach you your first love lesson, see I will lay myself down on my
back, thus--do you place yourself on your knees between my out-spread
thighs--there, that is a darling--now let me lay hold of your dear
instrument. Now lay yourself down on me."

I placed myself on her beautiful smooth and white belly and pressed
against the hair of her mount. With her long taper fingers she guided
my prick--I trembled in every limb and almost felt sick with
excitement--but when I felt the delicious sensation caused by the
insertion of my skinned pintle between the smooth warm oily folds of
the lady's cunt--I gave but one shove which carried me up so that I
swooned away on her belly and milk-white bosom.

When I came to myself I still lay on her belly, enfolded in her lovely
arms, my prick sheathed up to the cods in her delicious cunt, which was
throbbing in the most extatic way and pressing and closing with every
fold on my prick--which had hardly lost any of its pristine stiffness;
as my eyes began to discern her features, an exquisite smile played
upon my darling companion's lips.

"You sad rogue," she whispered, "you have given me a baby; what have
you been doing to make you spend so soon, and in such a quantity, Did
you like it?"

"Oh, dearest madam, I have been in heaven--surely no joy can be greater
than you have given me."

"But you do not know as yet everything that is to be done, and to how
much greater an extent the pleasure may be enhanced by mutual efforts;
move your instrument gently in and out--there, that is delicious, but
not so fast. Good, is it not nice!"

And she moved in unison with me, meeting each slow thrust down by an
equal movement upwards, and squeezing my prick in the most delicious
manner internally, as she retired again to meet succeeding thrusts in
the same way.

Oh! it was extatic--my prick, swollen to its utmost size, seemed to
fill her exquisite vagina, which although capable of easily
accommodating the larger prick of Mr. B., appeared to be sufficiently
contracted to embrace tightly with its smooth and slippery folds my
stiff throbbing prick. So we continued, I shoving myself into her, and
she upheaving her beautiful bottom to meet me. My hands removed
everywhere, and my mouth sucked her lips and tongue, or wandered over
her pulpy breasts sucking their tiny nipples. It was a long bout
indeed, prolonged by Mrs. Benson's instructions, and she enjoyed it
thoroughly, encouraged me by every endearing epithet, and by the most
voluptuous manoeuvres. I was quite beside myself. The consciousness
that I was thrusting my most private part into that part of a lady's
person which is regarded with such sacred delicacy caused me to
experience the most enraptured pleasure. Maddened by the intensity of
my feeling I at length quickened my pace. My charming companion did the
same, and we together yielded down a most copious and delicious
discharge.

Although I retained sufficient rigidity to keep him in his place, Mrs.
B. would not allow any further connection with her, and she made me
withdraw, and bade me go to sleep like a good boy, and she would give
me a further lesson in the morning.

Finding that she was determined on this point, and that she disposed
herself to slumber, I felt I was obliged to follow her example, and at
last fell fast asleep. It might be about five in the morning, quite
light at that time of year, when I awoke, and instead of finding
myself, as usual, in my own little bed--I found my arms round the
person of a charming woman, whose large plump smooth bottom lay in my
lap, pressing against my belly and thigh. I found my prick already in a
rampant state, and it at once began throbbing and forcing its way
between the delicious cheeks of her immense bottom, seeking the
delightful sheath it had so enjoyed the previous part of the night.
Whether Mrs. B, was asleep or not, I do not know, but am inclined to
think she really was so, from the muttered mistake she made in waking.
She was probably dreaming, for she mechanically raised her thighs. I
pressed my prick stoutly forward against her luxurious body, knowing
that the entrance to the temple of pleasure which had so entranced me
the night before lay in that direction. I found more difficulties than
I expected, but at length began to penetrate, although the orifice
appeared much tighter than on the previous evening. Excited by the
difficulties of entrance, I clasped the lady firmly round the waist and
pushed forcibly and steadily forward. I felt the folds give way to the
iron stiffness of my prick, and one-half of it was fairly embedded in
my extremely tight sheath. I put down my hand to press my prick a
little downwards to facilitate the further entrance; you may imagine my
astonishment when on so doing I found myself in the lady's bottom-hole,
instead of her cunt. This at once explained the difficulty of entrance.
I was about to withdraw and place it in the proper orifice when a
convulsive pressure of the sphincter caused me such exquisite
satisfaction by the pressure of the folds on the more sensitive upper
half of my prick, which was so delicious, and so much tighter, and more
exciting than my previous experience of the cunt that I could not
resist the temptation of carrying the experiment to the end. Therefore,
thrusting my two fingers into her cunt, I pressed my belly forwards
with all my might, and sheathed my prick in her bottom-hole to its full
extent. Mrs. B at this awoke, and exclaimed, "Good Heavens! Fred, you
hurt me cruelly. I wish you would be content with my cunt, I shall be
unable to walk tomorrow. You know it always has that effect. It is
downright cruel of you--but since you are in, stay quiet a little, and
then continue to frig me with your fingers, as you know that eventually
gives me great pleasure."

She calls me Fred, what can she mean? I was, however, too agreeably
situated to speculate on anything, but as I was now buried within her
bottom-hole, I lay quiet for a few minutes as she had requested; and as
her complaints subsided, and I felt a slight reciprocating movement, I,
too, moved within her, working at the same time my two fingers in her
cunt. By this time she was wide awake, and became conscious of who was
her bed-fellow.

"What are you about, Charles?" she exclaimed, "do you know where you
are?"

"I did not know I was doing anything wrong."

"Doing wrong, indeed! My, a lady's bottom-hole was never intended for a
pego. How came you to put it in there?"

"I cannot tell; I did not do it on purpose. I thought I was going into
the same delightful place I was in last night."

All this time I was moving my prick in and out of one aperture, and my
fingers were working away in the other. The tightness of the sheath
round my prick was delicious beyond anything I could conceive, and I
think, from the way the lady conducted herself, she liked it as much as
I did. At any rate, she permitted me to go on until I had a delicious
discharge; and she herself spent all over my hand.

When the bout was over, she jumped out of bed, went to the basin, and
with a sponge purified herself. After which, she said--

"My dear boy, you had better come and wash yourself, too; and take care
not to make a mistake of this kind again, as it is sometimes attended
with disagreeable consequences."

It was now perfect sunny daylight, and my enchanting mistress looked so
lovely in her almost transparent cambric night-shirt that I was
emboldened to ask her to let me see her perfectly naked in all her
glorious beauty of form. She gratified me at once; but laughingly,
pulled off my night-shirt, and said--

"I, too, must have the pleasure not only of contemplating your
promising youthful charms, but of embracing your dear form
disencumbered of all the superfluities of dress."

We clasped each other in a most enrapturing embrace, and then my lovely
and engaging companion allowed me to turn her in every direction so as
to see, admire, and devour every charm of her exquisitely formed body.
Oh! she was indeed beautiful--shoulders broad, bosom, or rather upper
neck, flat, not showing any projection of the collar bone; bubbies
firm, well separated and round, with most exquisite rosy nipples not
much developed; a perfect waist, small naturally, with charming
swelling hips, and an immense bottom--it was almost out of proportion,
large, but oh, how beautiful. Then her belly, undulating so enticingly,
and swelling out, the lowest part into a very fine and prominent mons
Veneris, covered with a thick crop of silky and curly light hair; then
the entrance to the grotto of Venus had such delicious pouting lips,
rosy, but with hair still thick on each side, which is often not the
case even with women who have a sufficient tuft above, how beautiful
where it exists as it did in this charming and perfect woman,
continuing in beautiful little curls not only down to but around her
lovely pinky and puckered little bottom-hole, the delights of which I
had already, in this infancy of my love education, tasted and enjoyed.
Her two alabaster thighs, worthily supporting by their large
well-rounded fleshy forms, the exquisite perfections of the upper body,
I have already described. How beautiful, elegant, and elongated her
legs were, rising from well-turned ankles and most tiny beautiful feet.
Her skin was white as milk, and dazzlingly fair and smooth. To my young
eyes she was a perfect goddess of beauty. Even now, in advanced life, I
can remember nothing that, as a whole surpassed her, although I have
met many with points unsurpassingly beautiful--some carry it in the
bosom, some in the general carriage, some in the mount of Venus and
bottom together, and some in legs and thighs; but this devine creature,
without having the appearance of it when dressed, was, when stripped,
perfect in all her parts as well as beautiful in face--caressing and
voluptuous by nature, and lending herself, with the most enchanting
graces to instruct me in all the mysteries of love, and let me say, of
_lust_ also.

We caressed each other with such mutual satisfaction that nature soon
drove us to a closer and more active union of the bodies. Fondly
embracing one another, we approached the bed, and being equally excited
threw ourselves upon it, and, in the exquisite contact of our naked
flesh, enjoyed a long, long bout of love, in which my most charming
companion exhibited all the resources of amorous enjoyment. Never shall
I forget the luxury of that embrace. She checked my natural tendency to
rush at once to a completion. I think we must have enjoyed the raptures
of that embrace fully half an hour before bringing on the grand finale,
in which my active companion showed the extraordinary suppleness of her
delicious body by throwing her legs over my back, pushing my bottom
forward with her heels, and raising and sinking her bottom in unison
with each thrust of my terribly stiff prick, which seemed to swell and
become thicker and harder than ever. In retiring from each thrust, her
cunt seemed to close upon my prick with the force of a pair of pincers.
We both came to the extatic moment at the same time, and both actually
screamed with delight; my ardent mistress in her fury of excitement
actually bit my shoulder and drew blood; but I felt it not--I was in
the seventh heaven of delight, and lay for long almost insensible on
her beauteous body, clasped in her loving arms. On coming to our senses:

"Oh, my beloved boy," she said, "never, never, have I experienced such
pleasure. You are a perfect angel. I only fear I shall come to love you
too much."

We turned on our sides without dislodging the dear instrument of our
enjoyment, and my lovely friend prattled on and delighted me with her
toying, embracing, and gaiety. My prick had once more swelled up, and I
wished to quietly enjoy a fuck in the luxurious position in which we
lay; but my lovely friend said--

"That must not be, my dear Charles, I must consider your health. You
have already done more than your age warrants, and you must rise and go
to your bed to recover, by a sound sleep, your strength."

"But feel how strong I am," and I gave a forcible thrust into her
glowing and well-moistened sheath. But, though she certainly was
greatly excited, she suddenly turned round and unseated me, and drew
away from me, refusing to take it again. As she was quite naked, the
movements of her beauteous form were most graceful and enchanting, and
one leg being thrown backwards left her lovely cunt full in view, and
actually gaping open before me. Seized with the strongest desire to
suck and kiss it, as I had done the night before, I begged that at
least she would grant me that last favour, as it could not in any way
do me harm. To this she readily consented, and lay down on her back,
opening her glorious thighs, and with a pillow under her bottom so as
to raise up her cunt into a better position for me to gamahuche her, as
she called it. Before letting me begin, she said--

"My dear Charles, do you see that little projection at the upper part
of my quim, that is my clitoris, and is the site of the most exquisite
sensation; you see it is rather hard, even now, but you will find as
you titillate it with your tongue or suck it, that it will become
harder and more projecting, so apply your lips there."

I did as my lovely mistress desired, and soon found it stiffen and stand
up nearly an inch into my mouth.

The convulsive twitches of her buttocks, the pressure forward of her
hand on my head, all proved the exquisite felicity my lovely friend was
enjoying. I slipped my hand under my chin--the position was awkward,
but I managed to thrust my thumb into her cunt. My forefinger was
somewhat in the way--but finding it exactly opposite the rosy hole of
her bottom, and all being very moist there, I pushed it forward and it
easily entered. I could not move my hand very actively, but I continued
to gently draw my finger and thumb a little back together, and then
thrust forward again. It seemed to add immensely to the pleasure I was
giving her; her whole body quivered with excessive excitement. My head
was pressed so firmly against her cunt that I had difficulty in
breathing, but I managed to keep up the action of tongue and fingers
until I brought on the exquisite crisis--her buttocks rose, her hand
pressed hard on my head and her two powerful and fleshy thighs closed
on my cheeks on each side and fixed me as if in a vice, while she
poured down into my mouth and all over my chin, neck, and hand a
perfect rush of sperm, and then lay in convulsive movements of
enjoyment, hardly knowing what she was doing. As she held me so fast in
every way, I continued to lick up the delicious discharge, and
continued at the same time to pass my tongue over her clitoris. This,
by producing a new excitement, brought her senses round. So relaxing
her hold of me with her thighs she said--

"Oh, my darling Charles, come up to my arms that I may kiss you for the
exquisite delight you have given me." I did so, but took care, in
drawing myself up, to engroove my stiff-standing prick in the
well-moistened open cunt that lay raised on a pillow so conveniently in
the way.

"Oh, you sad traitor," cried my sweet companion. "No, I cannot, I must
not allow it," but I held her tight round the waist, and her position
was too favourable for me to be easily unhorsed.

"Ah! you must not, my dear boy. If you will not consider yourself,
consider me. I shall be quite exhausted." I shut her mouth with my
kisses and tongue, and soon the active movements I was making within
her charming vagina exercised their usual influence on her lubricity,
so as to make her as eager for the fray as myself.

"Stop, my dear Charles, and you shall have it in a new position, which
will give you as much more pleasure as it will me."

"You are not going to cheat me, are you?"

"Oh, no! my darling, I am now as much on fire as you are--withdraw."

I obeyed, half in fear. My fair mistress turned herself round, and
getting on her hands and knees, presented to my ardent gaze her
magnificent bottom. I thought she meant me to once more put it into the
rosy little orifice, and said so.

"Oh! no," she replied, "not there"; but putting her hand under her
belly, and projecting it backwards between her thighs, she said--

"Give it me and I will guide it into the proper place."

Before doing so I stooped forward and pushing my face between the
glorious cheeks of her bottom, sought and found the lovely little
orifice, kissed it, and thrust my tongue in.

"Oh! don't Charles, dear, you tickle me so," then flinching, and
squeezing her buttocks together, I had nothing for it but to put my
prick in her hand. She immediately guided it to and engulphed it in her
burning cunt up to the very hair. I found I apparently got in fully an
inch further this way--the position also gave my beautiful instructress
more power of pressure on my prick--then her glorious buttocks, heaving
under my movements, and exposed in all their immensity, was most
exciting and beautiful. I seized her below the waist with a hand upon
each hip, pressing her magnificent backside against me each time that I
thrust forward. Oh! it was indeed glorious to see. I was beside myself,
and furious with the excitement the view of all these charms produced
upon me. My charming mistress seemed equally to enjoy it, as was
evinced by the splendid movements of her body; till at last overcome by
the grand finale, she sank forward on her belly, and I followed on her
back, without losing the position of my throbbing prick within her. We
both lay for some time incapable of movement, but the internal
squeezing and convulsive pressure of her cunt on my softened, but still
enlarged prick, were exquisite beyond imagining. At last she begged me
to relieve her. Getting out of bed, she sighed deeply, kissed me
tenderly, and said, "My dear Charles, we must not be so extravagant in
future, it will destroy us both--come, let me see you to your bed." The
sight of my lovely mistress standing naked in all the glory of her
beauty and perfection of form began to have its usual effect upon my
prick, which showed symptoms of raising his head again; she gave it a
pat, stooped down, and for a moment plunged its head into her beautiful
mouth, then seizing my night-shirt, she threw it over my head and
conducted me to my own bed, put me in, tucked me up, and tenderly
kissing me, left the room, first unlocking my door and then locking the
door of communication between the two rooms. Thus passed the first
glorious night of my initiation into all the rites of Venus, and at the
hands of a lovely, fresh and beautiful woman, who had only been married
long enough to make her a perfect adept in the art. Never, oh never!
have I passed such a night. Many and many a fine woman, perfect too in
the art of fucking, have I enjoyed, but the novelty and the charm, the
variety and the superiority of the teacher, all combined to make this
night the _ne plus ultra_ of erotic pleasure.

It need not be said that, exhausted by the numerous encounters I had in
love's battlefield, I fell into a deep and sound sleep, until aroused
by being rudely shaked up. I opened my eyes in astonishment. It was my
sister Mary. She threw her arms round my neck, and kissing me, said--

"You lazy boy, do you know they are _all_ down at breakfast, and you
still asleep. What has come over you?"

"Oh!" I said, "I got frightened with a horrible dream, and lay awake so
long afterwards that when I did sleep, I overslept myself."

"Well, get up at once," and pulling the clothes quite off me, she laid
bare my whole private parts, with my cock, as usual in youth on waking,
at full stand.

"Oh! Charlie," said Mary, fixing her eyes upon it in astonishment at
its thickness and length. "How your doodle has grown," and she laid
hold of it. "Why it is as hard as wood, and see how red its head is."
Without her knowing why, it evidently had its natural effect on her
sense, and she flushed as she squeezed it.

"Ah! my dear Mary, I have learnt a great secret about that thing, which
I will tell you the first time we can be quite alone and secure from
interruption. Just now there is no time, but before you go downstairs,
let me see how your poor little Fanny is."

We had been used to these infantile expressions when in our ignorance
and innocence we had mutual examinations of the difference of our
sexes, and my sister was still as ignorant and innocent as ever. So
when I said that I had not seen it since it was so ill-treated in the
terrible whipping she had received from Miss Evelyn, she at once pulled
up all her petticoats for me to look at it.

"Lie back for a moment on the bed."

She complied. I was delighted. The prominence her mons Veneris had
assumed, the increased growth of moss-like little curls, and the
pouting lips of her tiny slit--all was most promising and charming. I
stooped and kissed it, licking her little prominent clitoris with my
tongue; it instantly hardened, and she gave a convulsive twitch of her
loins.

"Oh! Charlie, how nice it is! What is it you are doing? Oh, how nice!
Oh, pray go on."

But I stopped, and said--

"Not at present, my darling sister, but when we can get away together I
will do that and something much better, all connected with the great
secret I have got to tell you. So run downstairs, and tell them why I
had overslept myself, but not a word to anyone about what I have told
you. I will be down in a trice."

She went away, saying--

"Oh, Charlie, dear, what you did just now was so nice, and has made me
feel so queer; do find an early opportunity of telling me all about it."

Very few minutes sufficed to finish my toilet and bring me to the
breakfast table.

"Why, Charlie," broke out my mother, "what is this horrid dream?"

"I can hardly tell you, my dear mother, it was so confused; but I was
threatened to be murdered by horrid-looking men, and at last taken to
high rocks and thrown down. The agony and fright awoke me, screaming,
and all over perspiration. I could not sleep for hours after, even
though I hid my head under the clothes."

"Poor child," said Mrs. Benson, who was quietly eating her breakfast.
"What a fright you must have had."

"Yes, ma'am, and at the same time, as I awoke with a scream, I was
afraid I might have disturbed you, for all at once I remembered I was
no longer in mamma's room, but next door to you. I hope I did not wake
you?"

"Oh, no, my dear boy; I never heard you, or I should have got up to see
what was the matter."

So it passed off, and no further observation was made about it, but I
once caught Mrs. Benson's eye, and the expression and a slight nod was
a sign of approval of my story. After breakfast we went as usual to the
school-room. I thought Miss Evelyn was kinder in her manner to me than
usual. She made me stand close to her when saying my lessons,
occasionally letting her left arm fall round my neck, while she pointed
to my book with the finger of the right, and there was always a certain
pressure before raising her arm again. These little caresses were
frequently repeated, as if she were wishing either to accustom me or
herself to a habit of it, so as, doubtless, gradually to increase them
to something more definite. I could not help feeling what a different
effect these endearments would have had twenty-four hours earlier; but
now, momentarily satisfied passions, and the new love that had seized
me for Mrs. B., prevented at first the inevitable cockstand that would
otherwise have been produced by these approaches of Miss Evelyn. Not
that I had given up all desire to possess her. On the contrary, my last
night's instruction only made me more anxious to have Miss Evelyn too.
Therefore, I by no means repulsed her present caresses, but looked up
innocently in her face, and smiled affectionately. In the afternoon she
was more expansive, and drew me to her by her arm round my waist, and
pressed me gently to her person, saying how well I was attending to my
lessons, and how sorry she was to have been obliged to punish me so
severely the week before.

"You will be a good boy in future, will you not, dear Charlie?"

"Oh, yes; as long as you are so kind to me. I love you so much, and you
are so beautiful when you speak so kindly to me."

"Oh, you little flatterer."

And she drew me to her lips and gave me a sweet kiss, which I returned
with eagerness. I felt my prick had raised itself up to its full extent
as these caresses were exchanged, and as Miss Evelyn held me tight
pressed against her thigh, she must have felt it throbbing against her.
That she did so, I have no doubt, as her face flushed, and she said--

"There, now, that will do, go to your seat."

I obeyed; she rose in an agitated manner, left the room, and was absent
for a quarter of an hour. I had no doubt but that she was overcome by
her feelings, and I thought to myself she will manage to have me some
of these days. I could afford to leave it to her own discretion, as my
charming mistress of last night was there to keep me in exercise and
cool the effervescence of passion under which I should otherwise have
laboured. Nothing particular occured during the day; Mrs. B. was
apparently indifferent about me, and never sought to approach or be in
any way familiar; I studied her looks and followed her example. Mamma
sent me early to bed, as she feared I had not had sleep enough the
previous night by reason of my bad dream, and hoped I should have no
more of the kind. This time my beautiful mistress found me sound asleep
when she came to bed. She did not awake me until she had completed her
night toilet, and was all ready to receive me in her arms. I sprung up,
and in an instant, without a word being said, had her on her back, and
was into her delicious cunt as far as I could drive my stiff-standing
prick. My energy and fury seemed to please and stimulate the lady, for
she replied to every eager thrust with as eager a spring forward. In
such haste matters were very speedily brought to a crisis--with mutual
sighs, and "oh's" and "ah's," we sank exhausted, and lay for a very
short time, when charming Mrs. B. said--

"Why, Charles, you are quite wild to me; what a hurry you have been in,
but it was very nice, and I forgive you, but you must be more rational
in future."

"Oh, my beloved mistress, how can I help it; you are so beautiful, and
so good to me; I quite adore and love every part of your charming body.
I know I was too impetuous, but I must make it up by kissing and
fondling the dear source of all my joys."

She did not resist, but let me do as I liked. Pushing myself down the
bed, I applied my lips and tongue to her lovely cunt, all wet with our
mutual discharge, which was so sweet to the taste that I first began
licking between the lips, and the applied myself to her excited
clitoris, and with my finger and thumb working as on the previous
morning I threw her into an extasy of delight, until again she had a
delicious discharge. Then creeping up, I thrust my prick into her
well-moistened and velvety cunt--as you may imagine it was rampant as
ever after my mouth contact with the exquisite quim I had been sucking.

"Stop, Charles, darling, I will show you another position, where you
can lie easily with your dear delightful prick up to the hilt in the
sheath you have so charmingly excited. Here, lie down by my right side
--on your side."

She lay down on her back, and throwing her right leg over my hips, told
me to bend my knees forward and open my legs, or rather lift up my
right leg. She placed her left thigh between my thighs, then slightly
twisting her bottom up towards me brought the lips of her cunt directly
before my prick, which she seized with her delicate fingers, and guided
safely into Venus's grotto. I gave one or two shoves, and she a heave
or two, to house him comfortably.

"And now," she said, "we will take it reasonably in this way; we can go
on, or stay occasionally; embrace, cuddle, or talk, just as we please.
Are you quite comfortable?"

"Oh! deliciously so!" I replied, as my hand wandered all over her
beautiful belly and bubbies, and then my mouth sucked the last.

"There, darling, that will do for the moment; I want to have some talk
with you. First, let me thank you for your very discreet behaviour this
day, it quite justifies the confidence I had in you. Your story of the
dream was capital, and just suited the purpose. I hope, my dear
Charlie, that under my auspices you will become a model lover--your
aptitude has already proved in several ways. First and best, with all
the appearance of a boy, you are quite a man, and even superior to
many. You have already shown great discretion and ready wit, and there
is no reason to fear that you will become a general favourite with our
sex, who soon find out who is discreet and who is otherwise--discretion
is the trump card of success with us. Alas! few of your sex understand
this. Let me impress one lesson on you, my dear Charles. You and I
cannot continue long on our present footing. My husband will return and
carry me away, and although circumstances will throw us at intervals
into each other's arms--for you may be sure you will be always welcome
to me--yet my very absence will force you to seek other outlets to the
passions I have awakened and taught their power. I have one piece of
advice to give you as to your conduct to newer lovers--for have them
you must, my dear Charles, however much you may fancy yourself now
attached to me; with these, let them all for some time imagine that
each possesses you for the first time. First of all, it doubles their
satisfaction, and so increases your pleasure. Your early discretion
causes me to think that you will see all the advantages of this
conduct. I may add that if they suppose you have had previous
instruction, they, if they are women, will never rest until they have
drawn from you the secret of your first instructress. You might, of
course, tell some tale of a 'cock and a bull,' but in searching for the
truth and cross-questioning you when you are least aware of it, they
will lead you into contradictions, and the truth will at last be
ferreted out. Now this would be unjust to me, who have risked a good
deal to give you the delightful instructions of last night, and, as I
hope, of many more. So you see, my dear Charles, in all early cases you
must enact the part of an ignoramus _seeking_ for instruction, with
vague ideas of how to set about it. I hope, while I am near you," she
added, "no such occasion will arise, but I feel certain, with your
passions and your power, dear, darling fellow--push away--I!--I!--I
feel for cer--certain they will ar--arise."

Thus ended the very wise and excellent advice this charming woman was
giving me. Do not imagine that I did not pay great attention, and,
indeed, her very reasonable maxims became the guide of my after-life,
and I owe to them a success with women rarely otherwise obtained. Her
sensible remark had been drawn out to such a length, that my prick had
so far rebelled that he had throbbed inside of her delicious cunt so
forcibly as to produce a happy movement of her body that interrupted
and cut short her words.

"Charlie, my darling, pass your middle finger down and rub it on my
clitoris, and then suck the nipple of my bubby next you, and work away
with your glorious prick."

I did as desired. She seconded me with an art quite peculiar to
herself, and at last we both died away in that love's death which is so
overpowering and so delicious. The glorious position we were in
rendered it almost impossible to lose ground, spend as often as you
please; but if my prick had been one that would have shrunk to nothing,
the wonderful power of retaining it within her possessed by my
delicious mistress would have prevented the possibility of exit.

In after-nights I have often fallen sound asleep with it entirely
engulphed within her, and awoke hours afterwards to find her
extraordinary power of retention had held him firm, notwithstanding his
having shrunk up to a mere piece of doughy flesh. In this instance,
after recovering our senses, I still retained my place, and we
recommenced our conversation; my lovely instructress giving me many and
most useful hints for my after-life. I have often since dwelt on the
wisdom of all she so charmingly taught me, and wondered how so young a
woman could have so thorough a knowledge of her sex and the world. I
suppose love is a great master and inspired her on this occasion. I may
here remark that for forty years afterwards this charming woman and I
remained the fastest of friends after being the most ardent of lovers.
She was the depository of all my erotic extravagancies, and never
showed any jealousy, but really enjoyed the recital of my wildest love
combats with others.

Alas! death at last took her from me, and I lost the mainstay of my
existence. Forgive this digression, but I am writing long after these
events, and sorrows will have their vent. Woe is me!

To return to present joys. We continued talking and toying, until I was
again anxious to commence love's combat. My prudent mistress wished me
to finish for the time, and to sleep and refresh ourselves for renewed
efforts; but youth and strength nerved me for the fight, and being
securely fixed, I held her as in a vice, with my thighs around only one
of hers that could have allowed her to escape. Passing my finger down
on her stiffened clitoris I so excited her that she had no wish but to
bring matters to a crisis.

"Stop, my dear," she said, "and we will renew our pleasure in another
attitude."

So withdrawing her leg off my loins, she turned on her side, so as to
present her glorious buttocks before me, and pressed them into my belly
and against my thighs, which seemed to introduce my prick even further
than he was within before. Besides, in all these positions, where a
woman presents her splendid backside to you, it is always more
exciting, and has a greater hold of you than any other way. We did most
thoroughly enjoy this splendid fuck, and without withdrawing, both fell
into the sweetest imaginable slumber. This was one of those occasions
in which, having fallen asleep engulphed, I awoke some five hours
later, to find my prick still lightly held within the velvety folds of
one of the most delicious cunts ever created for the felicity of man,
or, I may say, woman either. You may easily imagine how soon my prick
swelled to his wonted size on finding himself still in such charming
quarters. I let him lay quite still, barring the involuntary throbs he
could not avoid making, and bending my body away from my lovely
mistress, I admired her breadth of shoulders, the beauty of her upper
arm, the exquisite _chute_ of her loins, the swell of her hips, and the
glorious projection and rotundity of her immense buttocks. I slowly and
gently pushed in and out of her juicy sheath, until, awakened by the
exquisite sensations of my slow movements, all her lubricity was
excited, and we ended one of our most delicious encounters, finishing,
as usual, with a death-like exhaustion. She declared I had done enough
for one night, and jumping out of bed, compelled me to betake myself to
my own room, where, I must confess, I very shortly slept as sound as
could be, without at the same time oversleeping myself.

Thus passed several successive nights, until the fall of the moon, when
one day Mrs. B. complained of headache and feeling unwell. I was very
much alarmed, but she took occasion to tell me it was quite natural,
and she would explain to me how it was so at night. I was obliged to be
content with this. At night, she came and sat on my bed, and told me
all the mysteries of the case. How women, not with child, had these
bleedings monthly, which, so far from being hurtful, were a relief to
the system, and that they happened at the full or the new moon,
generally at the former. Further, that all connection with men must
cease at such a time. I was in despair, for my prick was stiff enough
to burst. However, my kind and darling mistress, to relieve me from the
pain of distention, took my prick in her mouth, and performed a new
manoeuvre. Wetting her middle finger with her saliva, she thrust it up
my bottom-hole, and worked in unison with the suction of the knob, and
the frigging of the root of my prick with the other hand. I had a most
exquisite and copious discharge, the pleasure being greatly enhanced by
the action of the finger up my fundament. My charming mistress
swallowed all I could give her, and did not cease sucking until the
last drop had exuded from my throbbing prick.

I was obliged to be satisfied with this, and my mistress informed me I
could have no more enjoyment for four or five days; which, to my
impatience, was like condemning me to as many ages of hope deferred. I
observed, while she was kissing me, that her breath had a peculiar
odour, and I asked her what she had been eating.

"Why do you ask, my dear boy?"

"Because of the difference of your breath, generally so sweet and
fragrant."

She smiled and said it was all from the same cause she had just been
explaining to me, and was very generally so with women at that period.
I mention this because it was the means of my discovering that Miss
Evelyn was exactly in the same state. She had continued her endearing
caresses without proceeding much further than I have already described,
except more frequently kissing me. She now always did so on first
entering the school-room, and also when we were dismissed. I suppose to
prevent an observation or inference, she had adopted the same habit
with my sisters. On this day, having drawn me with her arm round my
waist close to her, when she kissed me I felt the very same odour of
breath that I had observed in Mrs. Benson. She too was languid that day
and complained of headache. I also observed a dark line under her eyes,
and on afterwards observing Mrs. B., saw precisely the same--so I
became convinced they were unwell from the same cause. Mrs. B. had told
me that most women were so at the full of the moon--which was then the
case.

The next day my mother proposed to drive to town, and probably knowing
the state of the case, asked Mrs. B. and Miss Evelyn to accompany her,
as she thought the airing would be beneficial. They at once
accepted--my younger sister cried out, "Oh, mamma, let me go with you
also." Mary interposed, and thought she had the best right--but Lizzie
said she had spoken first. I managed to give Mary a wink and a shake of
the head, which she instantly comprehended, so gracefully giving way,
although with apparent reluctance, it was arranged that Eliza should
accompany the ladies. I now felt my opportunity was at hand to initiate
my darling sister into the delightful mysteries that I had just been
myself instructed in.

At eleven o'clock the carriage drove up, and we stood looking after
them until they were lost to sight. Then returning into the parlour,
Mary threw her arms round my neck, and kissing me, said--

"Oh! I am glad, Charlie, you winked to me, for now you know we can do
as we like, and you can tell me all about this secret, and you must
kiss my little Fanny as you did before, it was so nice. I have thought
of nothing else, but how to have it done again."

"Well, my darling, I shall do all that, and more, but we cannot do so
here. I tell you what we will do--we will pretend to go for a long walk
in the country, but instead of that, we will pass through the shrubbery
into the orchard and hazelwood, and so gain the little remote summer
house, of which I have secured the key; there we shall be safe from all
observation."

This little summer house was at some distance from the house, and in a
lonely corner of the orchard, raised on an artificial mount, so that
its windows should command a lovely view beyond the walls of the
grounds. It was about ten feet square--was beautifully sheltered, and
the ladies in summer took their work there, and occupied it for hours
every fine day; so it was furnished with tables and chairs, and on one
side a long couch without a back. It had already entered into my idea
that this was the spot I should contrive to get to with Mary--little
thinking how chance would throw so glorious an opportunity in my way so
soon. It was always kept locked to prevent it being used by the
servants, gardeners, or others. I knew where the key was kept, and
secured it when the ladies were dressing for their drive--so after
staying sufficiently long to prevent any suspicion, and saying then we
were going for a long walk in the country, so as to prevent them
seeking for us at the summer house if any visitors should chance to
call, we sallied out, but re-entered the grounds where we could not be
observed, and speedily gained the spot we had in view--entered and
locked the door. Then I drew down the blinds, threw off my coat and
waistcoat, and told Mary to take off her shawl and bonnet, and outer
gown.

"But why all this, Charlie, dear?"

"First, my darling--all those are in the way of kissing and toying with
your charming little Fanny, and next, I don't want anything to appear
tumbled when we go back."

This was enough, and she did everything as I desired, indeed, more, for
she took off her petticoat and little corset, saying she would be
cooler thus. So, following her example, I took off my trousers, saying
she would be better able to see and play with my doodle. When these
preliminaries were accomplished, I drew her on my knees--first pulling
up her shift and my own shirt, so that our naked flesh should be in
contact. Seeing that her chemise fell off from her bosom, I first felt
her little bubbies, which were beginning to develope themselves, and
had the tiniest little pink nipples that even my lips could hardly get
hold of. She had pulled up my shirt to look again at the great change
that had occured to my prick--of course, our preliminaries had already
excited it to a stiff-standing position.

"Oh, Charlie, what a size it is to be sure; and how nice to pull this
skin over its head; look how it runs back again. Oh! how funny!"

It was time to stop this, or she would have soon made me discharge.

"Well, then, what is this great secret, and what has it to do with your
doodle and my Fanny?"

"I will tell you, but you must never say a word to a soul--not even to
Eliza, she is too young yet."

"Well, go on."

"I was one day seeking something in the closet in Mrs. Benson's room,
when I heard them coming, and had only the time to slip into the
closet. They entered, locked the door, and Mr. B. laid her on the bed,
and lifted up all her petticoats so that I saw her Fanny quite
surrounded with hairs, as yours will be by and by. Mr. B, stooped down,
and applied his tongue as I did to you the other morning."

"Oh, yes; and it was so nice, Charlie!"

That is exactly what Mrs. B. said when he had done. Then he pulled out
his doodle, such a size, much bigger than mine, and whipped it into her
Fanny. I was quite frightened, and thought he must have killed her. But
no, it went in quite easy; and she hugged and kissed him while he
pushed it up and down for some time, till they both stopped all at
once. He then drew it out, hanging down all wet, and asked if it had
not given her great pleasure. 'Delightful,' she said. I have now got
used to it, but you know you hurt me, and made me so sore the first
time you did it.' After this they left the room, and I got away without
being discovered. But I found out what our two things were made for, we
will do as they did, so lie down on the couch whilst I kneel at the
end, and begin in the way I kissed it the other morning."

"Oh, Charlie, if it is all like that, I shall be so pleased with it."

Down she squatted, drawing up her chemise. My hand wandered all over
her charming belly and mount. Then kneeling down, and putting her legs
over my shoulders, and my hands under her thighs and bottoms, I applied
my tongue at once to her little clitoris, which I found was already
stiff, and showing its head at the upper part of her pinky slit. The
action of my agile tongue produced an instantaneous effect--her loins
and thighs heaved up her bottom to press her little pouting cunt
against my face. Mechanically she put her hand on my head, and muttered
terms of endearment--

"Oh, darling Charlie, how delicious! Oh! do go on! it is so nice, &c."

I wanted no stimulant, but licked away until, with shortened breath;
and greater heavings of her body, she began to stammer--

"Oh! oh! I feel so queer--ah, stop; I am going to faint--I, I, I,
can't--can't bear it any longer--oh!--oh!" Her limbs relaxed, and she
died away in her first discharge, which was very glutinous and nice,
but only scanty in quantity. I let her quiet until she came to; then
looking in her face, and smiling, I asked her how she liked it.

"Oh! I was in heaven, dear Charlie, but I thought it was killing me
--it was almost too much to bear--nothing could be more delicious."

"Oh, yes!" I replied, "there is something more delicious still, but, I
must kiss you in this way again before we try the other; the more moist
the inside is the easier I shall get in."

"But, Charlie, you don't mean to say you will ever get in your doodle,
now that it has grown so big."

"Well, we will try, and if it hurts you too much we can stop."

So I began again to gamahuche her; this time it took a longer effort to
produce the ultimate result; but apparently with still greater effect,
and a more copious discharge. Her little cunt being now relaxed, and
well moistened with her own discharge and my saliva, and well inclined
to receive my prick, I spat upon it and lubricated it from head to
root. Then rising from my knees, I stretched myself over Mary's belly,
and gently directing my prick, and rubbing it up and down first between
the lips, and exciting her clitoris by the same action, I gently and
gradually inserted its head between the lips of her charming little
cunt. There was less difficulty than might have been expected, the
gamahuching and double spending had relaxed the muscles, and her
passions being excited also acted on her organs of generation; at all
events, I got in the head, and about two inches of its length without
her murmuring anything beyond--

"How big it feels--it seems to stretch me so."

All this was exciting me dreadfully, and it was only by the greatest
effort that I did not thrust rudely forward. I now felt I was pushing
against some obstacle, I thrust hard and hurt her. She cried out,
begged me to stop. I was so near the finale that I felt I must go on.
So, plunging forward, I rushed, at the impediment, and made her cry out
most lustily. Probably another push would have decided my position, but
nature could hold out no longer, and I yielded down my erotic tribute
to her virginal charms, without having actually deflowered her. So far,
perhaps, it was fortunate, because I poured into her a torrent of sperm
which was not only balm to her partially wounded hymen, but so relaxed
and lubricated the interior of her cunt as greatly to facilitate my
after-efforts.

I lay quiet still for some time, and the gradual swelling out and
throbbing of my prick reawakened her young passions. She said--

"Charlie, my dear, you said that it would prove delicious in the end,
and I can feel it is becoming so. I have no more pain, and you shall go
on just as you like."

As my prick stiffened at her endearing words and involuntary pressures,
and as I had it completely under control, since I had taken the edge
off its immediate appetite by the last discharge, I held it literally
well in hand; and as I had lost no ground by withdrawing, I started
with the advantage of possession. First I slipped my hand down between
our two bellies and began frigging her clitoris, which immediately
excited her passions to the highest pitch.

"Oh! Charlie, dear, now push it all in--I do so long for it--and I
don't care how it hurts me."

I had been giving short thrusts more to stimulate her passions than to
alleviate my own; and as she was totally unaware of what was going to
happen, she widened her thighs and heaved up her bottom, expanding her
vagina in the act. I gathered my strength together, and as my cock was
standing as stiff as iron, I suddenly drove it forward, and felt that I
broke through something, and gained two inches more insertion at least.
The effect on my poor sister was most painful, she shrieked out
lustily; strove hard to unsheath me, wriggled her body in all
directions to effect this; but I was too securely engulphed for that,
and all her struggles only enabled me the more easily to sheathe him up
to the very hairs. So excited was I by her tears and screams, that I
was no sooner there than a torrent of sperm burst from me, and I lay
like a corpse on her body, but perfectly maintaining the ground I
possessed. This death-like quiet lasted some minutes, and, to a certain
extent, assuaged the violence of the pain I put poor Mary to.
Doubtless, also, the balmy nature of the ample quantity of sperm I had
shot up to her womb helped to soothe her suffering. At all events, when
we were both able again to converse, she unbraided me with the agony I
had caused her, and wished me to get off her at once; but retaining the
advantageous possession of her very tight and delicious sheath, I told
her all was now over, and we might look forward to nothing but
enrapturing pleasure.

Some minutes had elapsed in these remonstrances on one side; and
coaxings on the other, when I suddenly felt her charming little cunt
actually throb upon and give an involuntary squeeze to my prick, which
was still throbbing her. He was far too ready to stand at any time,
still more when engulphed in the exquisite young cunt he had just
initiated into love's mysteries--_bref_--he stood stiff as ever, and
Mary, at first with a shudder of fright, then with all the energy of
awakened passion, began to move her body under me. I held off from any
interference, feeling certain that if the desire came naturally to her
it would doubly enhance my own pleasure. My foresight did not fail me.
Mary's passions became fully aroused, and when so, the trifling
soreness passed out of mind, and we actually had a most delicious fuck,
in which my prick appeared as if in a vice, and Mary wriggled her
backside almost as well as the more artistic movements of Mrs. Benson.
All things must come to an end, but this did so amid screams of delight
on both sides. This single bout began and finished the education of my
darling sister. She hugged and fondled me afterwards, declaring I was
quite right in telling her pleasure followed pain; for nothing could
exceed the enrapturing nature of the sensation my prick had produced.
She thought now that it was not a bit too big, but just made to give
the utmost satisfaction. We remained locked in each other's arms, my
prick still engulphed in its tight and exciting sheath. We fondled and
prattled, until it became again in a state of violent erection, equally
stimulating her tight little cunt, so that we were forced to recommence
our love encounter. I found that my dear little sister possessed
naturally the power of throbbing on or nipping a prick, which the
French call casse-noisette. It is a great gift and adds immensely to
the man's pleasure, and I should think to the woman's too. In my
sister's case it began from the very first complete insertion of my
prick and the years that I afterwards continued to fuck her added
nothing to this delicious accomplishment, except in the variety of
positions in which it could be exercised.

The dear girl was in extasies at the pleasure she had received, and at
the pain which seemed to be past. Oh! she was so sweetly caressing that
I could not withdraw from her, and we fondled and toyed until again my
cock rose to his first vigour, and she nothing loath, began her new and
naturally taught gift of bottom upheavings and cunt pressures until
again we sank exhausted in the death-like ending of love's battles. On
recovering our senses, I was obliged to withdraw and relieve my sister
of the dead weight of my body on her person.

It has always struck me as extraordinary how the most delicate women
will support a heavy man on their persons, not only without flinching,
but even with ease and pleasure--but so it is. On rising and
withdrawing, we were both alarmed to see that my prick was all bloody,
and that blood and semen were oozing from her cunt. We had no idea this
would be the case, and at first I was as frightened as she was. A
moment's reflection showed me that it was only the natural result of
forcing my way in, and that the pleasure since enjoyed proved it to be
of no consequence. I soon convinced and calmed my sister on the
point--fortunately the sofa covering was red, and applying my
handkerchief, I wiped up all the semen mixture, and, in fact, no marks
remained; the same handkerchief wiped all results from Mary's dear
little cunt, and as her shift had been kept well up, fortunately no
stains appeared upon that.

We now ate some luncheon and drank some wine that we had prudently
brought with us. We then began playing and romping together--she
wanting always to get hold of my prick, and I to pull her about in
every way. It was gloriously warm weather, so I proposed we should off
with every thing. In a trice we were as naked as we were born, and flew
into each other's arms in a frenzy of delight, then we had a mutual
thorough inspection. My darling sister gave every promise of becoming a
magnificent woman--her shoulders were already wide--her arms well
shaped, although still thin--her waist small--the swell of the hips
already well developed--as to her bottom, it stuck out well and hard
behind, quite charming to see, and giving promise of very ample
dimensions hereafter.

I made her kneel on the low couch, with her head well up and her thighs
open; kneeling behind, I gamahuched her until she spent; then rising,
shoved my prick into her cunt, in her then position, and had a
downright good poke, which she, too, found was a way that gave her
extra excitement. We passed thus some hours in mutual delights. I
taught her the side fuck which had so charmed me with my delightful
instructress, and I found dear Mary even an apter scholar than myself
had proved. The afternoon advancing, we dressed, and eradicating all
signs of what we had been doing, returned to the house, mutually
promising to keep thoroughly secret all that had passed and agreeing
that no sign of unusual familiarity should escape us. I strongly
advised Mary to get some warm water and bathe her cunt well, for, as
may be supposed, I had taken the opportunity of teaching her the true
erotic language as applied to the organs of generation of both sexes,
and the name of the connection itself, "fucking."

Thus delightfully ended the first lesson in love taught to my sister,
and such was my first triumph over a maidenhead, double enhanced by the
idea of the close ties of parentage between us. In after-life, I have
always found the nearer we are related, the more this idea of incest
stimulates our passions and stiffens our pricks, so that if even we be
in the wane of life, fresh vigour is imparted by reason of the very
fact of our evasion of conventional laws.

We had both returned to the drawing-room for more than an hour before
the arrival of the ladies. Dear Mary complained of feeling sore and
stiff in every limb. I had advised her to lie down on the sofa and try
to sleep. I did the same, and happily we both dozed off, and never
awoke until the loud rat-tat of arrival at the house door roused us up.
I told Mary to hide all appearance of pain, and only to say, as an
excuse for going early to bed, that we had gone further afield than we
at first intended, and that she was very tired. We were both sent early
to bed, for I was still treated as quite a boy, and I was sound asleep
when my charming Mrs. B. woke me up by her warm caresses. I could well
have spared them that night, but when did one of my years not respond
to the endearments of the woman he loved, and who yielded all to him.
She sucked me dry as usual, and I slept soundly till morning.

The next three days passed without anything to record. Mary did not
allow her real soreness to appear, but heroically went through her
sufferings, for she told me afterwards she felt very severe pains all
over, doubtless her whole nervous system had been overexcited, and this
was the natural reaction; it was so far fortunate that not a shadow of
a chance of our having fresh connection occurred, so she had time to
perfectly recover from the ill effects of her first initiation into the
erotic raptures. I continued to have the relief each night of the
charming mouth of my loved and beautiful instructress. At last, the
abominable _menses_, as she called them, were past and gone. For a full
twenty-four hours after, she would not allow me to reassume all the
privileges she had previously granted, and admit me to share her bed.
She told me this was necessary to prevent any recurrence, and also that
in some cases a virulent white discharge occasionally followed for some
hours, sufficiently acrid to affect my local health, and "that," she
added, "was now too precious in her estimation to risk it in any way."
I thought it hard at the time, but it was only another proof of the
thoughtful wisdom of this estimable woman. At last, I was again in full
possession of her charming person. Oh! how we did revel in all the
luxuries and lubricity; almost every night my enchanting friend found
some new position to vary and enhance our erotic raptures. One new dose
was laying me down flat on my back, then straddling over me, she sank
on her knees, and with body erect, lifted up or rather bent back my
stiff-standing prick, until he was fairly below her open cunt, then
guiding it exactly to the proper entrance, she sank her body slowly
down upon it until fully engulphed, hair crushed hair, then as slowly
raising again, she drew off until all but the nut was uncovered, to
again sink down. In this position we could both see the whole process.
At length, becoming too excited, she sank on my bosom, then one arm and
hand pressed her splendid buttocks down on my throbbing prick after
every elevation of her magnificent backside while my other hand,
doubling round behind her, introduced the middle finger up her charming
bottom-hole, and worked in and out in unison with both our heaving
movements, until stopped by the grand crisis, when death-like langour
overcame us both almost at the same moment. I must not forget to
mention that from time to time I paid a visit to the small and rosy
orifice that lay so near to the more legitimate altar of Venus. It was
a variety of enjoyment that my lovely mistress acknowledged to me she
at times felt much inclined to enjoy, but only after having the front
path of pleasure well fucked and lubricated with sperm, which alone
caused the other mucous membrane to feel inclined that way.

I will here insert a characteristic letter from my loved mistress to
her intimate and bosom school friend, with the reply thereto. It was
several years before they were shown to me, and some time after I had
possessed _both_ the charming writers, for we all three became fast
friends; indeed, I may call myself or rather my prick, the pivot on
which their friendship turned, yet there never was the shade of
jealousy on either part, but in these remarks I am anticipating what I
may, perhaps, be hereafter tempted to describe more fully. I give these
letters now, because they immediately refer to the events I am at
present relating. They show the secret working of my loved mistress's
mind, and the voluptuous nature of her temperament, and the
satisfaction that my delicious initiation had given. Her affectionate
and flattering remarks, relating to myself, are greater than I
deserved. The following is the first letter addressed to her friend:



MRS. BENSON TO THE HON. MRS. EGERTON.



Dear Carry,

I am about to keep my promise, and give you an account of our
honeymoon. You, my dear, must be equally faithful, and reply as frankly
as I am now about to write to you.

Two giddier girls than you and I never entered the bonds of matrimony,
or more earnestly longed for the sights connected with it. Well, after
the usual breakfast, we left by rail for Leamington, where we were to
pass our first night. We had a _coupé_ to ourselves; and beyond seating
me on his knee, and kissing me, Fred behaved with much decency and
propriety. We arrived and dined. The hour between tea and bedtime was
sufficiently tedious, as both of us were naturally much preoccupied. My
husband wrote a letter to mamma, telling her of our safe arrival, and
of his intense happiness. After which he asked me if I would go to bed,
in the most matter-of-fact way imaginable. I murmured an affirmative,
scarcely knowing what to say. He rang for a candle, and told me he
would follow shortly. It seemed like a dream to me. The maid showed me
to a room containing a large four-post bedstead, heavily hung with
curtains, and provided with old-fashioned furniture.

I seated myself on the edge of the bed and began to meditate. I sat
thus, for, I dare say, ten minutes, and then commenced undressing. I
had put on my night-gown, and removed everything but my stockings, when
I heard footsteps approach the door. I opened, and my husband entered,
closed it, and turned the key. Oh! Carry, I did feel so funny. I was
undressed in a bedroom with a man, and that man had a right to my
person. He seated himself in an armchair, and drew me on his knee.
Nothing but my thin night-gown separated my bottom from his bare knee,
for he had quite undressed in an adjoining room and had nothing on but
his shirt under his dressing-gown, which flew open as he sat down. He
drew my lips to his, and kissing me, thrust his tongue between them,
while his hand first caressed and squeezed my bosom, which, you know,
is pretty full and well developed; it then wandered down upon my thigh,
pressed and felt the fleshy form. Little by little he approached my
belly, and for a moment pressed my mount. These preliminaries are at
all times exciting, but now they made me almost ill, so great was my
confusion. Seeing this, he drew up my night-gown, and placed his hand,
first on my naked thigh, then on my mount, and you know, Carry dear,
what a forest I have got there. He seemed delighted with it. His
fingers played with the silky curls, drawing them out to their full
length, so long that it appeared to surprise him, and his eyes
sparkled, and his face showed much excitement.

"Open your thighs, dearest," he whispered.

I obeyed mechanically, and his middle finger forced itself between the
lips of my cunt, and commenced rubbing my clitoris. You know, by
experience, what an excitable one it is and to what a size it developes
itself when excited. Again Fred seemed delighted with his discovery.

"Does that please you, my darling?"

"Yes," I faltered out.

He thrust his finger up my cunt, then rose up, threw off his
dressing-gown, took me in his arms, and lifted me on the bed, placing a
pillow under my head. Then letting my legs fall over the sides, he
knelt on the floor, and separating my thighs with his arms, stooped and
kissed my quim. He did more, he sucked and then licked with his tongue
my already excited clitoris. It set me on fire, and I could not avoid
showing it by the convulsive twitchings of my loins and buttocks.

"Do you like that, my love?"

"Oh! yes; so much!--so very much!"

I was nearly mad with the excitement he was putting me into. He again
stood up, and lifting my legs, his hands pressed them again and again.

"What delicious legs," he exclaimed.

I could see his shirt bulging out. He leant forward, and with his arms
under my legs, lifted them well up, and I felt a stiff thick thing
pressing against my cunt. His left hand opened the lips, his right hand
guided it between them, and a cruel push lodged its great head
completely within. Neither you, or I, Carry, were strictly virgins, our
fingers and other means had opened our vaginas to a certain extent. We
had played too many tricks together to have left our maidenheads quite
intact, so that the passage was less difficult than it might have been.
Nevertheless, it had never been penetrated by the male organ, and that
of my husband was of the largest. I experienced, therefore, a great
deal of pain, and cried out--

"Oh, my dear Fred, you hurt me dreadfully, what are you doing?"

"Doing, my darling! why, I am getting into you. Have a little patience,
and I will make you mad with pleasure."

Another determined thrust sent him halfway, and then with another,
still more violent, he lodged himself up to the hilt within. I screamed
with real pain, and struggled to free myself.

"Good heavens, sir, you are killing me; I will not endure such
treatment."

He heeded me not, but holding me fast by the thighs commenced shoving
in and out furiously. A sensitive woman never receives an insertion of
this kind with impunity. The friction began to excite feelings that
first deadened the pain of entrance, and then began to awaken the
delicious sensations of lubricity. The enjoyment I began to experience
was delicious, and I could not refrain from heaving up to meet his
thrusts.

"That is right, my angel; was I not correct in saying it would soon
turn from pain to pleasure? Do you not enjoy it now?"

"Yes; but you make me feel so funny. I don't know what--it--is."

His increased and rapid movement filled me with delight; I bounded up
and down in response to his thrusts, and felt so queer when, all of a
sudden, he gasped for breath, stopped, and I felt a greater and stiffer
swelling of his instrument, and then a gush of hot liquid dashed
against my womb, which continued running for some seconds. This, Carry,
was my first experience of what a man can do for us.

Withdrawing his huge affair--for he since admits he is larger than most
men--letting go my thighs--he pressed down upon me, and tenderly
embraced me, and said that I had behaved admirably; in future there
would be no more pain, and from what he had already experienced he felt
sure I was made for the fullest enjoyment that husband and wife could
indulge in. After a little fondling, he rose, drew off my stockings,
and helped me into bed, immediately following me. On throwing back the
clothes to enter the bed, he said he must kiss the dear little hairy
thing that had given him such pleasure. He kissed and toyed with it
admiring the profusion of hair on my mount, the whiteness and beauty of
my belly, and then, baring my breasts, admired, kissed, and sucked
them. All this not only excited me, but I could see very well it had
again caused his affair to stick out. Seeing that I was timidly
glancing at it, he seized my hand, and made me lay hold of it, showed
me how the skin covered and uncovered its head; then becoming
rampageous, he got on my belly and between my thighs, and again
introduced his cock to where it had already given such pleasure. He
still rather hurt me, and made me smart for a little while, but as the
interior was well lubricated by his former discharge, the penetration
was easily accomplished. When up to the hilt, and the two hairs were
closely joined, he paused and said--

"We will take it less impatiently this time, that my darling Bessie may
enter into all the joys of fucking, for that is what we call it my
dear; so I shall go slowly to work until my darling's passions awake
and urgently call for more rapid movements."

He did so, and gradually produced the most lascivious excitement in my
whole body. I writhed beneath him in the utmost extasy, threw my arms
round his body, and hugged him to me.

"Oh! you are an angel," he cried, "and made for enjoyment. Throw your
legs also over my back--there, that is it--and now I will hasten my
movements, and we will die away together."

Oh, the delight he gave me was inexpressibly delicious; his rapid and
eager thrusts were as eagerly met by the upheaving of my bottom to
reciprocate them. The grand crisis seized us simultaneously, and we
sank momentarily exhausted in each other's arms, leaving the dear
exciter of such joys soaking within. My dear husband was so pleased, he
kissed and fondled me in the sweetest manner, telling me that never
woman before had yielded him such intense pleasure, that nature had
prompted me to as much enjoyment as if I had been already married a
month.

We were locked closely in the warmest embrace; his tenderness and
fondling began to have its effect on my passions, and involuntarily I
made; some internal convulsive twitchings.

"I feel you, my darling, calling on my instrument for renewed efforts;
he will soon respond."

And, in fact, I felt it swelling and swelling so deliciously that I
could not help continuing the interior pressures, although feeling
confusedly ashamed of the notice my husband took of it.

"Don't be afraid, my sweetest love, but give way to whatever your
passions dictate, and thus you will best please me, and give to
yourself double enjoyment. I mean to initiate you into every secret
that the rites of Venus possess, and wish that my loved wife should
become a devoted votary, and I will do my best that she may revel in
all the luxuries of perfect coition."

We completed this course with even greater abandon than before, and I
began to enjoy his embraces beyond anything our imaginations used to
suggest. This time he withdrew and lay down by my side, and taking me
within both his arms, continued his charming endearments. I never slept
that night; I was in a fever of restless excitement. My husband fucked
me five times before he dozed off. Towards morning I tossed and
tumbled, and could not sleep. Daylight soon came, my restlessness had
shaken all the bed clothes off, except a part of the sheet, and turning
towards my husband, I perceived that the sheet stuck up over the lower
part of his body. Curiosity seized me--I looked at him, and saw he was
evidently sleeping. So gently removing the sheet, I beheld the dear
instrument of all my last night's joys as well as pains. You know how
we used to long to see man's cock when we were at school, and how, when
we did sometimes see a boy's limp thing hanging down, we used to wonder
what change would come over it, and how. Well, here was an opportunity
of examining, at my ease, the wonderful curiosity that had so puzzled
us. The last edge of the sheet passing over it touched its ruby head;
it throbbed and pulsated to the view. I was afraid this had awakened
Fred, but no, he slept as sound as ever. So I gently raised myself on
my bottom, and gazed on the dear object I had so longed to see and
feel. There it stood up like a pillar, rather bending towards his
belly: and what surprised me much was to see a dark strongly wrinkled
bag at its roots, with apparently two large balls inside; the hair on
its roots spread in dark mass up to his navel, and beautifully bright
and curling it was. I approached my lips, and made the action of
kissing, without touching it. Whether it felt my warm breath, I know
not, but it actually throbbed a response. What a great big thing it
was, equally long as it was thick, I did not think I could encircle it
with my hand; I longed to try, but was afraid I should waken Fred, and
what would he think of me, I blushed at the very idea; but my passions
became excited, and too strong to resist the temptation. So first lying
gently down again, I very quietly dropped my arm over him and touched
his cock, it throbbed at the touch, but Fred slept on. So raising
myself again, I very gently laid bold of it. It was as much as I could
grasp below the head, but was beyond my grasp at the root; I found it
took three of my hands to measure its length from the root to the nut,
which stood out in all its redness above. I was almost breathless with
excitement, and lost some of my caution. Stooping down, I gently kissed
the ruby head, when, before I knew where I was, it was pushed up into
my mouth, and my husband's voice said--

"Oh, you dear darling creature! how kind of you to waken me so
luxuriously!"

I was horrified at being discovered; and blushing up to the eyes, I hid
my face in his bosom.

"Do not be ashamed, my angel, it is now as much yours as mine, and have
you not as much right to see, kiss, and handle it? come, don't be
ashamed."

However, I could not face him, and when he tried to raise my head I
turned my back. He seized me round the waist, and, before I knew where
I was, passed a hand between my thighs, and guided his huge cock to the
lips of my cunt, and was in me, I thought further than ever, in a
moment. It is true the previous toying with his instrument had terribly
excited me, and I had felt that my cunt had become very moist, but I
had no idea that anything could be accomplished in that position. I was
most delightfully undeceived, for not only did it feel tighter in it,
but transferring his fingers from guiding his prick, he touched and
played with my clitoris, and produced such excessive lubricity that I
went off and spent with a scream of delight before he was ready; but
continuing with finger and cock to ravish me inside and out, he soon
brought me again to such a pitch of lewdness that I was quite ready to
spend with him when the grand crisis arrived. Nothing could exceed the
pleasure; my internal pressures, he declared, were the most exquisite
he had ever experienced. My clitoris, too, he declared was quite
unique. You remember how it used to stick out when excited as far as
the first thumb joint, and how, when sometimes I played the husband on
your belly, you declared that it actually entered between the lips of
your cunt, rubbed against your smaller development, and gave you great
pleasure, as indeed it gave me. My husband has often examined and
sucked it, and admires it beyond measure. At present he did not
withdraw, declaring that I held him so tight he did not think he could
pull it out if he tried. In fact, it was involuntary on my part, and I
could not help clinging to his dear instrument for the life of me.

Oh, how he fondled and embraced me, making me partially turn my body so
that he might kiss and tongue me, and then suck my bubbies; his busy
finger all the time tickling and frigging my clitoris. I soon felt his
cock swelling so deliciously within me, and he shortly recommenced his
rapturous pushings in and out. We made a long, long bout of it, and I
am sure that I spent twice before joining him at the last moment, when
he died away in a shout of joy that I feared must have been heard by
the servants in the house, who long before this had been on the move.
After this we lay soaking and enjoying it for more than half an hour,
when my husband declared he felt as if a wolf was at his stomach, and
that he must have some breakfast. He got up and quickly dressed,
desiring me to lie still, and he would bring me some breakfast in bed,
and that, while it was getting ready, he would order some warm water to
bathe myself with. I felt his delicacy, and loved him for it. The water
came, I was much refreshed after using it, and got into bed again, but
I felt awfully stiff and done up all that and next day.

My darling husband waited on me himself at breakfast, stimulating me to
eat freely as a means of restoring my lost strength; which he very soon
put to the test again, for he fucked me three times during the day, and
each time he gave me greater pleasure than before. He was just as
active at night. And the whole three weeks we stayed at Leamington, he
never fucked me less than four times a night, declaring that I had
become most perfect in the exercise.

We then came here, our old friend, Mrs. Roberts, having kindly insisted
upon our paying her a long visit Fred has been called away suddenly and
will not return for a month. I am sure you will pity me, as you know my
temperament is too hot to keep chaste so long. You remember Charlie
Roberts; you would consider him a child, but he is not so. One
afternoon Fred followed me into my bedroom, as was usual, and
gamahuched and fucked me on the edge of the bed. I was about to leave
the room after he was gone, when on opening a closet, in which my
dresses were hung, who should I discover but this same Charlie. I was
in a fix.

There was no doubt the lad had seen everything. I spoke kindly to him,
and he promised secrecy. In order to ensure it, I determined to have
his maidenhead. A few days afterwards my husband left me, and the girls
with their mamma and the governess went to town with him, leaving
Charlie to keep me company. I went upstairs with him to the
drawing-room, and seating myself in a low chair, crossed my legs
carelessly, exposing them, and letting the garter and part of the bare
skin of one thigh be visible. The effect was what I expected. I saw
Charlie's eyes fixed on the exposure, he blushed scarlet, and I could
distinctly see his cock swell out under his trousers. In a little while
I had unbuttoned them, and, oh, Carry, would you imagine it, I found he
had the cock of a man. I could scarcely believe my eyes. He is not
quite fifteen, and yet he is almost as large as Fred. Here was a
godsend, indeed! I drew up my petticoats, and the gallant little fellow
instantly fell on his knees, kissed and sucked my cunt. To reward him,
I placed him on his back on the couch, and got on the top of him. I
took his pego into my mouth, and pressed my cunt against his face, we
devoured each other with our luxurious caresses until we both spent
copiously. Nothing was lost, we both greedily swallowed all we could
get.

At home he is looked upon as still a child, and I had little difficulty
in arranging for him to sleep in a little dressing-room adjoining my
bedroom, with which there is a door of communication. He was sent early
to bed, but when I came I found him still awake, expecting me, and I
had the delicious treat of initiating him into the pleasures of
fucking. If you ever wish to enjoy _par excellence_ this pleasure, get
hold of a vigorous boy who has never had a woman. My good fortune threw
into my hands a wonderfully provided youth, whose aptitude, as well as
size and powers, it would be very difficult to match. I had already
given him several lessons in the enrapturing art when we fell asleep,
and now I must mention a little episode, which it would not do to omit.

In the morning I was dreaming of Fred, when I became conscious that
something was entering me. I was in that half-dreaming state when it is
difficult to be quite certain what is happening, but gradually I became
aware that although there was no doubt I was being entered, it was not
in the usual way. My husband had frequently of late pushed his prick up
my bottom-hole, and as he told me that all husbands did so, I could
make no objections. I, therefore, at first took it for granted that
Fred, finding my naked bottom in his lap, could not resist the
temptation of entering it. I, therefore, humoured him, and so moved my
bottom as to facilitate his complete entrance, and began to feel myself
the excitement it occasioned, but as I became wider awake, I gradually
called to mind that Fred had left me, and that Charlie was my
bedfellow. The audacity of the young rogue paralysed me, but his
delicious movements had become too nice for me to think of dislodging
him. He insisted that he was quite unconscious of his mistake, and that
he believed himself buried in the delicious grotto of the night before.
It probably was so, for so perfect an ignoramus as he is, although ever
so apt a scholar in Venus's rites, he could hardly have imagined there
could be any entrance in the smaller orifice. I let him go on, and with
his well hung cock in my bottom, and two or three fingers in my cunt,
he fucked and frigged me most deliciously, until we both spent in an
agony of pleasure. If, Carry, you have not tried this route I strongly
recommend you to do so without delay, but you must be well fucked in
the first instance, to stimulate a desire in those parts, and your
lover must be up to the art of frigging you at the same time, or you
can pass your hand under your belly, and rub your clitoris, which was
the plan I adopted with Charlie, until I taught him the art of rubbing
the clitoris properly. As there is always more excitement when this is
done by a male, it is better to have them when one can, but, _faute de
mieux_--one can do it oneself with much additional lascivious
satisfaction.

To give you an instance of the precocious aptitude of this dear little
fellow, I mounted upon him one morning, keeping my body erect, that we
might see the delicious instrument in its action of being engulphed and
then withdrawn, a most exciting pose which I recommend you to try, if
your husband has not already taught it to you. At last, overcome by the
lascivious movements, I sank on his bosom. He pressed my bottom down
with one hand, and with the other embracing the nearer buttock,
introduced his middle finger up the rosy orifice of my bottom, and
frigged me in unison with our ups and downs of fucking, giving me the
most delicious additional sensations.

What do you think of that for a _tyro_? His discretion, too, is
extraordinary. The first night after I sent him to his own bed, he
overslept himself. I had not thought of that, and had not looked into
his little room before descending to breakfast. His sister was sent to
call him. He at once excused himself by saying he had had a bad dream,
she came down and told us. In a few minutes he followed, and in the
most natural way possible, told a tale of fright, declared he had awoke
screaming and afterwards had been so frightened that he could not
sleep, and turning to me in the most natural way, hoped his scream had
not disturbed me. He never came near me, or appeared in any way
attracted by me--a discretion worthy of a man of the world. Oh! my dear
Carry, I shall make a great deal of this boy. We have had several
delicious nights since, and he improves wonderfully. Splendidly as my
husband fucks, Charley already beats him. He is quite as often ready,
indeed, oftener, and it is I that hold him back, but there is something
still so charmingly infantine in his way of caressing me, and then the
lascivious idea he is all my own, and that I initiated him in love's
mysteries, adds an inexpressible charm to our lascivious encounters. I
feel that I shall almost regret my husband's return, as it will force
me to give up this delicious indulgence. Not the slightest shadow of
suspicion of our doings is excited in the family, thanks to the very
guarded and admirable conduct of Charlie, which is above all praise.

Write to me soon, my dear Carry, and be sure you are as candid as this
long, long letter is to you, for the life of me I could not make it
shorter. I only hope you will give me one as long, and have as much
delicious intelligence for me. I know you too well to suppose that you
have not found means as I have done, to try what other men are made of,
although you can scarcely have had such wonderful luck as mine. Write
then, and write without reserve. Our mutual affection is too sincere to
allow of any concealment whatever between two such loving and lewd
lascivious friends.



Ever your affectionate friend,

E. BENSON.



Such was the long letter my adored mistress wrote at the time to her
school companion. It will be seen that their attachment had led to
something more than the usual fingerings and caressings of school
girls, indeed, had led them on to the lewdest and most lascivious
indulgences that two girls could practise in common, and had first
excited their passions and given them the delicious power of pleasing
coition they were both so perfect in, for, as I before said, about two
years after this time, I was the possessor of both and many and many an
orgy we three had together, without the shadow of jealousy on any side.
It will be seen that Mrs. Egerton, in her reply, even looks forward to
the delicious indulgence, which in the end was happily effected and
long continued. The following is her reply--



THE HON. MRS. EGERTON TO MRS. BENSON.



How can I ever sufficiently thank my darling Lizzie for her delicious
letter, I have devoured its delightful details a dozen times already. I
keep it in my bosom, and renew the pleasure of its perusal at every
spare moment. _Too long?_ Oh! with such a charming power of
description, why did you not cover fifty more pages. Never in my life
have I enjoyed such an exquisite description of those dear lascivious
encounters. How delighted I am at your good fortune in meeting with
such a miracle of a boy as that dear Charlie Roberts. Why, he has every
quality of a man, united to the charm of extreme youth. What a splendid
man he will become, the very perfection of a lover, and already
possessing so lewd and lascivious a lubricity. Oh! how I envy you his
possession. What luck for him too, to have fallen into the hands of so
delicious a teacher as my beloved Lizzie is. Am I not myself her pupil,
and were you not my own delicious instructress in all that one of our
sex could teach each the other.

You will remember a long-standing engagement entered into, between us
made, when we were both so lewd and so longing for the real knowledge
of man, and how we pledged ourselves that if either got possession of a
lover, we should manage after a while to share him between us. Your
description of Charlie Roberts has brought this pledge most vividly to
my recollection. I am sure my dear Lizzie will not be angry or jealous
when I avow that I long to participate with her in the possession of
that darling boy; and if my Lizzie is as of old, I feel certain she
will rather indulge and cultivate this propensity than otherwise. Think
how easy it will be for us both to arrange the meeting of all three
together, because I wish to possess him in common, certain that it will
increase the lascivious pleasure of coition. No one will suspect us
when we drive out, two women with one man. It will naturally be
supposed that one fears the other, and so there will be no danger. See,
here I am at once anticipating future scenes, but it is all owing to
the extremely exciting and lascivious details you have so vividly given
me.

I have no such delicious scenes to depict as those you have so
delightfully described to me. My honeymoon passed off in a much more
common-place way than yours. Our marriage, which was performed within a
day of your own, went off as such events do. My husband was loving,
without being very warm. I felt very much as you describe on going to
bed the first night, but the discretion or delicacy of my husband,
which I could well have pardoned him for dispensing with, left me time
not only to get into bed, but kept me waiting there some time. He
entered like yours in his dressing-gown, but immediately put out the
light and found his way into bed, as best he could. He crept to my side
and embraced me tenderly enough, and began to fondle and kiss me,
telling me how dearly he loved me, etc., but for some time he avoided
any indecent liberties. I suppose he thought it necessary to gain my
confidence and quiet any alarm I might be in. He might have saved
himself the trouble, for in reality I was longing for and at the same
time somewhat dreading an attack on my maiden charms. At last, little
by little, he approached the object of delight, and eventually begging
me not to be alarmed, he mounted upon me and effected the object of his
desires. He did not hurt me much, not nearly as much as I expected, nor
so much as you seem to have suffered. I deemed it politic to affect
more suffering than he really inflicted. Towards the end I had slight
scintillations of pleasure, but not worth mentioning; it is true my
husband is not so well-armed as yours and Charlie appear to be, and he
is also much colder in his passions; for instance, he did not attempt
to fuck me again, although I would have been gratified if he had done
so; perhaps it was considerate towards me in his idea, but, merely
embracing me in his arms, he talked himself and me to sleep.

In the morning he again fucked me, this time giving me something like
pleasure, but I was altogether disappointed with my night's experience.
It was not such as you or I, my dear Lizzie, had pictured to ourselves,
in our anticipations of the marriage night. My husband since has never
exceeded twice a night, but he has become more exciting, and has
generally made me spend twice to his once, first exciting my passions
by feeling all my private parts, and frigging my clitoris, so that I
generally have lubricated the passage by my own discharge before he
attempts to make an entrance. I find he likes this, and so far it
pleases me, because only one discharge would leave me in a state of
excitement unbearable. He has never attempted any of those lewder and
more lascivious methods, of which you have had such delicious
experience. Altogether, I cannot but say I am disappointed. My husband
is loving, and very anxious that I should improve my mind in every way.
You know I was rather more proficient than usual at school in Italian.
My husband speaks it fluently, and as we mean to spend a winter at
Rome, was anxious that I should have further instruction. He asked me
if my school teacher was a good one, but I did not encourage that idea.
You may remember our former master was a Count Fortunio, so handsome
and so enterprising that you and I had both formed the plan of having
him, and had already put over some of the preliminaries when,
unfortunately, he was caught with that impudent Miss Peace, with whom,
doubtless, he had accomplished everything. Of course, he was instantly
changed for another, and we saw no more of him, to the sad
disappointment of our then libidinous hopes. My husband proposed
advertising for a master, when I had the happy instinct to tell him
that schoolmistresses generally applied to Rolandi, of Berner's Street,
for language masters, and that, if he would write or call, he would be
sure to get every information. That evening, after dinner, as we sat
dozing over the fire in the library--very imperfectly lighted--my
husband informed me that he had seen Rolandi, who had most strongly
recommended a very gentlemanly man, moving in good society, namely, the
Count Fortunio. I started in amazement; fortunately, owing to the
half-light we were in, my surprise and confusion were unnoticed by my
husband. He said that he had been referred to one or two gentlemen of
standing as to the Count's character, that he called upon them, and
felt satisfied that I could not be in better hands. You may imagine
what an effect this information had upon me. All night long I could
think of nothing else. What seemed most difficult to me was the hiding
from my husband our previous knowledge of each other. I feared the
Count would at once recognise me and claim acquaintance, which was what
I most wished to avoid; to you, from whom I have no secrets, I may own
it immediately occurred to me that this would be an opportunity (for
which I had in heart been longing) of obtaining the services of a lover
I could trust. How to manage it I knew not, but chance, that favourer
of all wrongdoers, stood me in good stead.

My husband had intended to be present to receive the Count.
Fortunately, a letter arrived in the morning requiring his instant
attendance in the City about the sale of some stock, of which he was
trustee. He begged me to see the Count, and arranged as to hours of
attendance, &c., the more frequently the better. I felt my
embarrassment was at an end; the next thing was to avoid letting the
servants, those domestic spies on our conduct, see the first meeting.
There was a small room off our drawing-room that had no door but the
opening into the drawing-room; this was fitted up as a sort of boudoir
writing-room, and my husband had pointed it out as a convenient place
for me to take my lessons in. Here, therefore, I posted myself, and
awaited the hour of arrival, to which he was punctual. He was announced
and I told the servants to show him in. I sat purposely with my back to
the entrance, apparently engaged in writing, as if I did not know he
had approached, until I heard the door of the drawing-room shut. I then
rose, turned, and smilingly held out my hand. He started with surprise,
but immediately and gallantly kissed the hand held out to him.

"I hope you are not disappointed in finding who is going to be your
pupil."

"Oh, no, certainly not; I did not know you under your married name; but
I am so happy to renew an acquaintance which at one time had such
charming promise."

"Stop, signor, I am now married, and it is necessary to be very
cautious. I do not wish to deny that I am much pleased to renew
acquaintance with you, but it must be with great reserve. Sit down by
my side, and be reasonable."

"Reasonable! and by the side of one whom I so much loved, and from whom
I had such hope. Oh! dear Mrs. Egerton, you are surely not going to
treat me as a mere master. You would render me miserable if you did so.
How can I help admiring one whom I so fondly loved, and with whom I
hoped for such happiness long ago."

Here, having possession of my hand, his other arm was passed round my
waist, and he drew me to his lips, and I must own, I reciprocated the
ardent kiss he gave me. You remember how handsome he is, and how soft
and loving was the expression of his eyes. Well, my dear, to cut
matters short, I was so excited that I hardly observed that he had
passed his hand up to my petticoats, until I found he had got it on my
mount. My passions being excited, and knowing that my husband could not
return, and also that he had given strict orders that I was not to be
disturbed in my Italian lessons, I gave way unreservedly to the
excitement the Count raised. Before I well knew where I was, he was on
his knees in front of the low chair on which I was seated. He had
thrown up my petticoats, and I felt a long and extremely hard prick
rush up my cunt, and begin the most lively action. In fact, he carried
me (not unwillingly I must avow) by storm, and made haste to secure the
fortress at once, so that I had a very quick fuck, that did not assuage
the fire he had raised within me. He has since apologised for his
haste, saying that he wished to secure possession of me before I could
think of resistance, so as to ensure more facilities of connection
hereafter. We had no lesson in language that day, but another bout of
love, in which he did his utmost, and with perfect success, to give me
the most delicious enjoyment.

In fact, my dear Lizzie, I may say it was the first fuck that
thoroughly realised my, or rather our, anticipations of the act. We
arranged the line of conduct necessary to be followed so as neither to
compromise me or him either. In a short time we had again a delicious
fuck. Seated, with outstretched legs, on a chair, he got me to straddle
over him, and sink down on his stiff upstanding prick. I have tried
this position kneeling, with my husband on his back; but it does not
equal the chair fuck. One has so much better a spring from one's feet
than from one's knees, besides, the man is brought more face to face,
and there is more facility for mutual embracings; but both ways have
their charm. I had repeatedly observed that the Count apparently lost
his place, and on recovering it, partially penetrated the smaller
orifice, which you so picturesquely describe. I thought it accident,
and as it hurt, I always put him back, and joked him on his
awkwardness. But after I read your dear delightful letter. I became
convinced that he had a wish to penetrate there, without the courage to
tell me so.

I must confess to you, that our stolen embraces at home had become too
unsatisfactory, and the Count had arranged for a private house to be at
our disposal. Of an afternoon I drove out shopping, called at Swan and
Edgar's in Regent Street, leaving the carriage at the door, walked
upstairs, made some trifling purchase, paid for and left it until I
should call in an hour; then descending by another staircase, left by
the Piccadilly entrance, and taking a cab, joined my expectant lover,
where he was waiting for me. There stripping perfectly naked, we
enjoyed each other most lasciviously, and practised every act of
lubricity. When satiated with our efforts, a second cab conducted me to
St. James's passage, in Jermyn Street, from whence I gained on foot
Swan and Edgar's in Piccadilly, received my parcel, and rejoined my
carriage. Thus no suspicions were excited, either in the household or
otherwise.

We have met thrice since your dear delicious letter fired my
imagination, and I have seized the occasion to taste the sweets of the
neighbouring altar to Venus's legitimate one. After the Count had
fucked me twice I turned my back as if wishing it in a way we often
enjoyed it, but took care to place my bottom in such a position that
the smaller orifice was nearest to his standing prick. Whether he saw
my drift I know not, but finding with his finger how conveniently it
lay, he plunged boldly forward, and half sheathed himself at the first
push. I started with the sudden pain, and should have disengaged myself
at once, notwithstanding that I purposely placed myself to receive his
prick in my bottom-hole, but with his arms round my waist I was
perfectly powerless, and another thrust sent him up to the hilt, but
really hurting me most sensitively; I begged him to desist and
withdraw, but he said--

"I will remain quite quiet for a time, and you will see that your pain
will diminish, and then you will like it."

I could not help myself, and sure enough he was right. Shortly I felt
no pain; slipping one hand down, he began to frig my clitoris, and in a
little time, finding by the involuntary movements of my loins that my
passions were excited, he began to move very slightly and slowly. I
soon found a strange excitement seize me, which increased to such a
degree that I almost fainted, when my nature gave down its divinest
essence. We have since repeated the new experience, but I quite agree
with you in thinking that we must be well fucked first.

The Count is a master of his weapon, which, neither quite so long as
you describe your husband's nor nearly so thick at the point, is very
much so at the root, and as stiff and hard as iron. I assure you, the
wild excess of passion he drives me into is indescribable. You shall
experience the delight of his fucking, for, with you and me, there must
be no difficulty, diversion, nor jealousy. Nay, I shall try to seduce
your husband, with a view to cover our delinquencies. I would offer you
mine, but, truly, he is not worth having to a woman who can find
better, as my dear Lizzie so charmingly does. We have managed matters
so prudently that my husband has taken a great fancy to the Count, and
he dines frequently at our house.

We have often talked of you. I told him of your marriage, and of a
probability of your eventually settling in London. I marked the sparkle
of his eyes at the news, but was silent as to your letter and
adventures. It is better we should manage the affair between us when
you are here.

So you see, after all, I have not come off so badly, although, I must
say, tamely in comparison with the delicious adventures of my dear and
charming Lizzie. I think, when we meet, we shall be able to get up
parties of the most delightful kind. I even hope we may induce the
Count to join you and Charlie in a _partie carrée_; what fun and
pleasure we should have, and then the delight of exchanging lovers at
each bout. Oh! the very idea has set me on fire; fortunately, I am
expecting my lover at every moment. I will close my letter with this
lascivious picture, and in hopes of some day realizing it with my loved
Lizzie, Whose most affectionate and attached friend,



I shall ever remain,

CARRY EGERTON.



Such were these two charming letters, and I may immediately mention now
that the lascivious picture dear Carry drew of a _partie carrée_--we
four the actors--was afterwards realised to the utmost extent of every
salacious enjoyment that the most experienced lubricity could suggest.

The Count and I often sandwiched them between us, which they declared
to be the _ne plus ultra_ of pleasure, while the upper operator
gamahuched the unoccupied quim. Nay, these giddy delicious creatures
were not satisfied until they had induced us to alternate the joys of
coition with each other; but that was rarely the case. These enchanting
women were so exquisitely seductive that, while we had them at our
disposal, we sought no other source of delight. But I am digressing,
and talking of events that occurred long after the period which I am
more particularly describing.

The three weeks' absence of Mr. Benson terminated, alas, far too soon;
in fact, time flew so quick that it hardly appeared three days when a
letter arrived announcing his return for the next day. My heart was
ready to burst, but I managed to make no show or mention when Mrs. B.
told the news at breakfast Mrs. B. observed that I turned pale, but no
one else remarked anything. We contrived to meet for a short time in
the middle of the day, and she embraced me tenderly, with tears in her
eyes, and looking so loving that my passions became overexcited, and
hers too. Notwithstanding the imprudence of the risk, we there and then
had a most delightful and salacious fuck; and at night this charming
woman allowed me full liberty to do anything I liked; and as often as
nature would support us we revelled in a sea of lubricity. How often I
cannot say, although my loved mistress declared that I had spent ten
times, I am certain she did oftener than that, for neither closed an
eye, nor ceased from the most loving embraces. She exerted all the
wonderful powers of seduction for which she was so distinguished. Never
mortal man could have passed a more intoxicating night of pleasure. We
heard movements in the house before we parted with mutual tears
coursing down our cheeks.

It was with difficulty I tore myself from her; indeed, I could not have
done so if she had not herself risen, and tenderly embracing me, told
me to have courage and hope, for, some how or other, we should manage
an occasional interview. Particularly cautioning me to be perfectly on
my guard when her husband came, she said it would be better if I kept
out of the way until after the first interview was over, as it might he
too much for me to see him embrace her. I did as she desired. No one
noticed me in the confusion of his arrival.

Mamma had insisted upon my returning to my bed in her room, as she was
sure Mr. Benson would require the dressing-room. Mrs. B., from policy,
objected, saying that there was no occasion, that I had been so quiet
she had never once been conscious of my being there, &c., but mamma had
her own way, and I really believe very much to the satisfaction of Mrs.
B. herself; for I doubt, if Mr. B. had been aware of my close
proximity, whether he would altogether have liked it. Nevertheless, he
so completely treated me as little more than a child that I am quite
sure he had no suspicion of my having occupied his place so
continuously during his absence.

Mr. and Mrs. B. retired shortly after his arrival, doubtless to plunge
into all the joys of venery after his long absence, and his wife's
supposed privation of them. The idea of that being the case did not so
much annoy me as I expected; on the contrary, imagination portrayed
them in all the agonies of delight, and actually excited me extremely.
All at once, the idea struck me that I might be purposely hid in the
closet, behold all their delicious encounters, and when he had left his
wife to put herself to rights, and the key was turned upon him, I might
then in my turn, fly into my enchanting mistress's arms, and revel in
all the joys her well moistened and juicy cunt could give. I determined
to propose this to dear Mrs. Benson the first moment I could get her
apart from all observation.

I was a little _distrait_ in the school-room that day, but an appeal
from Miss Evelyn recalled me to my senses. She asked me what I could be
thinking of; I held down my head and blushed. Already an adept in
dissimulation, I faltered out that it was of herself and of her
endearing caresses the day before, which had made me feel so queer all
over. In fact, the previous day she had hugged me rather close to her,
and kissed me more lovingly than usual, which really had, at the time,
inflamed my desires, and given me great hope of matters coming to a
more satisfactory termination with her. She patted my check, and kissed
me again, saying I was a naughty boy to have any such thoughts, and I
must not indulge in them, or she would not love me any more. But there
was a sparkle in her eye, and a flush on her cheek, which showed me she
was anything but displeased.

At our usual break-up at four o'clock, I went to the parlour to see if,
by chance, I could get a secret word with Mrs. B., but found that she
and her husband had again retired. I knew what that meant; it set me
too on fire, and I flew to the garden where my sisters had gone to
play. I gave Mary a hint, which she readily understood, and proposed a
game of hide and seek. To prevent Eliza interrupting us, I took up a
stone, which I furtively dropped again, and proposed that Eliza should
guess first, in which hand I had got it, and if she guessed wrong she
was to be the seeker. Of course, she guessed wrong. So we bound up her
eyes, and she was to stand behind a tree and count one hundred before
she attempted to look for or seek us. We made a detour, and as fast as
we could run reached the summer house, which, as all the ladies were in
the house occupied, I knew to be untenanted. We entered and locked the
door, in an instant I had Mary down on her back on the sofa, my head
between her thighs, and my tongue in her cunt, and then on her
clitoris. She was as eager for it as myself. A week had passed since
the happy day of giving up her maidenhead to me. She had thoroughly got
over all the pains and inconveniences of that day, and was as ready for
a renewal of what could only be joys now as I was. She spent in my
mouth almost as soon as I began to gamahuche her clitoris. Waiting an
instant to lick up and swallow the soft and delicious young discharge,
I rose, pulled out my bursting prick, and engulphed it in her
well-moistened sheath with one rapturous shove up to the hilt,
positively taking away her breath by the energy of the attack. I was
almost as rapid in coming to a conclusion as she had been.
Nevertheless, she died away a second time, the moment she felt the warm
gush of my raging discharge. We lay some minutes rapt in the lascivious
lap of lubricity. But in our young and unbroken energies, nature soon
reasserted her power. I must give my sister the palm. It was the
internal pressures of the inner folds of her deliciously tight cunt
that first awakened my vigour. Somewhat more slowly we began another
love encounter, which speedily became much more rapid and energetic,
ending as usual in an extasy of delight, and closing with actual cries
of intense pleasure.

It was well we had completed our second course, for we heard the
footsteps of Eliza, who, after in vain searching for us near to where
we had left her, had at last sought us in the summer house. I had just
time to arrange my trousers and unlock the door when she arrived and
burst in upon us. She said it was unfair to go so far away, but we only
laughed, and proposed that Mary should now seek us. We were standing
outside below the mound, tying on the handkerchief, when Miss Evelyn
was seen approaching. She came up and noticed the flush still on Mary's
cheeks, but we at once told her that we had been playing at hide and
seek, and had had a good run, and that it was now Mary's turn to be the
seeker. However, Miss Evelyn said she thought we had had enough
exercise for the time, and that it would be better to walk gently about
to get cool, as it only wanted a few minutes of the hour for renewing
our lessons, so we all demurely returned to the house. A reflection
struck me that it would be necessary to initiate my sister Eliza in our
secrets, and although she might be too young for the complete insertion
of my increasingly large cock, I might gamahuche her while fucking
Mary, and give her intense pleasure. In this way we could retire
without difficulty to spots where we should be quite in safety, and
even when such was not the case, we could employ Eliza as a watch, to
give us early notice of any one approaching. It will be seen that this
idea was afterwards most successfully carried out to the immense
increase of my pleasure.

It was a lovely summer evening. After dinner Mr. B., who, doubtless,
had no longer any amorous longing, after having twice retired during
the day, challenged Miss Evelyn to a game at chess, of which she was a
great proficient. Mamma, Mrs. B., and the two girls stepped out into
the flower garden, to enjoy the beauty of the evening. Fortunately
mamma fancied she felt chilly, and shortly went back again, taking the
two girls with her, and setting Mary down to the piano. I seized the
happy moment, and drew Mrs. B. to a seat, far removed beyond the
hearing of any listeners, but in sight of the windows. There I unfolded
to her the plan I had proposed to myself; she smiled at my precocious
ingenuity, but added it would not be safe to leave the closet door
open, even partially, as by chance Mr. B. might open it, and that would
never do; but she might lock me in--or rather I might do so from the
inside.

"Ahh! but then I want to see it all--it is so exciting to see Mr. B.
working into that divine body of yours."

She laughed heartily at my remark, and said I was a lewd lascivious
young rascal--adding:

"But are you not jealous to see another in possession of me?"

I admitted that that was my first impression, but on thinking over it,
I had become convinced I should like her and enjoy her all the more
lasciviously if I were a witness to their love contests, but I must be
able to see them.

"Well! can you not bore a couple of holes an inch and a half apart,
below the middle panel and cut a narrow slit from hole to hole? I will
take care to place myself in a proper position, and do my best to
gratify your premature lubricity. My darling boy, you progress
wonderfully, and make me proud of my pupil."

Seeing she took it thus kindly, I said--

"Do tell me, my beloved mistress, how often he has fucked you to-day?"

"Will it please you really, my dear Charlie, to know that?"

"Oh! yes, so much."

"Well, then, six times in the morning, and four before dinner. He was
bursting with desire, and could not hold. He spent twice before giving
me time to come once, but then you know, my dear Charlie, how actively
you had been employing your time all the previous night, you sad rogue
that you are."

"Did you enjoy it much, my dear Mrs. B.?"

"Why, if I must tell you, you little curiosity box, I did; you know how
powerfully my husband is hung, and loving him as I do, it is impossible
to undergo his powerful and lascivious embraces without feeling all
one's libidinous passions stirred up within me, but even while in his
possession, my dear boy, I thought of your young charms, and the fierce
delights we had enjoyed together last night. My husband little imagined
it was of you, not him, that I was thinking and stimulating myself to
wild upheavings of voluptuous movements, while he was revelling in all
the lubricity of his own passions, and fucking me to my heart's
content."

"Oh! how delicious! my angelic mistress," I cried, "the pleasure of
your vivid description almost makes me faint with desire--oh! that I
could possess you at once."

"You must not think of that, my dear darling boy. We must manage it
to-morrow; I shall go into the house at once, and occupy your mother's
attention, do you get a gimlet and chisel, slip up at once to my
bedroom, and prepare a peep-hole for to-morrow; be careful to put it
low down, below the projection of the middle panel of the door in which
the lock is placed, and take care to remove the pieces of wood you take
out. I shall put the key inside of the door. Your sisters always take
two hours at the piano after your midday meal, our luncheon is served
at the same time. Mr. B. is sure to require my attendance in my room
after that, but I shall detain him by some excuse till I observe that
you have disappeared, and after giving you sufficient time, we shall
follow, and you shall have the extraordinary satisfaction you require;
but above all remember--not a movement to betray yourself until my
husband leaves and I have locked the door behind him." So saying, she
pressed her lovely hand on my stiffly excited member, rose and joined
mamma. I lost no time in following her advice, and happily executed all
I wanted, and returned unconcernedly to the drawing-room, without my
absence having occasioned any remark Next day I got safely to my
hiding-room, and had comfortably stowed myself away in such a position
that the opening I had made was on a level with my eyes, before they
arrived. She, dear creature, anticipating my vista, had merely slipped
on a dress, without a corset, and told her husband that he was so
insatiate that she was obliged to be ready at a moment's notice to
satisfy his inordinate passion, so she had only to take off her gown to
be at her ease. "Most admirable, my darling wife, but drop off every
thing, and let me contemplate, at my ease, all the beauties of your
exquisite body."

No sooner said than done, and my lovely mistress stood in all the glory
of her magnificent and beautiful naked form. He kissed and fondled her
from head to foot, laid her on the bed and gamahuched her till she
squealed again with pleasure. Then pulling out his magnificent prick,
he plunged it into her delicious cunt at a single bound, evidently
giving her the most exquisite delight, as was evidenced by the
instantaneous clasping of him with her arms and legs, and the rapid
wriggling of her backside. They soon ran a first course, but Mr. B.
remained engulphed in the closely fitting sheath of his salacious wife.
She evidently exerted herself more than usual, both for her own
pleasure as well as to give satisfaction to me, for once when she
turned her head in my direction I caught her eyes, and she smiled,
giving a still more vigorous heave than usual, and showing me all her
cunt at full stretch with the noble prick in it. I was ready to burst.
At last their bout was over for the present; Mr. B. withdrew his prick,
all slimy from its sheath, pendant, but still full of size.

Most extraordinary! I would have given a good deal to have dared to
rush out, put it in my mouth and suck it dry, I can hardly describe how
strongly this desire took possession of me. It was the first promptings
of a passion I have since often indulged in, where I have met with
companions with whom I could join in orgies of both sexes. Mrs. B.
professed to be dead beaten by the constant and frequent renewals of
these interviews in addition to night work and lay perfectly still,
while he performed his ablutions and readjusted, his habiliments.

"Fasten the door after me." said he, as he ardently pressed her form in
his arms and kissed her. She had continued stretched on the bed,
exactly facing me, with legs widely extended, so as to show me the
whole of her lovely cunt, which I could see still panted under its late
excitement. My charming mistress told me it was palpitating not for
what had passed, but for what it was waiting for. She rose at last and
closed the door, turning the key upon her husband. She then approached
the bidet to purify herself, but I bounded from the closet, seized her
in my arms, dashed her back on the bed and immediately glued my lips to
her glowing and foaming cunt, with all the froth and spending of her
husband oozing out. I greedily devoured it, and raised her to such a
frenzy of lewdness that she dragged me up and cried, frantically--

"For God's sake fuck me--fuck me!"

Of course my cock was bursting to do so; with one shove he was sheathed
to the cods; my loved mistress spent with that alone, so highly was she
excited, not only by the preparations, but as she herself acknowledged
to me, by the idea of the instantaneous infidelity to her husband, at
the moment after he had just fucked her--such is the wild imagination
of women when they give way to every libidinous thought. It would have
been exactly the same if some equally fortunate lover had been awaiting
my retiring from the field. The idea of success in deception is a
passion with them, and they would almost sacrifice any thing to obtain
it. Before I could arrive at the grand crisis, she was again ready, and
we died away in an agony of blissful lubricity--she held me, as usual,
so tight that I never thought of withdrawing from the folds of her
delicious cunt, but lay still enjoying the never ceasing compressions
of its velvety folds, which sometimes really had almost the force of a
vice. I was rapidly ready for a second bout, which, like the first,
ended in extatic joys, beyond the power of description. My charming
mistress thought I ought now to desist, but pleading my forty hours'
fast (for, of course, she knew nothing of my fucking Mary), I begged
her to allow me to run one more course.

"Then, my darling Charlie, you must let me turn on my side, for I am so
heated with your weight and my husband's that I must have some relief,
but there is no occasion for you to withdraw, leave me to manage it."

With an art quite her own, she accomplished her object, her splendid
buttocks' pressing before my eyes against my belly fired me
immediately. My cock swelled and stood firm as ever. Then passing an
arm round her body, I used my fingers on her excited and stiffly
projecting clitoris. We had a much longer and more voluptuous fuck than
before; nothing could exceed the delicious movements of my divine
mistress; she twisted her body so, that I could suck one of her
bubbies, while I fucked and frigged her; she spent with such a scream
of delight that I am sure she must have been heard in the house, had it
not been for the inner baize door to the room. She continued throbbing
so deliciously on my prick that I began to flatter myself I should
obtain a fourth favour, but she suddenly bolted out of my arms and out
of bed. Turning round, and taking my whole prick into her mouth, and
giving it a voluptuous suck, she said--

"No, my loved boy, we must be prudent if we mean to have a repetition
of these most exquisite interviews. You have given me most extatic
pleasure, and by moderation, and running no risk in too long indulgence
of our passions, we may safely manage to enjoy similar interviews every
day. Get into the dressing-room, remain there until I leave my room and
pass your door. After I have seen that no one is near, I will cough
twice, wait a minute longer, then quietly leave and descend by the back
stairs."

All was happily effected, and for the week longer they remained with
us, I found means to repeat the charming lesson every day, without
raising suspicion in any one's mind.

At last this admirable woman departed. It was with difficulty I could
bear the scene, but I gulphed down my feelings as best I could. She had
become a universal favourite, and all regretted her leaving, so that my
distress was not noticed in the general regret. It was more than two
years before fortune favoured me in again meeting with this charming
woman. And then we saw very much of each other, both alone and with
other congenial spirits, of which, perhaps, I may hereafter write a
detail; but at present I have got events to relate that followed fast
on her departure.

I have said that Miss Evelyn had been gradually growing more familiar
in her manner of partially caressing me. She drew me closer to her,
almost invariably placing her arm round my waist, frequently kissing
and pressing me against her firm and well-formed bosom. This had
frequently an evident effect on my lower person, even while I was kept
less excitable by the constant relief my passions were obtaining in the
arms of my adored Mrs. B. Now I no longer had that vent, for the little
relief I could get at rare intervals from my sister Mary was as
nothing, after the constant exercise I had been provided with for a
whole month. Ever since I had practised that little deception on Miss
Evelyn by attributing to her embraces the evident distraction I was in
on the day of Mr. Benson's return, she had increased her pressures of
my person, and could not but feel my stiff prick throbbing against her
thigh, while she closely pressed my body against it with her arm. I
often noted the increased sparkle of her eyes and changes of colour on
her face when she kissed me, and I put up my hand and caressed her
cheek. At times she would push me suddenly away, and beg me to resume
my seat; frequently she would quit the room in an agitated manner, till
this led me to suppose that an internal conflict was going on, and that
passion urged one course, reason another. Remembering the sage advice
given to me by my loved and beautiful mistress, Mrs. B., I resolved to
play the part of an innocent ignoramus, and let her own passions
develope and produce the result I so longed for. I doubt if I could
have held out but for the relief I found in dear Mary's embraces, who,
each time we could manage to meet, became more and more attractive, and
more capable of giving and receiving pleasure. We had some difficulty
in keeping Eliza blind to our doings. At last Mary agreed to initiate
her into gamahuching, and to tell her I did so to her when we shut
ourselves up together, and that if she would keep the secret, I would
do the same to her; but that it was necessary that one should keep
watch while the other amused herself with me, for fear Miss Evelyn
should chance to come. Mary proceeded to gamahuche her, which delighted
Eliza beyond measure; indeed, although a year and a half younger, she
speedily showed a developement of passion superior to Mary. At first I
only gamahuched her, letting her play with my prick as I did so, but
not attempting to instruct her in the art of insertion into her
charming little quim, which already showed symptoms of a hairy growth
on her well-formed and very prominent mount. When I had done enough in
this way, Mary, who had previously been fucked by me, returned, and
Eliza took up the watch, while I appeased in Mary's deliciously tight
cunt the thirst that gamahuching Eliza had raised.

It was thus I could more coolly await the gradual approximation that
Miss Evelyn's evident passion for me was bringing about. That she
struggled against it was evident, but passion was gaining the
advantage, as was shown by her nervous tremblings and sudden clutches,
drawing me up to her parched lips, and sometimes pushing me away with a
shudder that shook her frame and paled her lovely cheeks. I fancied
that nature had been too much for her on these occasions, and that in
reality the sudden clutching was the approach of love's crisis, and
that when she shuddered, and suddenly repulsed me, she was discharging.
It was evident this could not continue. At last the happy day for which
I so longed arrived. Mamma was going to go to the town, and taking my
two sisters with her, to get something or other for them. She invited
Miss Evelyn to accompany her, but the latter declined, on the excuse of
an alleged headache. In truth, the violent nature of the conflict going
on between her passions and her prudence had visibly affected her
health; she had become pale and anxious-looking, and my mother was
somewhat uneasy about her. She told her not to occupy herself too much
with my lessons that day, and only give me work for an hour in the
morning and an hour in the afternoon, and begged her to take a quiet
stroll in the garden, and rest as much as possible.

On leaving us, she cautioned me to be as gentle and obedient as
possible, as Miss Evelyn was poorly and out of spirits. Mamma and the
girls departed. Miss Evelyn, almost as pale as death, and quite visibly
trembling, falteringly begged me to go to our school-room and study the
lesson she had given me the previous evening, saying she would join me
shortly. I went, but no lesson could I do that day. The evident
agitation and apparent illness of Miss Evelyn distressed if not alarmed
me; I was still too inexperienced in her mind. It was a phase of
woman's nature which I had as yet no knowledge of. I had merely a vague
kind of idea that it all tended to the ultimate gratification of my
libidinous hopes, and I only held off to a certain extent in obedience
to the counsel my loved Mrs. Benson had so wisely impressed upon me,
and was waiting in lively, hopes of the result I so ardently wished for.

At last Miss Evelyn joined me, her eyes were swollen and red as if she
had been weeping; my own filled with tears when I saw her, and I
approached, hesitatingly, and said--

"Oh, my dear governess, I am so grieved to see you look so poorly. Oh,
do nothing to-day, and I promise to work twice as hard to-morrow."

At the moment I really felt quite distressed at the sad expression of
her features. For an instant she smiled languidly, then, by some
compulsion of feeling, she seized me in both arms and drawing me to her
bosom, covered me with kisses; her eyes became almost perfectly
brilliant.

"Oh, you dear, dear, darling boy, I love you beyond expression. Kiss,
oh, kiss me! my darling! and comfort me, because I love you all too
well."

Then, again, there was a change, she seemed to fear she had said too
much, and turned away her head and tears started to her eyes, but her
arms did not relax the embrace in which she held me. I was deeply moved
at her evident agitation. I thought she was really ill, and suffering
greatly; so I threw my arms round her neck, kissing her tenderly, and
weeping myself, tried to comfort her in my inexperienced way, sobbing
out--

"Oh, dear, dear Miss Evelyn, do be comforted, I so dearly love you that
it makes my heart bleed to see you so unhappy. Oh, let me see you
smile, and do try not to cry so. Why are you so unhappy and low
spirited? Oh, that I could do anything to make you happy?" And
redoubling my endearments, she again turned her lovely face to me.
Again there was the unnatural fire in her eyes, and a hectic glow
flushed her cheek.

"You darling angel of a boy; it is you that makes me so unhappy."

I started back in surprise.

"I make _you_ unhappy! Oh! Miss Evelyn, how can that be, when I adore
the very ground you stand on, and love (_sobbing_)--love (_sob_)--love
you more than anything in the world."

She seized my head in her two lands, glued her lips to mine, gave me a
long, long kiss of love; then, pressing me to her bosom--

"Oh, say that again, my loved, my darling boy; it is the love I feel
for you that is breaking my heart, but I can resist it no longer. Will
my Charlie love his Evelyn always as he does now?"

"Oh, how could I do otherwise? I have worshipped you from the first
moment of your arrival, and have had no other idea. What can I do to
prove it--try, oh, try me. I have never breathed a syllable of my love
for you, even to yourself, let alone other people."

Her eyes, sparkling with passion, were searching the depths of mine, as
if to fathom my thoughts. I, too, began to feel my amorous passions
excited by her warm embraces and kisses. She held me tight to her body,
and could not help feeling the hard substance that jutted out against
her.

"I believe you, my Charlie, and will trust you with my life--with more,
with my honour! I can no longer resist my fate. But, oh! Charlie, love
me always, for I run a fearful risk in loving you as I do."

She again drew me to her lips, my hands clasped her neck in a close
embrace. Her hands wandered--pressed upon my throbbing prick. With
trembling and hasty fingers she unbuttoned, or rather tore open, my
trousers, and her soft fingers clasped my naked instrument.

"Oh, I shall die, dear Miss Evelyn; what must I do to make you happy?"

My apparent ignorance could not but please her. She sank back on the
long low chair on which she was seated, apparently accidentally drawing
up her petticoats with her hand in falling back. I threw myself on my
knees, and pushing her petticoats further up disclosed the rich, dark,
curly beauty of her mount. She covered her burning face with her hand,
while, pressing my head forward, I began pressing her beauteous cunt,
sucking it without daring to lick her clitoris. She tried to push me
away--"No! no! I must not."

But I suppose my proceedings fired her passions still more, for she was
quite moist and juicy, and I have no doubt had already had one
discharge while embracing me so warmly. She suddenly said--

"Come then, my loved boy, and I will be all in all to you."

Drawing me up--nothing loath--I was soon extended on her belly, with my
stiff-standing cock pressing against her cunt. I had still the prudence
not to show any knowledge of the act. I sighed deeply--

"Oh! my loved Miss Evelyn, do help me, I know not what to do."

Her hand glided down between us, she guided my glowing instrument
between the longing lips of her delicious cunt. I pushed, and buried
the head and two inches of its body at the first thrust. The second
brought it against an unexpected obstacle, for it never had struck me
that Miss Evelyn was a virgin. I pushed hard at it.

"Oh, Charlie, love, be gentle, you are hurting me very much."

Knowing that the best way would be to excite her by short shoves,
without at first trying to go further, I did so, and she began to feel
all the raging desires that so formidable a prick as mine must excite,
when moving between the soft velvety folds of her tight and juicy quim.
I held myself in, and continued my proceedings until the convulsive
movements of her loins, and the increased pressure of the folds of her
cunt, showed me that the crisis was approaching, and she was about to
spend. She hugged me close in her arms, and at the moment of spending
involuntarily heaved up her bottom. This was the very moment I was with
difficulty waiting for. I retired a little and plunged forward with
irresistible force. I burst my way through every barrier, up to the
very roots of my prick. The attack was as painful as unexpected. Miss
Evelyn gave a shriek of agony and swooned away. I at once improved the
opportunity, and thrusting in and out with the utmost vigour, broke
down every obstacle, and enlarged the opening by side movements as much
as possible, while she was insensible to the pain. I then died away
myself in an agony of delight. I lay soaking within the delicious
sheath until her convulsive shudders and short sobs showed that my now
fully deflowered mistress was recovering her senses. The thought of the
unexpected victory I had won had already begun to make my cock stand
again, although it was still comparatively soft. I could feel an
involuntary pressure on it, as she came to a full consciousness of our
position. She threw her arms round my neck, gave me a most impassioned
kiss, and then sobbed and cried as if her heart would break.

It is a curious idiosyncracy of my nature to be most libidinously
excited by a woman's tears, and although I really suffered to see her
in such grief, it stiffened my prick to its utmost dimensions. I tried
to comfort her with words, but she sobbed, sobbed on. I suddenly
thought that a renewal of action might bring about a revulsion of
feeling, and began vigorous movements. She sighed deeply, but I could
tell by the nervous twitchings of her loins that her passions were
being excited. They soon decided the contest. She threw her arms round
my waist, and pressed me to her, devouring my mouth with her kisses.
Nature prompted her movements, and in a very few minutes we both poured
down a plenteous offering on Venus's altar. She shook and trembled as
she felt the warm gush within her, and squeezed me with all her might
to her bosom. We lay in a trance for some ten minutes, my charming
governess fainting with love, and giving my delighted prick the most
luscious pressure, which speedily fired him to new efforts. Miss Evelyn
herself was most amorously excited, and we again dashed on love's
delicious path--to end, as usual, in the death-like swoon of satiated
passion. When we came to our senses, my loved mistress, embracing me
tenderly, and throwing her eyes up to heaven, said--

"Oh, my dear darling boy, you made me suffer horribly at first, but I
have been in heaven since. Oh, how I love and adore you. But we must
rise, my Charlie, we may be discovered. We have, in fact, run great
risk, as the door has not been fastened."

I rose, and withdrew my prick from her reeking quim, which seemed by
its close pressure to let me go with regret. I found it was all bloody.

"Stop, Charles, let me wipe it with my handkerchief, lest it stain your
shirt."

She did so, and folding it up and placing it in her bosom, said--

"I shall keep this precious relic as a memorial of the sacrifice I have
made to you, my loved boy. Ah! Charlie, you cannot yet understand the
value of that sacrifice and the risk of ruin I have run for your sake.
I love you as I never loved anyone before, or can ever love again. My
honour and happiness are now in your hands, and it is on your
discretion they rest. Be careful never to exhibit any liberty of
conduct towards me or to mention to anyone what has occurred."

It may readily be imagined I gave her every assurance on that head, and
told her I loved her too dearly, and was too grateful for the extatic
happiness she had taught me how to enjoy, for any chance of betrayal to
take place through my indiscretion. She embraced me tenderly, told me
to go straight to the garden, that she must seek some repose after all
that had happened, and we should meet again at midday meal.

I did as desired, full of sweet thoughts at the exquisite delights she
had afforded me, and already longing for the afternoon school hour to
renew the enrapturing union of our souls and bodies. Miss Evelyn did
not come down to her luncheon, but had something sent up to her room.
However, she joined me in the school-room at two o'clock, as usual. She
was very pale, but embraced me tenderly, and was very endearing. Of
course, I immediately became excited, and very enterprising, but she
gently repulsed me, and requested that I would leave her quiet that
day, as she felt not only exhausted, but in pain, and would be all the
better for perfect repose. I begged hard to be allowed some slight
favours, if not all, but she was inexorable. Finding that I could
neither do any lessons nor be quiet, she said--

"Then we must go into the garden, I think the fresh air and a gentle
walk will do me good."

It instantly occurred to me that if I could draw her away to the summer
house, I should have a better chance of succeeding in again enjoying
her delicious embraces. Accordingly, when she went up to her room to
put on her bonnet and shawl, I possessed myself of the key, to be
prepared for my chance of success.

We walked about the flower garden for a time, Miss Evelyn taking my
arm, and most lovingly conversing with me. She walked somewhat stiffly.
We sat down for a rest, shortly she felt the heat of the sun too great,
so I proposed a walk in the shaded shrubbery. I kept prattling on, so
as not to let her see how far I was leading her away, she appeared
surprised that we had got so far, when we came in sight of the summer
house.

"Oh! Charlie, my dear, I am afraid it will fatigue me too much to walk
all the way back without rest and we have not the key."

"Sometimes it is left in the door, I will run and see." Off I bounded,
slipped the key in the lock, and ran back to say it was there, she
followed me in, and sank on the long backless sofa, which had already
served me so often. I begged her to extend herself at length. I placed
pillows for her head, and drew a chair for myself near her. She did not
appear to have any suspicion of any act on my part, but lay down on her
side. She took my hand in hers, and we began a conversation, very
interesting, in as much as it was how we should regulate our conduct,
so as not to raise any suspicion of our amorous connection, and also of
how we should manage to meet from time to time.

"You, dear boy," she said, "I cannot now live without the comfort of
your embraces, but you must remember, in my dependent position,
discovery would be my ruin. I rely on your silence and discretion, and
if I am as dear to you as you, my adored Charlie, are to me, I may
safely trust to you." I threw my arms round her neck, and told her I
loved her all too dearly, and longed too much to return to her
endearing and delicious embraces, for her to have any fear of my
committing either her or myself. She fondly embraced and kissed me. I
became fired with passion. My hand wandered, her position only enabled
her to make a feeble resistance, I reached her beauteously covered
mount, she murmured supplications to be left alone, and held her thighs
close together.

She was not aware of my knowledge of the parts, so inserting my finger
into the upper part of the lips, I reached her clitoris, and began
rubbing in and out, purposely, in an awkward way, but taking care to
hit the right point.

"Charlie, my Charlie, you must not do that--I--I cannot bear it."

At the same time she threw her arm round my neck and drew me to her
lips, which glued themselves to mine. I felt her thighs yield and open.
I immediately improved the occasion, and began frigging her with my
middle finger up her quim. Her passions became inflamed.

"Come then, my darling boy, to my arms, I cannot resist you longer."

In an instant I was unbuttoned and had my trousers down, and was
between her legs almost before she had concluded her sentence. The
excitement of my caresses had moistened her juicy cunt, and the head of
my prick entered without any difficulty. In my ardour I was about to
rush on with a vigorous shove, when she implored me to be more gentle,
as she still smarted from our morning encounter. Moderating my
movements, and gently insinuating my stiff instrument, I gradually made
my way up to its utmost limits, and hardly occasioned even a grimace of
pain. Here I stopped, leaving it sheathed up to the root, and making it
throb from instant to instant. Then seeking my loved Miss Evelyn's
mouth, our lips and tongues met. Her arms round my waist became tighter
in their embrace. The delicious folds of her luscious juicy quim began
to throb and press on my excited member. Allowing her to become
thoroughly excited, I waited until she actually quite unexpectedly
yielded down her nature, and spent profusely, to the exquisite pleasure
of my saturated organ. I still held all off, to give her time after the
delight of that spend, which was probably the first of unalloyed
extatic pleasure she enjoyed; for as I was an inactive participator,
there was nothing to cause any action on the still raw edges of her
broken maidenhead. Her internal pressures were most exquisite. Our
embraces with tongues and lips were like the billing and cooing of
doves, and very rapidly brought her again to a raging point of desire.
I then began with slow and gentle movements, drawing my prick slowly
nearly all the way out, and then as slowly driving it up to the hilt.
Her previous very copious discharge had so oiled the delicious folds of
her cunt, that no pain was felt, only the intense pleasure. At last it
became overpowering; her arms were thrown round my waist, and her legs
were involuntary cast over my hips. Nature prompted her to the most
delicious movements of her bottom; she met my forward thrusts, and
responded to them in the most libidinous manner.

"Go on, go on, dear Charlie--faster!--faster!"

I wanted no spur. Fast and furious grew our movements, until at last,
with a mutual cry of delight, we sank in each other's arms in the
blissful extasy of the most complete enjoyment. It was several minutes
before we regained our senses, and both our organs of generation were
pulsating, the one within the other, in all the luxury of satiated
passion. With her beauteous legs still thrown over mine, she moved her
arms to my neck, kissed me voluptuously, and mingled the sweetest
accents of gratification with the most endearing caresses and
flatteries. I lay, as it were, in the paphian bower of bliss, in a
state of exquisite sensations quite impossible to describe. It seemed
even a greater pleasure than the more active state of delight we had
been to. I could have lain so for hours, but for that excitable prick
of mine, whose sensibilities were far too rapidly set in motion by the
luscious pressures of that most delightful cunt in which it lay
engulphed. It had gradually resumed its pristine firmness, and was now
at full stand, throbbing impatiently for further combats. I began to
move. Miss Evelyn said--

"Oh, my Charlie, you must cease, my dear boy; we must not only be
prudent, but consider your youth and health. Do, oh! do! my dear boy.
Oh!--pray cease."

Her words were cut short by the increasing passion that the vigorous
movements of my prick occasioned to her whole system. She could resist
no longer, but with arms and legs closely embracing me, and devouring
me with kisses, she threw herself into the fight, and with body and
soul so seconded me that we died away in screams of delight, and sank
quite insensible in each other's arms.

It was many minutes before we recovered speech. I still lay entirely
embedded in her most exquisite cunt, and would have liked to have
continued in her delicious embrace. But Miss Evelyn so imploringly
beseeched me to cease for this time, and pointed out how necessary
prudency was, if we ever wished to meet again, that I felt compelled to
raise myself from her body. But, in doing so, I slid off downwards, and
before she could prevent me, I glued my lips to the open pouters below
me, and greedily devoured all her delicious discharge, and did not
desist until I had so licked her clitoris as to make her spend most
copiously again. At first she had tried to resist, saying--

"Charlie, what on earth are you at? You must not, my dear boy, it is
dreadful."

But, as I roused her passions, her hand, instead of trying to draw away
my head, held it firm and pushed it well against her throbbing and
delicious quim, her thighs closed against the sides of my head, and she
almost swooned away with the extasy of her discharge. I greedily
swallowed it and rising completely, took her in my arms, and placing
her on her bottom, sweetly kissed her.

"Oh, what a charming creature you are, my beloved Miss Evelyn, I adore
you from the sole of your feet to the crown of your bead."

"But you, my beloved Charlie, have more than justified my imprudence.
You have given me a joy which I could never have dreamt of. I am yours,
body and soul; do with me as you like. I, too, adore the very ground
you tread on."

We continued exchanging the sweetest vows of affection, until, seeing
my prick rising to its usual stiffness, she said--

"Oh, my darling, you must put this away; it would be most imprudent to
continue any longer. Now, let me button it up."

First stooping and kissing it, she put it into my trousers with some
difficulty, buttoned me up, and we strolled towards the house.

Our conversation turned on our chance of fresh encounters. She begged I
would not think of attempting anything of the kind next day, and she
would try and arrange for the day after, although my sisters were
terribly in the way.

I suggested she should keep me in as when she flogged me, nay, indeed,
she should flog me in reality if she liked.

She laughed at my idea, but said something might be done in that way as
a blind. So I said--

"I will neglect my lesson on purpose to furnish an excuse."

"We shall see--we shall see. Meanwhile, remember to be very prudent."

We reached the house; she retired to her room until mamma returned.
Very kind inquiries were made, she said she had suffered severely from
headache, but, on the whole, felt better and hoped that a good night's
rest would put her all to rights. We all retired early, both mamma and
the girls were tired with their drive and shopping. I had resumed my
bed in the little dressing-room, and went to sleep with thoughts of my
delicious day's doings, to dream of re-enacting them with every amorous
excess that the utmost lubricity could suggest.

The next day Miss Evelyn began to resume her former looks--the struggle
was at an end. She was very gentle in her manner, and seemed even more
affectionate than usual to my sisters, who, fancying she was not very
well, were attentive, rather trying to anticipate her wishes than
following them.

There was rather a greater appearance of reserve than previously in her
manner to me, but when I went up to her to repeat my lessons, there was
a warmer clasping of my waist and a suppressed manner that showed she
was restraining her desire to press me to her bosom. Her face slightly
flushed, and she turned her beautiful eyes upon me with such an
endearing expression of affection that I could have thrown myself into
her arms but for the check upon my ardour which her own reserve imposed
upon me.

Nothing more took place between us that day. At our usual hour of
recreation, from four till five, Miss Evelyn retired to her room to
repose after the efforts of restraint that she had put upon herself all
day, and left us to ourselves. I need not say an immediate resort to
the summer house followed. There, first deliciously fucking Mary, and
then gamahuching Eliza, with the addition of gently introducing, at the
same time, a finger a short distance up her quim, I finished off with
another voluptuous fuck with Mary. I thus was enabled to bear the
bridle Miss Evelyn put upon the indulgence of my appetite in her
person, and was apparently more reasonable than in reality. She again,
on the second day, failed to give me the opportunity I so longed for.
Thinking she might hesitate, from fear of discovery, and the fact of
having no apparently reasonable excuse of being alone with me, I
determined to play the idler next day in the afternoon. On being called
up, I had done nothing. Miss Evelyn looked grave, but blushed deeply at
the same time.

"What do you mean, Charlie, by this idleness? Go, do your lesson, or I
shall be obliged to punish you."

She took me by the arm, and gently pressed it as she told me to resume
my seat. At four o'clock, of course, my lesson was as far as before
from being done.

"Mary and Eliza, you can go into the garden. Charles will remain until
he finishes his lesson, or is punished for his idleness."

They left and Miss Evelyn locked the door after them. Then we flew into
each other's arms, and indulged in the most endearing caresses for a
very few seconds. I had been in a state of most violent erection for
some time, so that my hand was up her petticoats immediately. I gently
pushed her back on her low long easy chair, and kneeling in front,
first thrust my head between her thighs, and taking a glance at her
beautifully haired cunt, already all moist and juicy, showing that she
was as ready as myself, I gamahuched her until she spent in my mouth,
and sucked the delicious liquid most greedily. There was something
peculiarly sweet in her spend, and my tongue sought the innermost
lining of her delicious quim as far as its limited length would admit,
that I might not lose a drop of her exquisite nectar, worthy of the
gods. The excitement I occasioned her was almost too much for her to
bear, she drew me up, saying--

"Oh! Charlie, my angel of a boy, come, oh, come to my arms." I raised
myself up, threw myself into her arms, and in a moment I was engulphed
up to the cods in her exquisite and throbbing cunt; she closed upon me
with arms and legs, we were both too violently excited to pause for any
of the more voluptuous movements of less violent desires, but rushed on
in passion's wildest extasy, both far too eager to think of any
restraint, and with the utmost vigour on both our parts, we ran our
first course with great rapidity. My adored Miss Evelyn had quite got
over every feeling of pain, and could not but be delighted with the
heat and vigour of my attack. We both died away together, at the
extatic moment pouring down a mutual flood of spunk to cool the
inflamed members that had the instant before been in such tumultuous
action. Darling Miss Evelyn hugged me close to her bosom, and threw her
beautiful eyes, screaming with passion, up to the ceiling, as if to
thank heaven for the joys she had felt. Our lips then met and glued
themselves together in one long, long kiss of love, which quickly
lighted up our lust; she was as eager as myself, and we had another
vigorous encounter, ending in all the agonies of delight, as before.
Then after a longer interval of the most endearing caresses and fond
accents of murmured love, we ran our third course, with more
abandon--lengthening out our exquisite sensations, by slower and
quicker movements and pauses between--in which my beautiful governess
began to develope an art in which she shortly became even superior to
the more experienced Mrs. Benson, who had so charmingly initiated me
into love's mysteries.

There was a peculiar charming and endearing softness in the manner of
Miss Evelyn most winning and most exquisitely attractive. It was
evidenced even in her mode of handling my prick; without grasping it,
her hand appeared to pass over it hardly touching it, but in so
exciting a manner that after any number of encounters, she could raise
it by her fairy touch in a moment. Our third encounter lasted quite
half an hour, and we sank in the death-like luxury of discharge, our
whole souls seemed to exude with the exquisite distillation of our
seed. We had long before regained our senses. I was still engulphed in
her delicious cunt, but she begged me to relieve her of my weight. We
rose, she shook her petticoats down, and assisted me to arrange my
trousers. I then sat down and took her on my knee. Our lips met in a
mutual warm kiss of gratified passion. She thanked me for the joys of
paradise I had given her--and for my discretion in procuring an excuse
for our meeting. She acknowledged that she had been as impatient as
myself, but was obliged to take every precaution against raising the
slightest suspicion in the house.

"You must always remember, my darling boy, that for me discovery would
be my ruin for ever. I risk every thing to possess you, my beloved boy,
I would care little for discovery, if it would not also separate us for
ever. That idea, my adored Charlie, is insupportable, I can no longer
exist without you." Here she threw her arms round my neck, and burst
into tears.

I have already described the effect of tears on my unruly member,
which, while I was consoling and vowing eternal attachment to my loved
mistress, burst from its bonds and stood out in all its glory. I took
her soft and beautiful little hand, and laid it on it. She grasped it
tightly, and looking at it, while smiling through her tears, said--

"My Charlie, what a great big thing it is. I wonder how it could ever
get into me, without killing me."

"You shall soon see that," said I, and changing places, I laid her
down, lifted her petticoats and was into her in a moment. She begged me
to proceed slowly, and to lengthen out our pleasures as much as
possible. We had a most glorious and truly delicious fuck; my lovely
and charming mistress giving me most extatic pleasure by the exquisite
pressures of the internal folds of her delicious and lascivious cunt.

We lay enraptured for long after we had spent, and then resumed our
sitting position, and arranged every thing in order, as the time for
the return of my sisters from their hour of recreation was close at
hand.

Our conversation naturally turned upon how we should arrange for our
next meeting. Miss Evelyn insisted that we must not think of meeting
more than once in three or four days, as otherwise we might raise
suspicions fatal to our meeting at all. However reasonable this was, I
raised an outcry against such a tantalizing delay, and begged hard for
a shorter period between our intervals.

"It cannot be my darling boy, remember discovery would separate us for
ever. By prudence, we may long continue these delicious meetings." I
suddenly suggested that as I slept alone in the little room, which,
when the spare room was unoccupied, was far away from every one, she
might steal along at night, when all were asleep, and thus I could
enjoy the whole of her exquisite charms, without hindrance. She did not
reply, but I could see her eye sparkled, and her cheek flushed as if
already in imagination she was revelling untrammelled in all the luxury
of voluptuousness such a plan opened out. However, she did not at once
accept, but kissing me fondly, called me her dear and ingenious boy,
and said she would think over my suggestion. We resumed our lessons on
my sisters' return. Miss Evelyn was again four days before she gave me
another opportunity of an amorous meeting. It was only my purposed
insubordination that obtained me this interview. We again indulged in
all the luxuries of carnal enjoyment, as far as could be done,
incommoded as we both were by dress and locality. Reverting more
strongly than ever to my plan of meeting in my lonely room, I begged so
hard that at last she promised to come the night of the following day.
I was obliged to put up with this, although I would fain have had her
come that very night, but as her passions were evidently gaining
stronger possession of her, and she was becoming more loving, and more
voluptuous than ever, I felt certain she would not disappoint me on the
next night. The delicious idea of revelling in charms I had so often
furtively gazed on, kept me away from my sisters next day. Under a plea
of headache I went early to bed, and took up some oil, to oil the
hinges and lock of the door, to be prepared for my loved mistress. I
lay long awake, and was almost in despair of her coming, when I heard
the clock strike twelve. All at once I became aware she was at my
bedside. She had entered the room with so gentle a step that though on
the watch for her, I did not hear her even when she opened the door,
shut, and locked it. She had come in her dark-grey cloak, and when at
my bedside this was dropped on the floor, she stood in nothing but a
very fine and thin chemise. She flung herself in my arms, as I rose to
embrace her, and we instantly sank closely clasped in each other's
arms. I was far too sharply set to practise any preliminaries. I turned
her on her back, and was into her in a moment, with one vigorous
thrust, which almost took away her breath, and gave her intense
delight. I was too quick for her, however, as I spent in two or three
shoves into that delight-giving cunt. But as this hardly allayed the
fires of my too ardent desires, the convulsive internal movements of
her unsatisfied orbit quickly restored my scarcely reduced member to a
renewed vigour. Miss Evelyn being greatly excited by the unsatisfying
nature of my first bout, was extremely warm, and throwing her arms and
legs around my body, we again rushed headlong into all the fury of
fucking, and as my previous spendings had somewhat reduced the power of
immediate discharge, I was able to suit my movements exactly to those
of my most active companion, and we sank together in all the
voluptuousness of satisfied desires, lying long locked in each other's
arms, before we were again in a state to renew our combats in love's
delicious domain. We spent the interval in whispered vows and fond
endearments and embracings of each other's naked charms, both of us
admiringly passing our hands over every part of our bodies.

Miss Evelyn at last concentrated all her attention on my well-developed
member, which she most endearingly embraced and fondled tenderly, very
quickly putting him into an ungovernable state of erection. I was lying
on my back, and she partially raised herself to kiss my formidable
weapon; so gently putting her upon me, I told her it was her turn to do
the work. She laughed, but at once mounted upon me, and bringing her
delicious cunt right over my prick, and guiding it to the entrance of
love's grotto, she gently sank down upon it and engulphed it until the
two hairs pressed against each other. A few slow up and down movements
followed, when becoming too libidinous for such temporizing delays, she
sank on my belly, and began to show most wonderful activity of loins
and bottom. I seconded her to the utmost, and finding she was so
excited, I slipped my hand round behind and introduced my middle finger
in the rosy and very tight orifice of her glorious backside. I
continued to move in and out in unison with her up and down heavings.
It seemed to spur her on to more vigorous actions, and in the midst of
short gaspings and suppressed sighs, she sank almost senseless on my
bosom, I, too, had quickened my action, and shot into her gaping womb a
torrent of boiling sperm.

We lay entranced in the raptures of satiated desire for a long time. At
last she came to her senses, and fondly kissing me, turned off, and we
lay side by side closely embraced.

"Oh! my beloved Charlie, what exquisite delight you have given me; you
are the most delicious and loving creature that ever could be created.
You kill me with pleasure, but what was that you were doing to my
bottom? What put such an idea into your head?"

"I don't know," I replied. "I put my arm round to feel the beautiful
globes of your bottom, and found in grasping one that my finger was
against a hole, all wet with our previous encounters, and pressing it,
found that my finger slipped in; you gave it such a delicious pressure
when in that the idea entered into my head that, as it resembled the
delicious pressure your enchanting other orifice gives my shaft when
embracing you, this orifice would like a similar movement to that which
my shaft exercised in your quim. So I did so, and it seemed to add to
your excitement, if I may judge by the extraordinary convulsive
pressures you gave my finger when you died away in all the agony of our
final rapture. Tell me, my beloved Miss Evelyn, did it add to your
pleasure as much as I fancied?"

"Well, my darling Charlie, I must own it did, very much to my surprise;
it seemed to make the final pleasure almost too exciting to bear, and I
can only account it a happy accident leading to an increase to pleasure
I already thought beyond the power of nature to surpass. Naughty boy, I
feel your great instrument at full stretch again, but you must moderate
yourself, my darling, we have done enough for to-night No, no, no! I am
not going to let him in again."

Passing her hand down, she turned away its head from the charming
entrance of her cunt, and began handling and feeling it in apparent
admiration of its length, thickness, and stiffness. Her gentle touch
did anything but allay the passion that was rising to fever heat; so
sucking one of her bubbies, while I pressed her to me with one arm
under her, and embracing her on the other side, I passed my hand
between our moist and warm bodies, reached her charming clitoris,
already stiff with the excitement of handling my prick. My titillations
soon decided her passions, and gently prompting her with the arm under
her body, I turned her once more on the top of me. She murmured an
objection, but offered no resistance; on the contrary, she herself
guided my throbbing and eager prick into the voluptuous sheath that was
longing to engulph it. Our movements this time were less hurried and
more voluptuous. For some time she kept her body upright, rising and
falling from her knees. I put my finger to her clitoris, and added to
the extatic pleasure she was so salaciously enjoying. She soon found
she must come to more rapid and vigorous movements, and lying down on
my belly embraced and kissed me. Toying with our tongues I put an arm
round her waist, and held her tight, while her glorious buttocks and
most supple loins kept up the most delicious thrust and pressures on my
thoroughly engulphed weapon. I again stimulated her to the highest
pitch of excited desires by introducing my finger behind, and we both
came to the grand crisis in a tumultuous state of enraptured agony,
unable to do ought, but from moment to moment convulsively throb in and
on our engulphed members. We must have lain thus languidly, and
deliciously enjoying all the raptures of the most complete and
voluptuous gratification of our passions, for fully thirty minutes
before we recovered complete consciousness. Miss Evelyn was first to
remember where she was. She sprang up, embraced me tenderly, and said
she must leave me at once, she was afraid she had already stayed
imprudently long. In fact, it was near five o'clock in the morning. I
rose from the bed to fling my arms round her lovely body, to fondle and
embrace her exquisite bubbies. With difficulty she tore herself from my
arms. I accompanied her to the door, and with a mutual and loving kiss
we parted. I to return and rapidly sink into the sweetest slumber after
such a delicious night of most voluptuous fucking.

She came again three times in the next six nights; each time we renewed
our mutual joys, with ever increasing voluptuous indulgencies. On
coming to me for the fifth time, she said--

"Dear Charlie, I have only come to kiss you, and say I cannot stop."

"Cannot stop!" I cried, "and why not, beloved Miss Evelyn?"

"I am not well, but cannot explain more."

I had sprung out of bed, and clasped her in my arms, then passing a
hand down to her beauteous and well-covered mons Veneris, I found that
she was tied up there in cloth. I immediately remembered how my loved
Mrs. Benson had been exactly in the same way. I then also remarked the
peculiar odour of breath, but pretending ignorance, I begged to know
what had happened to my darling little grotto.

"I cannot tell you more, my dear boy, but it will keep me away from you
for four or five nights."

"But why should that be the case; cannot you let me enter that
delicious cave of delight only once?"

"No, no, impossible! my dear Charlie, absolutely impossible! It would
do me very great harm, and you too. Let us be quiet in that way, and I
shall be the sooner well again to come and embrace you as before."

"Oh! but darling, how can I support five nights' absence, I shall go
mad with desire and burst--feel how he grows, and is longing for his
loved companion."

Her soft and gentle hand caressed it. I thought to succeed by a _coup
de main_, but she was too quick for me.

"No, Charles, I am serious, and you must not try to force me, or I
shall never come near you again."

I saw she was in earnest, and flung myself on the bed in a pet.

"Come, my darling Charlie, be reasonable, and I will do my best to give
you some satisfaction. Lay yourself on your back--so. I will kneel on
the floor at right angles to you, because you must not attempt to touch
me down there. That is a dear boy."

So taking my prick in her soft hand, she gently moved it up and down;
then, suddenly stopping, took it into her mouth, sucking as much as she
could get in, and titillating the knob with her tongue, while one hand
frigged at the root of my prick and the other gently handled my two
crisped-up cods. She prolonged the pleasure by occasional pauses, and
at last, on finding the electric-like sensations coming, she hastened
her movement, and I poured a torrent of sperm into her mouth. She
continued her delicious sucking until not a drop more was left for her
to swallow. This was the first time she ever gamahuched me, but it was
not the last by scores of times. Ever after we improved upon the model,
and added other endearments. When not under her courses, we mutually
gamahuched each other, and she was the first to repeat upon me, with
the intensest gratification, the delicious introduction of a finger
behind while gamahuching me. At present, when she had thus taken the
edge off my carnal appetite, she lovingly embraced me, and left me to
my lovely slumbers. Of course, the four days' grace, saving two more
passing visits "to keep me cool," as she said, turned all to the
advantage of my sisters, whom I fucked and frigged to their utmost
gratification and delight.

I thus passed about four months. Miss Evelyn becoming a perfect adept
in love's delicious mysteries; but, although I had attempted to enjoy
the orifice of the lower temple of Venus, my member was too large, and
gave too much pain, to completely succeed, so that I became the
faithful worshipper at the more legitimate altar of love. My sisters
were gradually developing their forms. Mary particularly so. The hair
on her quim had increased to a most charming curling profusion. Her
hips spread out, and her bottom, hard and prominent, promised to be
very large. Eliza, too, began to show increased bubbies, and an
enlarged and mossy mons Veneris.

We were approaching summer, and near the full of the moon, Mary had
complained of feeling very low spirited, and very much inclined to cry.
I tried to comfort her, and thought success would best attend my
efforts if I fucked her. So enticing her down into the garden, we
entered the summer house, and I at once proceeded to action. She was
rather unwilling, she could not say why, but had an instinctive
reluctance. She yielded, however, to my entreaties, and I fucked her
without apparently exciting her in the usual way. I consequently
withdrew as soon as I had run the first course, and at once discovered
what ailed poor Mary. My member was covered with blood. For the first
time her courses had come upon her. She was greatly alarmed, but I told
her I had beard it was quite natural to young women when they reached a
certain age, that she had better tell mamma at once, who would instruct
her what to do. I carefully wiped my reddened member, and then retired
to my room to purify myself. That very night, on Miss Evelyn coming to
me, I found she was exactly in the same state. She gave me my usual
relief with her soft hand and caressing lips, and then left me for five
nights, as at that time.

I now found myself reduced to my dear little sister Eliza. Up to this
time I had never actually fucked her, and her maidenhead was still
intact. She was now approaching fourteen, and the down on her charming
little cunt was becoming more decided; her bubbies too, under the
erotic excitement of my _attouchements_ and gamahuching, had assumed a
decided prominence. My finger had somewhat rendered the opening of her
little pinky slit more easy of access. So I resolved to complete her
carnal education and fuck her thoroughly. The opportunity was perfect;
both Miss Evelyn and Mary retired to their rooms to lie down at our
usual hour's recreation, Eliza and I at once hied to the summer house,
and locked ourselves in. I immediately laid her down on the long couch,
and gamahuched her until she spent in my mouth, and then continued
until she was again almost mad with desire. I then told her I should
initiate her into a new mystery, more delicious than any she had yet
experienced, but that the first initiation was always painful.

"Oh! what is it, my dear Charlie, everything you do is so nice, I know
I shall like it--what is it?"

"Then you must know, dear Eliza, that this little cunt of yours is made
for the express purpose of having a prick put into it; only, as mine is
so large, and you are still so small and so young, I was afraid it
would give you too much pain to do it sooner; but now, I think, I may
get it in, if I do it gently."

"Oh, Charlie, dear, put it in at once, I have often felt I should like
it so; but, as you never attempted to do it, I thought it was a mere
fancy of mine. Have you ever put it inside Mary's quim?"

"Often; nay, always, my darling."

"Does she like it?"

"She adores it."

"Then put it into me directly, Charlie."

I wanted nothing better, and told her that in order to thoroughly enjoy
it, she must strip. In a minute she dropped off everything, while I
took off my trousers--coat and waistcoat having been already laid
aside. I had brought a towel to lay on the couch below her bottom, to
prevent any telltale stains. Laying her down on her back, with her
bottom close to the end, her legs gathered up, and her two feet resting
on the sofa, with her knees falling outwards (in the very best position
for my intended operation), I put a pillow on the floor, on which I
knelt, thus bringing my cock a little above her quim to give me a good
purchase. I then first gamahuched her well again, until she spent and
cried out--

"Oh, put it in, my dear Charlie, I do feel to want it so!"

She was already well moistened by her previous discharges, and by my
licking the lips of her cunt, and covering them with saliva, with which
I also, at the same time, wetted my prick itself. I then made the point
approach the charming pouting and longing lips of her sweet little
cunt, and rubbing it first up and down between the lips, proceeded to
insert its knob between them. Thanks to the precautions taken, and the
excitement I had raised by my previous caresses with tongue and prick,
the immediate entrance was effected with greater ease than might have
been expected. No sooner was it in about an inch beyond the knob than
the passion of excitement I had raised so stimulated the natural
lubricity of Eliza's nature that she heaved up her buttocks
energetically, letting her knees drop quite down sideways, thus
favouring to the utmost my forward thrust made at the moment, so that
my prick was sheathed in an instant more than half his length, and but
for the obstacle of her maidenhead, which he then met with, would have
been entirely engulphed. As it was, it gave her a very sharp pang of
pain, which made her shrink back, and utter an--

"Oh! Charlie!"

"Do not fear, I will be gentle, keep still a moment and then you will
find the pain pass away, and great pleasure follow."

So we lay still for a time, until I felt those involuntary internal
pressures, the true precursors and infallible indicators of rising
desires; so commencing a slow and continuous in and out movement, I
shortly produced such an excess of pleasure in her delicious orbit,
that her movements became almost furious, and nature alone prompted her
to second me with as much art as if she had already been long
instructed in the delicious movements so calculated to add to the
libidinous delights of true enjoyment.

But Eliza was a rare example of a truly salacious and voluptuous
nature, and proved herself in that way far in advance of Mary; although
she was of a very warm temperament, Eliza's passions were far more
excitable, and in the end she became one of the most voluptuous fuckers
possible, abandoning herself to all the wildest raptures that the most
erotic nature could suggest. Of this, hereafter; at present I had
worked her up to the utmost pitch of excited desire; she was in the
very act of discharging, and as I withdrew for a final thrust, she
heaved up her buttocks in an agony of pleasure, I felt it was now or
never, and striking home with all my force, I burst with irresistible
strength through every obstacle, and tore my way inwards, until
sheathed to my very cods. Poor Eliza! at the very moment she thought
herself in the seventh heaven of delight, she experienced the most
excruciating agony. She gave a piercing cry and fainted away; her arms
fell senseless from my body--her legs would have also fallen, but
twining my arms round them, I continued for several successive thrusts
to penetrate fully and easily into every recess, for I myself was wound
up to a fearful state of excitement. I died away in an excess of joy,
sending a torrent of balmy sperm to soften and mitigate the pain of her
terribly torn quim. Finding that Eliza could not regain consciousness,
I rose somewhat in alarm, and was horrified to see the quantity of
blood that followed my withdrawal. It was fortunate my forethought of
the towel, as it had not only saved the sofa, but helped to stanch her
swollen and bleeding quim, and to wipe the blood from her thighs and
bottom. I had effected all this before the dear girl showed the least
symptoms of animation. She first sighed, then shivered, and at last
opened her eyes, and looked confusedly at me, and asked--

"What has happened to me, Charlie?"

Then observing how she was lying naked, she recovered her complete
consciousness of all the circumstances of the case.

"Oh! Charlie, now I know; I thought you had killed me; Charlie, oh! it
was so frightfully painful. How could you hurt me so, and just as I
thought it was the most heavenly pleasure I had ever experienced in all
my life."

"My darling, it is all over now, and it will never hurt again, and we
shall both of us have greater pleasure than ever, but not just now; it
has been greater pain to you than I thought it would be, and for the
present we must not attempt any more." I helped her to rise, but she
felt very faint, and I had great difficulty in getting her dressed. She
was shocked to see the bloody state of the towel. I told her to put my
handkerchief between her thighs, and partly up her slit, to prevent any
marks of blood staining her shift. I then laid her down on the sofa,
while I ran to get some water from the fountain in the garden. I took a
glass and the towel with me. I returned with the water, which greatly
refreshed Eliza. I begged her to lie still as long as she could stay.
However, when she attempted to walk, she found herself very much
incommoded with the smarting pain. I was terribly afraid lest this
would be observed when we got to the house, so I suggested she should
purposely fall down when in sight of any one, and say she could not
move because she had hurt her knee by the fall.

This stratagem succeeded admirably. We were seen approaching by Miss
Evelyn, my mother, and Mary. Dear Eliza acted her part admirably, was
seen to fall heavily, and screamed. They all rushed out, we lifted her
carefully on her legs, and supported her to the house, she complaining
of the pain in the knee and ankle. My mother insisted on her going to
bed at once, and having embrocations and hot towels applied. Eliza let
them do as they liked, and eventually was left to quiet repose, which
soon relieved the painful sensations she had undergone. Next day she
complained of great stiffness, and walked lame, but thought the hot
applications had prevented the swelling, so thus happily passed off all
observations of suspicion of the real circumstances of the case. It was
not until the third day after that I attempted to make an entrance. Of
course, I excited her first to the utmost by a long continued
gamahuching. She then let me, but with fear and trembling, introduce my
bursting member into the delicate folds of her cunt. As I was very
gentle in my movements, the pain was scarcely felt, and when once well
sheathed, and the first thrusts given slowly and luxuriously, the whole
lubricity of her nature was soon awakened, and by the time I was ready
to spend she was as ready to second me, and we died away in a mutual
flood of delighted extasy. She held me close, and would not let me
withdraw.

"No, Charlie, it took some trouble to get it in, let it stop where it
is so deliciously engulphed," and at once anticipating her natural
desires, she began the most exquisite pressures upon me, which very
shortly brought us both up to the point of demanding more active
measures. However, I rather restrained her, and told her we must retard
our movements to increase our pleasures, because mere quick repetitions
would only exhaust her, without yielding the true extasies of
enjoyment. I, therefore, taught her the pleasures of the slow
movements, and I worked her up to spending point, without giving way
myself. The dear little creature clung to me with the most close and
endearing embraces, as if she should force a complete amalgamation of
our two bodies, and died away in the sweetest bliss of contented
desire, with such a heavenly expression of extasy on her face as made
me devour it with kisses. I had great difficulty in restraining myself
from precipitately following her example; her delicious movements at
the moment of spending, and the close pressures on my prick, were so
exciting that resisting them was quite a triumph of control. I
succeeded, and lay quite quiet, embalmed in the delicious suction of
those exquisite folds of her charming little cunt, which exercised the
most delightful pressures as well as suction on my enraptured prick. I
left it entirely to her to lie as we were as long as she pleased, or to
again begin the dear delightful friction that should once more make us
dash on passion's furious course, to end as usual in the ever delicious
extasies of the final crisis.

This last bout had been a double one for my sister; she all but swooned
away with the rapture my spending in unison with her produced. She
declared it was a death of the most delicious extasy, which it was
perfectly impossible to describe. She clung to me, kissing me in the
most endearing manner, and telling me how happy I had at last made her
by completing the insertion of my prick in her cunt. It was worth the
suffering of twenty times as much agony to arrive at so exquisite a
result as every fuck I now gave her conferred upon her. We adjourned to
the flower garden, that we might be seen playing together, and not
excite suspicion by our constant disappearance, now that we were only
two together. Of course, Mary knew what we were at and probably guessed
that I had completed the initiation of Eliza. She smiled, and gave me a
significant pressure of the hand, when we met again in the school-room
to resume our lessons. For two days more I enjoyed Eliza all to myself;
at each new fuck she became more and more perfect in conferring as well
as receiving pleasure.

On the third day, Miss Evelyn whispered, "to-night," as she gave me a
stolen pressure of the hand. She came, and we indulged in every whim of
our fancy. I had further the delicious pleasure of gazing on all her
naked beauties, as it was daylight before we parted; I had gamahuched
her twice, and fucked her five times. She gave me credit for a long
fast, and allowed so much indulgence on that account, but told me I
must in future be more moderate, for her sake, if not for my own. She
allowed three nights to pass before again coming to me. I cannot say I
regretted it, because now that Eliza as initiated, as well as Mary, we
indulged in the most delightful orgies of fucking and gamahuching at
the same time. At first we used to fuck with one laid on her back to be
fucked, while the other backed on her knees over the face of the one
being fucked, and was gamahuched by her, while I introduced my finger
into the rosy orifice of the bottom before me. But we found the most
voluptuous way was for one to lie down on her back, and the other on
hands and knees over her. She thus brought her mouth over the cunt of
the one lying down, and presented her bottom to me, who knelt behind
her. The one below guided my prick into the cunt above her face; she
had thus all the satisfaction of seeing our action, while with one hand
she tickled my cods, and the other felt my bottom-hole, and inserted a
finger. Meanwhile, she was gamahuched and bottom-frigged at the same
time by the one I was fucking, and we used all three to die away in
agonies of enraptured delight, to recommence with a change of places
between the two girls. Sometimes I tried to introduce my prick into the
rosy little orifice of Mary's backside, but, although the
finger-frigging gave her much additional pleasure while her cunt was
operated upon by my virile member, she as yet could not support the
insertion of my large prick. I had not even attempted little Lizzie,
but one day, when Miss Evelyn and Mary were again under menstruation,
and I had dear Lizzie all to myself, she was seized with such an
irresistible desire to ease herself, that she had only time to get
behind a bush and squat down. I remained waiting for her, when she
called to me, to ask if I had any paper. I advanced to give her some.
She was in a half-standing position, with her clothes held up to her
waist. While giving her the paper, my eyes accidentally fell upon what
she had voided. I was struck with its extraordinary thickness. I made
no observation at the time, but it raised an idea that preoccupied me
much. I had often thought over the pleasure that fucking Mrs. Benson's
bum-hole had given me, hence I had tried to initiate both Miss Evelyn
and Mary in that delightful route of pleasure, but, as before stated,
had been unable to succeed with them from the great developement of my
weapon. Thinking that if they could not bear the insertion, there could
be no possibility of success with my younger and less developed sister,
I had never attempted with Lizzie more than the insertion of one
finger. It is true, with her it seemed to produce more excitement than
either upon Miss Evelyn or Mary. The sight of the extraordinary
dimensions of the matter she had voided now suggested the idea that if
her apparently very small and rosy-lipped bottom-hole could allow so
large a mass to come out, with gentle efforts my scarcely larger
machine might be inserted. I determined to try the initiation into that
route of delight the very next day. Remembering that dear Mrs. Benson
always made it a rule that she should be first well fucked and
gamahuched, and the prick well moistened, I began by exciting dear
Lizzie to the utmost. I first fucked her, and made her spend twice to
my once; then gamahuched her until she implored me to shove my prick
into her. I had managed to introduce my two forefingers at once into
her bottom, and had frigged her while sucking her cunt, without
apparently giving any pain; on the contrary, from her movements I
fancied she felt greater excitement. I took care to enlarge, as much as
possible, or rather to stretch her bottom-hole as open as I could with
two fingers. It was at the moment of her greatest excitement, when she
was pressing me to fuck her at once, that I said--

"My dearest sister, there is still another mystery of sensual
voluptuousness that you have as yet not experienced or been initiated
into, and I am about to instruct you in it."

"Oh, what is it? dear Charlie; but do anything you like, and as quick
as possible."

"Well, then dear, it is this sweet little orifice in your bottom that I
am going to introduce my prick into. It may give you some little pain
the first time, but by gentleness of movement, and halting from time to
time when it hurts too much, we shall get him completely inserted, and
then it will be an immense pleasure to both of us."

"Dear, dear Charlie, do as you like, your darling prick can only give
me the greatest delight; I am dying to have him into me, I don't care
where, as long as I get the dear creature into me. I suppose I must be
on my hands and knees."

Upon which she turned with great agility, and presented the two hard
and already promising globes of her charming backside. I lost no time
in first thrusting my prick up to the hilt in her cunt, to moisten it.
It made her shudder again with excess of lust, and she exercised such a
pressure upon it that I had some difficulty in withdrawing it. It was
so snug and nice therein that was a great temptation to run a course in
her cunt at once, but having the other object in view, and knowing that
I wanted all its stiffness to succeed, I did summon up courage enough
to withdraw; then applying the very plenteous saliva in my mouth that
gamahuching her had stimulated, I added it to the already moistened
prick, and applying some to her bum-hole, and introducing a well-wetted
finger, I put the knob of my formidable prick to the small and smiling
orifice that lay before me. The disproportion struck me as so great
that I dreaded success would be much too painful for her, but
remembering the dimensions of what had come out of it, I boldly
proceeded with the operation. I got in over the knob without making her
flinch, but, as I proceded to push gently forward, and had got in about
two inches, she cried--

"Stop a little, Charlie, it feels so queer--I can't bear it in further."

I stopped where I was, but slipping a hand under her, I applied my
finger to her clitoris, holding her bottom tight against me with the
other hand round her waist, so as not to lose ground. My agile finger
soon worked her passions up, and I felt her bottom give convulsive
twitches on my prick. I allowed her to become still more excited, and
then gently pushing forward found I was slowly, and almost
imperceptibly, gaining ground. My prick was then inserted almost
two-thirds of its length, when, thrusting rather too sharply, she again
cried out, and, but for the arm that held her fast round the waist,
would have unseated me.

"Oh, Charlie, dear, do stop; it seems to choke me, and makes me feel so
queer, that I thought I was going to faint."

"I shall lie quite still, now dear Lizzie. It is quite in"--this was a
little bit of deception to calm her fears--"and when the pain of
insertion passes, which will be the case in a minute, we shall have
nothing but pleasure."

So I kept my prick just where he was, but redoubled my frigging her
clitoris, and very soon brought her up to spending point, resolved that
I would not attempt complete insertion until I felt she was in the
raptures of sensual discharge. This quickly came upon her, and it was
the delicious movement of her own buttocks that sheathed my prick to
the hilt without an effort on my part, and so far from giving her pain,
made her positively scream with the intense voluptuousness of her
sensation in spending. She could not speak for many minutes, but
continued the exquisite pressures of the sphincter muscle on my
enraptured prick. But for my determination not to give way, and rather
to wait for another bout that would completely initiate dear Lizzie in
all the luxury and abandon of this delicious mode, I must have at once
vigorously finished my own course. My restraint was well rewarded. The
first words my beloved sister uttered were those of almost delirious
joy at the extraordinary delight I had given her. Never, never, had any
fuck so enraptured her. She turned up her lovely face to me, and tears
of sensuality and voluptuousness filled her eyes.

I had hardly begun my titillations on her still excited clitoris,
which, by the way, had lately considerably developed itself, when she
was as eager for another bout as I was. I held sufficient restraint on
myself to practice every salacious movement, that I might give Lizzie
such exquisite pleasure as should induce her on future occasions to
grant me the use of her charming bottom-hole whenever I should desire.
I worked her up to the utmost pitch of the most salacious excitement,
and at the moment when she spent, in an agony of shrieking extasy, I
poured a perfect flood of spunk right up into her entrails, and we both
sank forward, but without unseating me, quite overpowered by the
intensity of our delight. When we came to our senses I rose from off
her. On withdrawing my prick I found a few traces of blood, but of no
moment. I wiped my prick on a handkerchief, and also wiped between the
cheeks of dear Lizzie's bottom, for fear any tell-tale marks should be
made on her linen. I then helped her up, and she threw her arms round
my neck, and sweetly kissing me, thanked me for a new lesson in love,
which had overwhelmed her with delight.

Thus ended the first lesson that Lizzie ever received by that route of
pleasure, and I may incidentally state that she was peculiarly
constituted for giving and receiving the most exquisite pleasure in
that way. She afterwards developed into a magnificent woman, with one
of the naturally largest and finest backsides I almost ever met with;
and she came to love backward fucking to the utmost extent. In
after-days, when married, she told me that her husband was a muff, who
had no idea of enjoying a woman but in one way. She had often deceived
him, and slipped it into her bottom-hole without his ever having any
suspicion of the sort of pleasure he had given her.

Three months passed with the rapidity of a dream, while we indulged in
these scenes of delicious lubricity and voluptuousness, without ever
attracting any observation within the house and, more curious, without
Miss Evelyn either discovering or suspecting anything between my
sisters and myself--thanks to my natural powers and the unfailing
resources of youth. Both she and my sisters thought they each gave me
as much as I could get through, and, therefore, neither ever imagined I
could seek carnal delights in other arms. So it was but now there
happened one or two events which had a considerable effect on the
after-tenour of our loves.

A neighbour, a very nice good-looking man, about thirty-five years of
age, a gentleman farmer, very well off, had for some time past always
waited for us at the church door on Sundays, apparently for a chat with
mamma, Miss Evelyn, and us. He treated and evidently considered us as
mere children, nor did he appear to fix particular attention to any one.

One Monday my mother received a note from him, to beg she would grant
him a short interview on the following day, as he wished for her advice
on a subject of much interest to him. Mamma's reply begged him to come
at eleven o'clock, when she would be happy to see him.

He came, and was particularly neatly dressed. My mother had been very
agitated all the morning, and looked flushed and nervous as the hour
drew near; I really believe the old lady fancied it was for an idle
avowal to herself that he was coming. Be that however as it may, the
object of his visit turned out to be a proposal to Miss Evelyn, with an
offer of marriage. He was ready to make such settlements upon her as
could not but be satisfactory. He told my mother that before speaking
to Miss Evelyn, whom he had loved from her first appearance in the
parish, and whose quiet, modest character had daily made a deeper
impression, he thought it only his duty to first break the subject to
her, and to ask her permission for an interview with Miss Evelyn, and
next, if he was acceptable to her, for leave to visit at our house,
while courting his wished-for wife. He further stated that he had never
ventured to hint the state of his feelings to Miss Evelyn, and prayed
my mother to be the kind intermediary in opening the subject to her,
and to beg as a favour that she would grant him an interview to state
his case in person on the following day, so that he might learn his
fate from her own lips. My mother, although probably inwardly a little
disappointed, had the interest of Miss Evelyn too much at heart not to
take up the matter warmly, and urged, with all the volubility elderly
ladies can so well exercise, whenever the marriage of a younger friend
is in question, all the benefit that would accrue to her from so
advantageous a proposal. Miss Evelyn was really taken quite by
surprise, and stammered out some vague expressions of wishing for time
to consider.

"Stuff and nonsense, my dear, remember your dependent position, and the
advantages this match holds out to you. You must not think or talk of
delay. He will be here to-morrow, and I hope his lover eloquence will
soon decide the question in his favour."

Poor Miss Evelyn burst into tears and said it was so sudden, and she
was so ill-prepared to take any decision. She would, however, think
over it very seriously and in the morning be better able to give an
answer. My mother seeing that she was much agitated by what she had
told her, very kindly said--

"Give the children a holiday this afternoon, and I advise you to keep
your own room, and write to your widowed mother, to tell her of the
offer, and to ask her advice how you should act."

We thus had many hours to ourselves; I had heard all that had passed,
and felt a sad pressure at my heart, when I began to realise the fact
that the proposal of Mr. Vincent would, if accepted, lead to our
separation, and deprive me of my loved Miss Evelyn. The idea made me
very sad, and I showed no alacrity in taking advantage of our extra
hours of recreation with my sisters, until Mary began to rally me about
my melancholy, and asked what I meant by it. I at once said--

"Don't you see, if Miss Evelyn marries Mr. Vincent we shall get another
governess, and can we ever expect to get one who is so kind and
excellent a teacher, and who troubles us so little at our games."

"Ah! that is very true, and we should be horribly annoyed if we were
watched and interrupted. However, more reason that we should make the
most of the present moment, so come along, Charlie, and let us have
some real good fucking. We have plenty of time, mamma is not very well.
No one will come near us, and there is nothing to hinder our having a
jolly time of it, all three stark naked together, so come along."

Her words had already changed the current of my ideas; before she
ceased speaking my prick responded, which her quick eye immediately
observed, and patting it with her hand, she said--

"Ah! my dear little dummy, I am glad to see you are of my opinion, so
come along."

Away we went, and a most glorious afternoon of orgies we spent.

Miss Evelyn came to me at night and threw herself into my arms, in an
agony of sobs and tears, and pressing me to her throbbing bosom, she
sobbed out--

"Oh! my dear Charlie, I love you so dearly, you have become as
necessary to me as life itself. I cannot bear the thought of parting
from you, my loved one. You, whom I have initiated into all the
delights of mutual love. Oh! the thought of parting is bitter, and
breaks my heart. Oh! love me, my own darling boy, and press me to your
heart."

I did more, for, as I have before stated, a woman's tears have a never
failing effect on the erective nerves of my machine. It was but the
commencement of a night of most luxurious enjoyment. Miss Evelyn put no
restraint either on herself or me, but indulged in every act of
lubricity and voluptuousness were drawing to a close. In fact, when
eventually she left me in the morning, and I thought over all she had
said, it became evident to me that she had already made up her mind to
accept the very advantageous offer made to her. The instinctive
intelligence of woman had at once shown to her that such an opportunity
was not to be lost for the sake of a mere boy, whom circumstances must
naturally soon remove far away from her. At the same time, doubtless,
the idea that I was all her own making, for she never had any suspicion
of my previous initiation, held a charm over her, to say nothing of the
powerful weapon she had so unexpectedly found by her side, and which
had so great an influence over her passions. We spent a most luxurious
night, and hardly closed our eyes, notwithstanding my afternoon's
debauch; such is the power and resources of nature, in a
well-constituted youth of fifteen and upwards, that Miss Evelyn had
rather to force our embraces, than to stimulate by any artificial
excitement my ever ready prick. I won from her a promise to come next
night, and let me know what fate was in store for us.

Next day Mr. Vincent was true to his appointment. Mamma received him
with Miss Evelyn by her side, and after the usual compliments, rose and
apologised for leaving them, as she had household duties to attend to.
Miss Evelyn informed me afterwards that Mr. Vincent, on my mother
leaving the room, rose from his seat, and approaching her, said, in the
most frank gentlemanly manner--

"You are aware, my dear Miss Evelyn, of the object of my visit, and I
augur from your kind condescension in giving me this interview that my
suit is not disagreeable to you."

Then taking her passive hand, and pressing it to his heart, he
continued--

"I have loved you, Miss Evelyn, from the first moment of my seeing you.
I feel that my future happiness hangs on your lips, for without your
love, my life would now be a blank. I am here to-day to offer you my
hand and fortune. If I have not yet your heart, I seek to be allowed to
cultivate your society, that I may try to win it."

Then seeing that she was greatly agitated, he begged her to be seated
(for she had risen when he approached and took her hand), he led her to
a sofa, and seated himself by her side. He pressed for an answer. She
said--

"You must be fully aware, Mr. Vincent, that your generous offer has
taken me greatly by surprise. I feel most grateful to you for it, but
must implore you to allow me to pause, until at least I have heard from
my mother, to whom I will communicate the noble offer you have made to
me, a poor governess, who cannot but feel grateful to you for
condescending to think of her in such a way."

"Ah! say not so, my dear Miss Evelyn, and believe me, it is no sudden
impulse that has driven me to your feet, but ardent love, and real
admiration of your great beauty and admirable conduct ever since you
entered this family."

The dear creature smiled through her tears upon me when she recounted
those terms of affection that Mr. Vincent poured out to her.

To be brief--before they parted he won from her that his frequent
meetings at church, and elsewhere, had gained him something more than
esteem, but hopeless of ever becoming his wife, she had done her utmost
to suppress warmer feelings. Oh! woman, thy name is deception! So she
sent him away the happiest man in existence. He rode over every day
afterwards, and was with Miss Evelyn from four to five; indeed, he was
often the cause of our having half an hour's longer recreation. He also
frequently dined with us. Miss Evelyn's mother naturally jumped at the
offer, and most delightedly gave her consent.

When Mr. Vincent heard of this, be became very urgent in claiming an
early day for making him the happiest of men. Miss Evelyn wanted a
delay of six weeks, but this raised such an outcry on his part,
seconded by my mother, that at last she was driven from six weeks to a
month, and then to a fortnight from that date; so all became extremely
busy in getting ready marriage dresses, &c. The marriage was to take
place from our house, and my mother insisted that she should provide
the marriage breakfast. Mrs. Evelyn was invited to our house for a week
at the time of the marriage, to keep my mother company. My two sisters
and a young sister of Mr. Vincent's were to be the bridesmaids, and a
young man, courting Miss Vincent, to be bridegroom's man. So all was
thus arranged, and eventually came off most happily. When Mrs. Evelyn
arrived she occupied the spare room, where charming Mrs. Benson had so
deliciously initiated me in all the pleasures of sensuality and passion.

To return to the day when Mr. Vincent had his first interview, and
declared his love and admiration, and ended with the offer of marriage.
Before going away, he rang for mamma, thanked her for all her kindness
to him, informed her how happy Miss Evelyn had made him in granting
permission to prosecute his suit for her hand, &c. Then begging the
favour of a chaste kiss, he left all radiant with hope.

The interview had naturally been very trying tor Miss Evelyn, and she
was so evidently nervously agitated that my mother begged her to go to
her room, and lie down to repose herself, as after so much agitation
she must be quite unfit for any school work, and that she herself would
hear our lessons that morning and give us an afternoon's holiday in
honour of the happy event that had occurred.

We thus, my sisters and I, were thrown again into another prolonged
opportunity of fully enjoying ourselves, but, notwithstanding the
wonderfully regenerative power that nature had gifted me with, I felt
that if I wanted to enjoy again my dear Miss Evelyn, who had promised
to be with me that night. I must not only restrain myself from such
excess as we had indulged in the previous day, but also manage to get
some sleep, of which I had scarcely tasted the night before, so I
contented myself with first gamahuching and then fucking each sister;
afterwards again gamahuching them, and making them each spend five
times, so as to satisfy them without exhausting myself, and then
finishing off with a delicious fuck in Lizzie's bottom-hole, while each
gamahuched the other. This quite satisfied them, and they allowed me to
steal up to my room to sleep, Mary promising to call me in time for
tea. I slept the sleep of the just for some three hours, and came to
tea perfectly ready for anything that could happen that night. It was
well it was so, for now that there could not be any long lapse of time
before we must part, Miss Evelyn became a very glutton for pleasure,
and every art and position was made use of to stimulate and lengthen
out our joys. She came every night, even up to the very night before
the marriage, although in the last three nights before the event came
off, her mother, Mrs. Evelyn, slept in the spare bedroom with which my
room communicated. Nevertheless, we met and carried on our amorous
sports with bated breath and suppressed sighs.

We had of late often tried in our moments of greatest excitement to
introduce my prick into her delicious tight little bottom-hole. Once,
by a sudden manoeuvre, I managed to get in at the moment she was
spending, and actually made an entrance as far as about two inches
beyond the nut, and I think I should have fully succeeded at that time
if my own excitement had not made me spend too soon. This oiled the
way, and my prick, having already fucked several times, becoming too
limp, the squeeze of her bottom actually forced him out, as if she were
voiding herself naturally. I fancied that, at the moment, but for my
too excited passion, she would have rather I had completely initiated
her. However, the night preceding her marriage, I at last succeeded. We
had fucked in every varied way. She was on her knees, with her head on
the pillow, and I on my knees, behind her; this was a favourite way of
hers, as she declared I got further in, nay, seemed to touch her heart
and fill her whole body; besides the frigging her clitoris and the
action of my finger in her bottom-hole added greatly to the raptures
this position gave her. She had been already well fucked, and we had
mutually gamahuched each other, so her whole system was in a most
excited and well-moistened state. Taking care to put two fingers at
once into her bottom-hole, I worked them so as to stretch it as much as
possible, while exciting her with my prick in her cunt, and a finger on
her clitoris. Just as she was going into the raptures of spending I
dropped from my mouth a quantity of saliva onto her bottom-hole, and as
she was pushing her buttocks back to me I suddenly withdrew my prick,
and with one vigorous thrust housed him half his length in her
delicious bum-hole. She almost cried out aloud at the suddenness of the
attack, and would have flinched away but for the grasp of both my hands
upon her hips; a more vigorous shove sent me up to the hilt against her
beautiful buttocks. She whispered--

"For heaven's sake, dear Charles, do stop a moment, I can't bear it,
and must cry out if you do not be quiet for a time at least."

As I was safely fixed, it exactly suited me to remain still, for had I
gone on, a push or two would have made me spend. Now fairly engulphed,
I wished not only to fully enjoy it myself but, if possible, make her
enjoy it too. So remaining quite still, as far as regarded my prick, I
stole one hand down to her clitoris, and began to excite that; the
other I ran up to her bubbies, and played with the nipples, a thing
which I had found out excited her almost as much as playing with her
clitoris. Her passions were soon reawakened, and the involuntary
twistings of her loins and pressures of her sphincter convinced me that
in a very short time I should work her up to the utmost; and so it was,
and immensely she enjoyed both her own spend and mine when she felt my
hot spunk shooting up into her very entrails. We sunk gently on our
sides after this bout, but without unsheathing me; and here embracing,
kissing and tonguing each other when she turned her head, and sometimes
sucking the nearest nipple to me, we soon once more were in a state to
renew our delicious combat; and a second course was run in the
delightful callipygian recesses of Venus's second temple of lubricity.
This was our last bout, for, alas, it was getting the hour when the
house would be all astir. My lovely mistress embraced me most tenderly,
and acknowledged that I had at last taught her a new pleasure. She wept
as she tore herself from my arms, and I wept too when she left me, as I
thought I had now lost her for ever as a mistress, and what a charming
one she had been to me!

Morning came, and with it bridesmaids, bridegroom, and man. To church
we all went, my sisters perfectly enchanted with the idea of being
bridesmaids, and beautifully arrayed in new dresses. They were also
still more delighted with some handsome jewelry presented by Mr.
Vincent. In their eyes he became the handsomest and finest man they had
ever seen. The breakfast went off as usual, and when the bride, who had
changed her bridal dress for a neat travelling one, came down, pretty
near all were in tears on taking leave of her. She pressed me tenderly
to her bosom, and whispered--

"Courage, Charlie, dear."

It was almost too much for me, but I managed to restrain any extreme
demonstration of my grief. The carriage door was shut, and off they
rattled to spend the honeymoon at Leamington. The friends assembled
remained until the evening, and after the sensations of the day, and
the fatigues of the previous night, I was glad to get to bed. I cried
myself to sleep, thinking that another at that moment was revelling in
all the delights of amorous enjoyment of those charms that had been so
long in my sole possession.

Thus ended one of the most delightful episodes of my life, and although
I, at some rare intervals, from time to time found an opportunity of
enjoying my loved mistress, they were flying fucks, very delicious, but
very unsatisfactory.

This was the first great incident that had an effect of changing the
tenour of our existence for some time, but I will reserve the details
of our after-adventures for a second part of these reminiscences of
Early Experiences.



END OF VOL. I.





VOLUME II



CONTENTS



Mr. James MacCallum--Mrs. Vincent--Miss Frankland--Miss F., Mary, and
Eliza--Doctor and Mrs. Brownlow--



The house was scarcely itself even the day after the marriage. Mrs.
Evelyn was still with us, and did not leave until the following day.
She and my mother spent most of the day in the summer house, so that
our pastimes therein were interrupted. Mary complained of severe
headache, which, in fact, was the premonitory symptom of her courses,
which declared themselves violently in the evening. I had arranged with
my sisters to steal up to their room when all were asleep, as now that
we had lost our governess they had it all to themselves. I went, of
course, but found only Eliza capable of entering into our sensual
enjoyments. I made her come to me in Miss Evelyn's bed, and while
fucking her, was thinking all the time of my darling governess; and
even when I was fucking her I could only remember the complete
insertion of my prick into Miss Evelyn's bum-hole the very night before
her marriage, and wondered whether or not her husband had discovered
her loss of maidenhead. And yet, I fancied woman's natural cunning
would easily deceive him, as millions before him have been deceived.
Coupling Mary's attack and Miss Evelyn's choice of the marriage day on
the full moon, I could not help imagining that she intended to help her
deception by the advent of her menstruation. It will be seen hereafter
how far I was correct in my conjecture. I passed a delicious night in
the arms of my charming Lizzie, and only stole away just in time not to
be observed by the early-rising servants. Mrs. Evelyn departed the next
day. My mother, feeling poorly, desired Lizzie to sleep with her, so
perforce I had to pass a very quiet night, but which the agitation and
excessive venery of the last week rendered very acceptable.

Another week passed without anything particular beyond Mary being able
to join Lizzie and me in our orgies. The doctor had recommended my
mother to go for a few weeks to the seaside, and she resolved that we
should all go for six weeks before engaging a new governess. So we left
town for a charming little retired village on the west Welsh coast. It
was but a small place, with one street, and some straggling houses here
and there, but with a beautiful stretch of sand ending in abrupt rocks.
Our lodgings were but small; a sitting-room and bedroom above a shop,
and two rooms over that. I slept in the small back room off the
sitting-room, my mother had the front upper room, and my two sisters
were in the room beside her, with only a thin partition between them,
so we found ourselves obliged to seek for some outside place to enjoy
the erotic pleasures that had now become necessary to us. Very few
visitors ever came near the retired little village. In our explorations
we found that at the far end of the sands there were some nice retired
spots behind the rocks, which soon became the scenes of our sensual
enjoyments. The place was more than a mile from the village, and we
could see if any one was coming towards us for the whole distance; but
still as we might forget how fast time flies, we prudently established
either one or the other of my sisters as a sentinel to give us warning
if any one was approaching. So I took them in turn, laid them down, had
a mutual gamahuche, and then a fuck; after which the previous watcher
took the place of the one just fucked, and the same process was
followed in her case. We had done this for three days, and were
congratulating ourselves upon having found out so safe a place to
indulge all our propensities in. We always spent the mornings with
mamma, who kept us so far to our lessons, but after our midday meal,
which mamma also made her dinner hour, she retired for a siesta, and we
went out for a long walk and something better. I have said we fully
enjoyed the first three days without any apparent chance of discovery.
On the fourth, while Lizzie was on the watch in front, and Mary and I
after a delicious gamahuche had just died away in all the ecstasies of
a prolonged fuck up to the moment of discharge, and I was saying to
her--

"Did not that feel delicious, and was it not up to the hilt?''

"I should think so, with such a rammer as that up her cunt," said a
strange voice close to us.

You may easily suppose how we startled with surprise.

"Oh, don't do that, I did not mean to spoil sport," said the same voice.

It was a very gentlemanly man, with a soft quiet voice, and charming
amiable expression of countenance, who stood smiling upon us close to
our side, with his breeches open, and his standing pego in his hand. So
great was our surprise that we never thought of the state we were in.
Mary lay with legs spread out, and belly exposed, and cunt gaping open;
and I with my breeches down, and my great big cock pendent, it is true,
but hardly diminished in thickness. The stranger said again--

"I am not here to spoil sport, on the contrary, to aid you in every
way. I accidentally observed you two days ago. I am here, a stranger,
like yourselves. I know you to be brother and sisters, and admire you
all the more for being above the usual prejudices of that relationship.
But you must be aware that as I know all about you, the best way is to
let me be a participator in your sport; and then you not only shut my
mouth, but it will be the means of vastly adding to all your pleasures,
as well as giving me the most intense satisfaction. Now, for instance,
your elder sister there, who was about to replace the younger on the
watch, will be all the more satisfied, if I first fuck her. Don't be
alarmed, my dear," said he, as he observed a sudden move of Mary, who
all at once recollected how exposed her whole person was. "I shall do
nothing without your full consent, but I am quite sure your brother,
who takes you each in turn, will rather be pleased than otherwise, to
see you in my arms, or I much mistake his character."

I could not help, internally, thinking how exactly be had hit off my
very thought, for I had just been calculating, in my own mind, how much
better it would be for us to make him a participator with us, rather
than an enemy by a refusal. So I at once averred that as it had turned
out, it was likely to add greatly to all our pleasure, and I begged
Mary to let him have his way. The natural reluctance of woman to appear
too easy of access made her simulate a refusal, but as she still lay on
her back, I leant over her, and opening her legs, begged him to kneel
between and help himself. He gallantly, on kneeling, first stooped
forward, and gave a good lick-up of all her cunt's spunk-covered lips,
and then proceeded to gamahuche her, which quickly made her as anxious
for his prick as he was to fuck her. As soon as they were fairly at it,
I whistled, and beckoned to Lizzie to come up. You may easily imagine
her surprise to see Mary in the arms of a strange man; but as the sight
had had its usual effect on my sensitive organ, and as it was standing,
almost ready to burst, I made her kneel opposite to them, and
introduced my prick into her cunt from behind, so that we could both
see the delicious fuck going on before us. It redoubled our excitement,
and all four of us spent together in cries of rapture. After this bout
we sat down to make further acquaintance, which, you may suppose, was
not difficult, after such an introduction. Our new friend gave us some
hints very useful for future proceedings, meanwhile he was feeling
young Lizzie's cunt with one hand, and my prick with the other, very
nicely and gently frigging it. He brought me to full stand very
quickly, and then made me lie on my back, while he proceeded to admire
and praise the extraordinary development which he declared was the
greatest for one of my age he had ever met with, and his experience was
very extensive. When it was at full stand, he stooped forward, and in
the most delicious manner sucked my prick. It was more exciting than
when either of my sisters, Miss Evelyn, or Mrs. Benson had gamahuched
me. He also inserted a finger in my bottom-hole, and eventually made me
spend in his mouth, which he greedily swallowed, nor did he cease
sucking until every drop was drawn out of me. This had, of course,
excited him, and he said--

"Now, I must have the young one in her turn."

Lizzie, nothing loath, lay down on the grass at once, I conducted his
prick into her cunt, and frigged his bottom-hole, while their bout
lasted. His prick was one of the middlings, hot very long, nor very
thick, but of a uniform size throughout, without any large projection
of the nut, like mine. He advised us to stop for that day, and to walk
towards the village with him, and then when in full sight, but far
beyond hearing, we could sit down and concert measures for future
pleasures of the most delicious lubricity.

"I see," he said, "that we shall just hit it. I shall greatly add to
your pleasures, and you to mine; you have something yet to learn, and I
am the very person to instruct you in even higher delights than any of
you have yet enjoyed."

We followed him as desired, and, seated on a sand hillock, we held a
long conversation, and arranged everything for future indulgencies. We
agreed to meet at the rocks next day at our usual hour, he undertaking
to be there ahead of us, to see that no lurking stranger should have
hidden himself as he had done that day. He would think over the matter
in the meantime, and contrive some way of meeting where we could be
fully at ease, and strip ourselves naked, so as to enjoy a complete
orgie of the most salacious lubricity. He showed us where he was
lodged, a small inn a little way out of the village with its front to
the road, and behind the stables there was attached to it a small
cottage, consisting of a bedroom above, with a dressing-room, or small
bedroom if necessary, over the passage; the door opened upon the coast,
and there was no other communication with the inn than by going round
past the stable yard to the front door. The servant of the inn came
round in the morning, and laid his modest breakfast of tea, eggs and
toast, and when he was done, cleared away and made his bed, &c. He took
his dinner in the inn parlour at the hour the landlord and family
dined. Nothing overlooked his windows, and he was sufficiently away
from the village not to be easily observed, still less so from the inn;
so that on approaching his lodgings from the sands he was almost as
safe from observation as if he had lived in a lonely house far distant
from any other. I am thus particular in describing his lodgings, as the
advantages of the situation afterwards induced us to turn them to a
profitable use. Our friend's name was MacCallum, James MacCallum, an
offshoot of the great Scotch clan of that name, then in about his
thirtieth year, fond of sporting, particularly fishing. His room was
surrounded with the necessary implements, and he much frequented Wales
from its advantage of possessing so many good trout streams. He it was
who gave me a taste for the piscatory art, and I afterwards accompanied
him on many a fishing excursion, which often led to new and singular
erotic adventures, of which I may, perhaps, hereafter recount a few.
His ordinary residence was London, and our present acquaintance led to
some most intimate relations of true erotic extravagance, of which more
anon.

Meanwhile we met at the rocks on the next day, a Saturday. We found Mr.
MacCallum at his post, and all being secure, proceeded to action. It
was Mary's turn to take the first watch. Our friend constituted himself
master of the ceremonies. He desired me to take off my breeches, and
Lizzie to take off her gown and ease her corset, for as yet she wore no
stays; then telling me to lie down on my back, he made Lizzie kneel at
my head, with her bottom to me, and then to press back so as to bring
her charming little cunt over my mouth, her under-petticoat and chemise
being well canted over her shoulders. I thus had complete command of
her clitoris with my tongue, and she could sink her buttocks quite down
on my face, so that I could shove my tongue well up her cunt, and lick
up all her spendings when she discharged; and at the same time, while
embracing the charming plump hard buttocks with one hand, the other was
left free to frig her bum-hole, and stimulate her passions up to the
utmost. I have already told you how naturally she had taken to
posterior pleasures. While thus engaged, Mr. MacCallum proceeded to
gamahuche my prick in the most delicious manner, for he had an art in
this delightful accomplishment that far exceeded that of the many by
whom I have been gamahuched--of course, he added the _postilion_, as
the French say, by frigging my bottom-hole at the same time. He made
me most voluptuously discharge in his mouth at the very instant dear
Lizzie was pouring into mine her delicious spendings. We lay enraptured
for some time before we could stir. Then rising, I wished to return the
compliment Mr. M. had paid my prick, by sucking his. But this he
declined, saying--

"I shall teach you all a new pleasure before we part, and my powers are
not quite so active as your youth enables you to be, so for the moment
we will indulge in close observation and sweet caresses of our members
until by gentle titillations I get you two more prepared for the
amorous contest--"

He gamahuched Lizzie while handling my prick, and a very short period
elapsed before he had us both in such a state of excitement that we
were ready for anything he chose to direct. This time he also required
me to lie down on my back, but he placed Lizzie on the top of me, and
guided my prick himself into her delicious tight little notch. When
fully inserted, which was completely accomplished before she quite lay
down upon me, he desired us to go slowly to work. For a short time,
with his face close to my cods, he watched the in and out movement of
my prick, inserting a finger into both Lizzie's bottom and mine. Then
rising, he said--

"Stop a little, my dears, but don't withdraw. I am about to give your
sister a lesson in the double action of most delicious pleasure."

Then spitting on his prick, and applying a quantity of saliva to the
rosy orifice of her bottom, he proceeded to insert his prick--little
thinking how fond she was of taking pleasure in this route, and how
often she had already enjoyed it. He took every precaution not to hurt
her, and to be as gentle as possible, telling her to push out her
bottom, and to strain as if she wanted to void something, which he told
her would facilitate his entrance, and give her less pain. You may
imagine how secretly pleased Lizzie was; she did all he desired--and
with great gentleness he succeeded in sheathing his prick up to the
close junction of his belly against her buttocks.

"Capital, my dear, you have borne it admirably. I see you will make an
apt scholar; now you will have nothing but the most ecstatic raptures
from the action of two pricks at once. Now, Charles, it is for you to
work, and for your most charming sister to continue only the exquisite
pressures she is already at this moment so rapturously conferring on
our excited members."

We thus commenced the first lesson we ever had in the double fuck. Dear
Lizzie was almost mad with the agonising sensations of rapturous
pleasure the double thrusting produced upon her erotic nerves. I, too,
felt the rubbing of Mr. M.'s prick so closely upon mine, for the slight
membrane dividing the bottom passage from the vagina, by the powerful
stretching of the two members between which it was sandwiched, became
so thin a division that it really appeared as if there was nothing
between our pricks. Such ecstatic excitement brought matters to a
speedy conclusion. Lizzie screamed so loudly with her excess of
pleasure that it somewhat alarmed Mary, who came running up to see what
was the matter. Her surprise was great at the sight she beheld, but we
were far too deliriously wrapt in the lap of most salacious luxury and
lubricity to be sensible to any interruption. As for Lizzie she was in
convulsions of ecstasy, which ended in quite a hysteric attack which
rather alarmed us, and made us withdraw from the exquisite sheaths in
which we had been engulphed with such rapture. It was some time before
dear Lizzie recovered her senses, and then she burst into tears,
declaring she had never before known what pleasure meant, and she had
been in the seventh heaven of delight, that she could wish for no
better death than to die in such agony of pleasure. She then threw
herself into Mr. M.'s arms, and kissing him with the utmost fervour,
said--

"Oh, you dear man, how I love you for teaching me such a delicious way
of loving; you shall have me whenever and wherever you please. I shall
love you as much as I do my darling brother Charlie."

She then turned to me and warmly embraced me too. Then, putting on her
gown, she proceeded to take up the watch, while Mary remained to be
likewise initiated in the luxury of the double fuck. She somewhat
dreaded the experiment, but having witnessed the ecstasies of pleasure
it had thrown Lizzie into, she was not unwilling to try if it could be
accomplished with Mr. MacCallum's somewhat less massive member. He put
us through the same preliminary manoeuvres of backing Mary on her knees
over my mouth, and while he sucked my prick, he feasted his eyes at the
same time on Mary's really finely developed buttocks, giving him
promise of great after-pleasure. He even begged me to leave her
bottom-hole to his finger so that he frigged the bum-hole of the sister
while he sucked the prick of the brother, a combination which afforded
him the most racy delight, Mary was greatly excited, and spent most
copiously in my mouth, while I quickly followed suit in the mouth of
Mr. M., who did not allow a drop to be wasted. When we had reposed
ourselves sufficiently, his lascivious touches and caresses and praises
of our parts soon sufficiently re-excited us to let him see if we might
again proceed to action. As before, I lay down on my back, and Mary,
straddling across me, had my prick guided into her longing cunt by the
hand of Mr. M. When I was fairly engulphed in her hot and throbbing
cunt, she began her exquisite _casse-noisette_ pressures, which talent
she possessed in the greatest perfection; then bending down to me I
clasped her in my arms, and glued my lips to hers in a loving kiss and
tongue embrace. Her bottom presented itself in all its beauty to our
worthy master of the ceremonies, who, delighted with its more fully
blown beauties than that of the younger sister, paid first due homage
to it by fondly kissing it, and thrusting his tongue up the rosy
orifice, titillating her excessively, then wetting his prick he applied
it to the tender rosebud-like dimple at first without success, Mary
telling him she did not think he could possibly succeed.

"Patience and perseverance, my dear girl," said he, "will enable me to
get into a mouse; we must try another way; it is that great huge
monster of a prick in your cunt that is so blocking up the route as to
close almost entirely the way to the more secret temple of salacious
delights. Withdraw for a moment."

I did so; upon which he plunged in an instant up to the hilt in her
cunt and gave a few shoves to excite her and throw her off her guard,
for he told us afterwards, the first difficulty was all owing to Mary's
involuntary opposition, by squeezing in her bottom-hole, instead of
pushing it out. When he thought he had sufficiently excited her, and
made her suppose he was going to continue regularly fucking her, he
suddenly withdrew the two fingers he had in her bum-hole, by a jerk
substituted his prick, and before Mary was aware, had sheathed it more
than halfway into her bottom. She gave a half scream, but his hold of
her hips, and my close embrace of her waist, for I all along knew what
he was at, prevented her from flinching and throwing him out, which was
her first impulse. He said--

"I will keep still, and any unpleasant feeling will go off in a moment."

He stopped for two or three minutes, which I occupied in first rubbing
the end of my prick on Mary's clitoris, which was a well-developed one,
and when by her nervous movements I found her passions were being
roused, I slipped it into her tightened cunt without much difficulty.
Mr. M. took the opportunity of finding me penetrating to glide in on
his point of attack up to his utmost limit. Mary gasped again, and
declared it was choking her. However, by a little more patience, and
then by very gentle movements, we gradually worked her up to the utmost
state of excitement, and she, as well as both of us, went off in a
delirium of enraptured felicity. She lay panting and throbbing between
us for nearly a quarter of an hour.

I was already in a state for renewed efforts, but Mr. M. rose, and
withdrew his reeking prick from the tight recess in which it had
enjoyed such ecstasies, and told us we must be content with that day's
work, expressly as he had a plan in his head for the next day, that
would require us to have all our erotic powers at command. Then, as
before, we approached the village, so as to be seen, but not overheard,
so that our going away to more distant places should create no
suspicion. Mr. M. then informed us that we could come to his cottage
the next afternoon, instead of the rocks; we should be able to undress
ourselves in the buff, and have a perfect orgie of salacious delights.
We heartily approved of this plan, and after an amusing conversation,
we parted to meet the next day on the sands, but in the contrary
directions to the rocks, for the purpose of afterwards approaching his
cottage from the least observable site.

After dinner the next day we started at our usual hour apparently for
our ordinary promenade, but after leaving the village, and allowing
most of the people to be safely stowed away in church for the afternoon
service, we turned on our steps and made for Mr. M.'s door. He saw us
coming, and was ready to admit us, without knocking. We immediately
adjourned to the bedroom upstairs, and lost no time in all of us
stripping stark naked. After some preliminary admiration of the two
girls, whose forms were certainly cast in beauty's mould, we lay down
in bed. I and Lizzie mutually gamahuched each other, with the usual
accompaniments in the charming orifices of our bottoms. Mr. MacCallum
and Mary, for he had taken a great fancy to her and her splendid
bottom, followed our example, After we had a happy and most delicious
spend, and then mutual embraces and kisses, we put the girls into all
conceivable poses, until we were once more ready to go on with
something more serious than gamahuching. Mr. M., as usual, acted as
master of the ceremonies, and ordered Mary to lie down on her back,
then Lizzie reversed upon her, so that she could gamahuche Mary's cunt,
and tickle her bum-hole, while Mary was to frig Lizzie's clitoris with
one hand, and play with my cods with the other, Mr. M. himself guided
my prick into the delicious bottom-hole of Lizzie, and when we were all
fixed, and he had frigged my bum-hole with two fingers, he said--

"Now I am going to initiate you, Charlie, into the delight of being
alike operator and receiver."

So saying, he moistened his tool and spit in my bum-hole, and proceeded
very gently to introduce his prick therein. I have described his cock
as not very thick at the point, consequently the first part introduced
itself very easily, but when the pillar pushed its way in, and began to
stretch the parts, it produced a curious sickening feeling, very like
as if I had received a kick on the bottom; so I was obliged to ask him
to halt a little. He was too experienced in the art not to fully
understand my feelings, and knew well it would go off in a minute or
two, if I was left quiet. So pausing until I told him he might now try
to get in further, he drew back a little and applying more spittle to
the shaft, gently and firmly, and slowly guided his prick up to the
hilt, or as far as his belly and my buttocks would allow. Again pausing
a little, until feeling by the throbbing of my prick, which produced
the same pressure on my bum-hole, that I was warming to the work, he
began slow movements of thrusts in and out, which, together with the
hot and voluptuous pressures and movements of my own little partner
excited both by Mary's finger and my prick, began to fire my passions,
and we soon grew very fierce in our movements. Nothing I could ever
have imagined equalled the extraordinary and delicious ecstasy that the
double action produced upon my erotic nerves. I gasped, I shuddered
with the agony of intense pleasure, and at the moment when the grand
and rapturous finale approached, I actually brayed exactly like a
donkey, which, in after cooler moments, amused all of us. The action of
pleasure had come upon all at once, and we sank in an inert mass on
those below us. How poor Mary endured it astonished us, but the scene
had so excited her that she said it never occurred to her, and she felt
nothing. We eventually rose, and after a necessary purification,
partook of wine and cake, which Mr. MacCallum, with great foresight,
had provided. After that he would not allow us to fuck for some time;
and we had a regular romp all about the room, which we enjoyed very
much, and nothing was heard but slaps on our bottoms, and the wildest
rollicking laughter--until our two cocks, by their stiff-standing,
showed that we were again ready to enter on new combats. This time
Lizzie lay down, Mary gamahuched her. Mr. M. got into her bum-hole, and
I proceeded to attempt to do the same to him, but all to no purpose. I
was too heavy hung for his bottom-hole, a very small one for a man. He
had every wish to accommodate me, but do what I would, I could not
overcome the physical difficulties. So reversing our positions, I lay
on my back, Mary straddled over me, my prick was put into her cunt, and
stooping down, and presenting her anus, M. succeeded more easily than
the day before in getting into her bum-hole. Lizzie standing up with a
leg on each side of Mary's and my body, brought her quim up to M.'s
mouth, and he luxuriously gamahuched her, while his finger acted
_postilion_ in her bottom. The erotic storm raged with great fury for a
long time, and then, growing more fast and furious, brought us all
standing in ecstasies of the most salacious enjoyment, for us to sink
once more into the annihilation of satiated desire. We lay long wrapped
in close embrace. Recovering our senses in long-drawn sighs, we again
refreshed ourselves with wine and cake, and as our passions were not so
quickly reawakened as those of our more excitable companions, we
proceeded to gamahuche them, without their exercising a like skill upon
our pricks. We then had another romp, and replacing Mary below and
Lizzie above, I, this time, fucked her cunt, at her request, as she
said it must not be altogether neglected. M., as previously, took me
behind, and as there was a greater facility, so there was greater
enjoyment, and as our previous exertions had taken off the sharper
appetite, we were enabled to draw out our pleasure to a much greater
length, until at last we died away in all the agony of such a glorious
conjunction of parts. We had one more delicious general fuck before we
parted. Lizzie was again fucked by me, and buggered by Mr. M., which
she declared she preferred to any other combination, my prick so
deliriously gorging her tight little cunt, and making M.'s prick, from
the pressure of my larger weapon in the cunt, feel as tight in her
bottom as my prick did, when nothing but Mary's finger was in her cunt.
We ran our course with even greater luxury and lasciviousness than
before. Lizzie actually was hysterical with the force of her enjoyment,
and we all sank sideways off poor Mary, and lay long locked in each
other's arms. This, for that day, ended our most delightful orgie. We
purified ourselves, and then dressed. We parted with many sweet
embraces, and promises of renewing the delightful scenes we had just
gone through, and, in fact, we often and often repeated them, varying
from time to time with a visit to the rocks, lest we should draw
observation upon us by constantly going to the cottage.

Our six weeks came to an end so rapidly that we could hardly believe
the time had already passed. Mamma one morning informed us we were to
leave on the day after the next. You may suppose our disappointment,
but there was no help for it. We met that day at the rocks, we were
melancholy at the thought of parting with our charming friend, whom we
now really loved. We were not near so fiery as usual, but resolved to
have one thorough good orgie the next day at the cottage, as a farewell
benefit to us all. We met, as agreed on, and put in force every art to
augment our pleasures, and every contrivance to excite anew our powers
to the utmost. Both M. and I must have spent six to seven times, but
the girls being more easily excited in their finer organs of coition,
went off in ecstasies some nine or ten times; until fairly exhausted,
we had, from want of power, to give up the game, dress and part. We
hoped to meet again. The girls wept at parting with our delightful
friend, to whom we owed so many delicious orgies. We exchanged
addresses, and he promised to come on a fishing excursion to our
neighbourhood, where he hoped we should find means of renewing the
lascivious sports we had already so much enjoyed. We tore ourselves
away from him at last. It will be seen in the sequel, that unforeseen
events carried me to London, or rather away from home, before we could
meet again; and it was in London, at his own chambers, where we again
renewed our charming intercourse, and practised every art of venery.

We returned home, and mamma again advertised for a governess, and
stated that she required one of not less than thirty years of age, and
with much experience in teaching. Numerous responses were made to the
advertisement; but one lady desired to see mamma and her pupils before
accepting the place, at the same time forwarding very satisfactory
testimonials. Mamma was rather struck with the style of letter, and the
unusual demand of previous acquaintance before entering into final
arrangements. So she wrote to Miss Frankland, begging her to come and
spend three days with us, and if her visit should prove as agreeable to
both as her letter had done to mamma, she had no doubt matters might be
arranged to their mutual satisfaction. Accordingly, at the expected
hour, Miss Frankland arrived. She was, to our then thinking, an elderly
lady, rather above thirty years of age than under, of tall and
commanding figure, somewhat large, but no superfluous fat, broad
shouldered, and wide hipped, with bosoms well separated, but not too
prominent. Her hair was coal black, and her eyes equally so, but with
the most determined expression, rendered more so by very thick
eyebrows, which met in the middle. She showed also a well marked downy
moustache, and the small curly hairs below her head, at the back of her
neck, literally lost themselves beneath her high-necked dress. She
always wore long sleeves, and never showed bare arms. I afterwards
found the reason of this was that her arms were so black with thick
hair that she was ashamed to let them be seen, although, in reality,
beautifully formed and plump. Her mouth was large; it showed animal
passion, but at the same time determined firmness of character. You
could not call her handsome, but there was altogether an appearance of
face, expression, and person that might well be styled a fine woman. As
for us, at the period of first seeing her, we only marked the
determined character of her countenance, and at once dreaded her
becoming our governess, as we felt we should not only have one who
would master us, but who would also be severe in every way. Youth is
often a better physiognomist than it is credited with. It will be seen
in the sequel whether we had judged correctly or not. Suffice it to say
that her three days' visit ended in her being perfectly satisfied with
the offered position, and mamma being equally satisfied with her. We
did not know at the time, but afterwards found out, that she had made
it a _sine qua non_ that she should have carte blanche as to the use of
the rod. She had observed to mamma that she thought we had been too
leniently treated by our late governess, and it would be necessary to
exert severe discipline, which, in her own experience, she had always
found most efficacious. My mother, who had during the last two months
found us rather headstrong and wilful, quite chimed in with her idea,
and gave every authority to do quite as she liked, either with her
girls or her son.

Terms being so arranged, Miss Frankland required a week to make all her
arrangements before definitely taking up her new residence. My mother,
thinking we should be well kept in on the arrival of Miss Frankland,
left us in uninterrupted liberty until then, you may be sure we
improved the occasion, and did our best to make up for the loss of our
inestimable and amiable friend, Mr. MacCallum. Not only did we make use
of the summer house by day, but every night I stole up to my loved
sisters' room, where we tried to emulate the luxurious scenes of
lubricity we had lately been so deliriously indulging in at the seaside
in Wales. Of course, the week passed far too quickly, and on the
appointed day my mother drove into the town to bring Miss Frankland
home, on the arrival of the coach. My two sisters accompanied her, as
something or other was always wanted for the girls; and as Miss
Frankland and her luggage would quite fill the carriage on their
return, I was left by myself at home, a most fortunate circumstance, as
it turned out.

I was somewhat annoyed at being left alone. But how true it is that
"man proposes and God disposes." Had I gone with them I should have
missed a most delicious and unexpected treat. I had strolled to the
summer house in a sort of despair at the lost opportunity of again
fucking my sisters before the arrival of the dreaded governess. I was
listlessly gazing out of the window when I suddenly became aware of a
lady waving her hand to me from a gig coming down the road which our
summer house commanded. In an instant I recognised Mrs. Vincent. To run
down the hillock, unbolt the private door, and welcome her to our
house, was the work of a moment. I begged her to get out and walk to
the house through the grounds, her servant could drive round to the
stables and wait there. She did so at once. I never said a word of all
being absent until I had her safe in the summer house. Without a word I
seized her round the waist, and pressing her back on the couch, quickly
unbuttoned my trousers, and pulling up her petticoats, was pushing my
stiff prick against her belly before she was almost aware of my
intentions.

"My dear Charlie," she cried, "what are you at? We shall be discovered,
and it will be my ruin."

"Oh, no, my ever loved Mrs. Vincent; they are all away to town, and we
have nothing to fear."

She loved me too well to make further resistance; on the contrary,
seconding me with all her accustomed art, we both quickly sunk in all
the voluptuous raptures of satisfied desire. I would not quit my
position, but kissing her rapturously, I shoved my tongue into her
mouth, and stopped her remonstrances. The excitement of meeting her
after a two months' separation stimulated my passions to the utmost,
and with hardly bated breath I began a fresh career, but with more
moderation and greater pains to make her a perfect participant in the
raptures I myself was receiving. She thoroughly enjoyed it, and being
relieved from any fear of surprise, after my informing her of the
absence of all the family, she gave way to all the force of her ardent
amorous propensities, enjoyed our delicious fuck thoroughly, and spent
at the same time as myself with screams of satiated passion. After this
I withdrew. She kissed me most tenderly, and said I was as bad and wild
a boy as ever, that she loved me too tenderly ever to refuse me
anything I desired, and begged me to sit by her side and talk of old
times.

"No," I said, "on the contrary, tell me all about yourself; I have not
seen you since your marriage day, and I want to know how the after-part
went off. I was in dread lest our embracings should have left traces
that would make your husband suspect you were not all he had
anticipated."

"You are a strange boy, my dear Charlie, and more of a man in every way
than many ten years older than yourself. Who would have thought such
ideas would have been running through so young a head. Well, my darling
boy, I was somewhat uneasy on that very point myself, and, indeed, had
fixed the marriage day when I expected I should be unwell on the very
night, but in that I was disappointed; nothing came, and I was driven
to act in the best way I could. I kept my legs close together. I got my
hand down to that part of my person, and kept squeezing my affair as
close as possible. I pressed hard with my fingers on his weapon as he
forced an entrance, and all at once gave way with a scream of apparent
pain, as he gave an extra thrust, and let him penetrate at once. An
inexperienced husband takes much on credit and imagination, I quite
satisfied him that he was the first possessor of my person; but, oh! my
beloved Charlie, I found I was really ready in the family-way, and you,
my dear fellow, are the father of the baby now within my womb."

"What? I! I! the father of your baby? Oh, dear, darling Mrs. Vincent;
oh, say that again."

"It is indeed true, my dear Charlie; and the knowledge that I first
possessed you, and you me, reconciles me to giving my husband a child
that is not his."

"My child! my child!" I cried, and I danced round in a paroxysm of
delight at the idea of being a father. It seemed at once to elevate me
to manhood, and puffed me up with pride. I rushed upon dear Mrs. V.,
embraced her most warmly, and pushing her back on the sofa, said--

"I must see how the little angel looks in his cell."

I turned up her petticoats, and exposed all her beauteous belly,
already by its swelling showing there was more there than ever went
into her mouth. Her cunt too had become more prominent. I stooped,
kissed her lovely quim, gave it a good suck, then gamahuched her till
she cried out for my prick to fuck her, and a most exquisite and
rapturous fuck we had. The thought that I was baptising my own babe
with my sperm stimulated my lubricity, and we ran a course of the most
libidinous delights until we dissolved away in the most voluptuous
death-like exhaustion of satisfied desires.

"Charlie, my darling, you must get up; remember you may injure the dear
little creature by too great an excess, so pray rise."

I rose at once, but only to embrace her most tenderly. She complained
of feeling somewhat faint, and said we must now go to the house to get
some wine. We put ourselves in order, and all radiant at the thoughts
of paternity, I strutted along as proud as a peacock, and thinking no
small beer of myself. I hardly knew whether I stood on my head or my
heels, and was quite extravagant in my conduct. Dear Mrs. V. was
obliged seriously to caution me before I could come to a proper
reserved behaviour in presence of the servants. She rested about half
an hour, and was about to order the gig up to the door, but I implored
her to send it round to the road below the summer house, as I should
all the longer have the pleasure of being with her. She smiled, and
again gave me a pat on the cheek, as much as to say, "I understand you,
you rogue," but did as I suggested. So we proceeded through the
grounds, and were at the summer house some time before the gig could be
harnessed and come round to the road below. I did not wait for that,
but embracing darling Mrs. V., wanted to push her down on the sofa.

"No, no, dear Charlie, that will tumble my dress too much, and we shall
have no time to put it in order; stop, I will kneel on the low couch,
and you will stand behind, I can guide you from below, and you know I
always thought you got further in and gave me more pleasure that way
than any other."

She knelt down, and I canted her clothes right over her shoulders, and
exhibited her fine buttocks, which, now she was in the family-way, had
widened out, and were fatter and rounder than ever. First gluttonously
kissing them, I brought my prick right against them. Mrs. Vincent
projected her hand behind, seized and guided him into her glowing and
longing cunt, and he plunged at one bound up to the hilt.

"Gently, Charlie dear," she cried, "remember our dear baby is there,
and you must not be too violent."

This at once reduced me to moderation. I had a hand on each hip, and as
I slowly glided in, I pressed her splendid buttocks backwards to meet
me. I kept my body upright so as to enjoy the lovely sight of the
movement of her bottom.

"Put your arm round and feel my clitoris, Charlie, dear."

I did so for a minute, and then whispered--

"It is such delight to gaze on your splendid bum in action, so pray
apply your own finger to your clitoris, and let me enjoy the lovely
sight."

"Very well, darling."

And I could feel her frigging away most furiously. This enabled me to
introduce first one and then two fingers into her most delicious
bottom-hole. When I found she was in the greatest state of excitement,
I suddenly shifted my prick, and substituted it for my fingers. In her
surprise and excitement, she had no time to resist, and I glided in,
not too rapidly, quite up as far as I could go. She flinched a little,
and called me a bad fellow, but I held her hips too tight to allow of
her unseating me, even if she had wished. I begged she would let me go
on, for I had never forgotten the delight of doing it this way the
night before her marriage. She made no reply, but I could feel
redoubled action with her finger on her clitoris; and the muscular
twitchings of her loins and sphincter soon convinced me that nothing
would please her better than finishing our course where I was--and most
delicious it proved. We should have died away in loud cries of agonised
delight but for the necessity of prudence, for doubtless the gig was
then awaiting but a few yards off. My darling mistress seemed unwilling
to let me withdraw; she held my prick in such close and firm embrace,
throbbing on it from moment to moment, and so exciting him that she
shortly felt he was again stiffening inside of her. She rose on her
legs, and by that action unsheathed me. Then, turning round, she threw
her arms about my neck, and most tenderly embraced me, thanking me for
having given her such exquisite proofs of love.

"But I must go, my dear Charlie, and I hope we shall have occasionally
some other delicious opportunity of enjoying such raptures again. Say
everything kind to your mother and the girls, and tell them I shall
come ever again shortly and see them all."

I saw her into her gig, and watched her until a turn in the road hid
her from my sight. I returned to the summer house, and kissed the spot
she had last pressed with her lovely body. My soul was filled with love
of her, and pride that I was man enough to put a babe into her belly. I
strutted about the room, and if any one could have seen me I should
doubtless have appeared ridiculous. Mamma, our new governess, and the
girls returned to tea. I told them of Mrs. Vincent's visit, and her
regret at finding them absent, also of her promise to drive over again
on an early day. My mother hoped I had been attentive to her. I said I
had, as well as I could, and had got some wine and biscuits, as she
complained of not feeling very well, she thought the jolting road had
tired her.

It may well be supposed that after the impression our new governess had
made upon us, we were very attentive for some time. Indeed, her system
of teaching was really excellent, far superior, in that respect, to our
former governess. She had a method of interesting you in what she was
teaching, and for quite two months we paid such great attention, and
made such really extraordinary progress, that she could not help
praising us highly to mamma while we were in the room. This was bad
policy, because, with the natural thoughtlessness of youth, we fancied
ourselves so clever that we became less attentive. This was patiently
borne with for some time, probably in consequence of our previous good
behaviour. But at last Lizzie was somewhat impudent when blamed rather
harshly by Miss Frankland.

"Oh! it has come to that, has it? We shall see." She continued our
lessons until four o'clock as usual, and then desired Lizzie to remain
where she was; she dismissed Mary and me, locked the door on poor
Lizzie, and went away, doubtless for a rod. She soon returned, and
locking herself in, most severely whipped poor Lizzie's bottom. She
sent her out when it was finished, and Lizzie joined us, weeping
bitterly from the pain she was suffering. We laid her on the couch, and
turned her petticoats over her head to cool her bottom, which she
declared felt as if burning hot coals were spread over it. I kissed the
dear red buttocks that were all covered with weals and looked like raw
beef, but no blood had been drawn. We fanned her with our
handkerchiefs, which she said was a delightful relief. In a very few
minutes she began to wriggle her bottom in a state of excitement, and
cried out--

"Dear Charlie, do shove your prick into my cunt, it has begun to long
for a fuck."

I wanted nothing but this to instantly act, for the sight of her bare
bum had already made my cock stand as stiff as iron. She raised herself
on her hands and knees, presenting the back entrance to her cunt, and
telling me it was there she must have it instantly. I plunged up to the
hilt in a moment, for she was as juicy and moist as if she had spent,
which it is more than probable was the case. Very few powerful thrusts
on my part, seconded by energetic action on hers, and she spent again
with a scream of delight, and with a pressure on my cock that almost
hurt it. She hardly paused a moment before she cried out--

"Shove on, dear Charlie, push it in further if you can, I am burning
with desire."

She wriggled her backside in every way in the most lascivious and
delicious manner, and when she felt the crisis approaching, by the
increased swelling and hardness of my prick as well as the peculiar
electric effect at the moment, she met my flood of sperm with so
copious a discharge that it literally spurted out and deluged my cods
and thighs. She held me tight, and would not allow me to withdraw until
I had myself spent four times and she seven at least. We then rose, her
nerves calmed by the repeated doses of hot boiling sperm shot into her
interior. She declared that never in all her fucking had she felt such
insatiable desire, or more ravishing delight in satisfying it, that she
would undergo a dozen such floggings to have the same rapturous
enjoyment.

"I am sure," she said, "it was all the effect of the rod, I never felt
anything like it before."

Mary all this time had been but a spectator, and a pleased one to see
the erotic fury of her sister and my powerful efforts to allay it. It
is true we had both had a delicious fuck during the time poor Lizzie
was catching it on her backside, and I had just gamahuched her
deliciously afterwards as Lizzie came in in such pain.

Miss Frankland had retired to her room, and looked still flushed and
somewhat wild looking when she joined us after the usual hour's
recreation. As may well be supposed, we were all as attentive as
possible. There was one circumstance that evidently pleased Miss
Frankland immensely. When Lizzie, in her turn, went up to repeat her
lesson, she suddenly threw her arms round Miss Frankland's neck, and
with tears running over her cheeks, sobbed out--

"Dear Miss Frankland, pray forgive me, and let me kiss you, for I love
you dearly."

There was a bright sparkle of delight in Miss Frankland's eyes. She
clasped Lizzie round the waist, and drew her to her lips in a long
sweet kiss of love, which seemed as if it would never end. We observed
Miss Frankland's colour rise. She at last put Lizzie away, and said she
was a dear amiable girl, whom she could not help loving.

"Go to your seat, you are too agitated, my dear, to say your lesson
just now; so send Mary up."

Lizzie came back to her seat, but I could not help fancying I saw a
complete expression of erotic desire on her countenance. When
afterwards we were alone together, she told us that when the governess
kissed her, she felt Miss F.'s tongue glide into her mouth, and "tip
her the velvet" in a most delicious and exciting manner, and she
believed that if they had been alone they must have given each other
mutual embraces of a warmer description. This led me to think that Miss
Frankland was herself rendered lecherous by the action of even
wielding the rod. Lizzie during the whole of the next week did nothing
but rave of the excessive excitement that her whipping had put her
into, and the extreme felicity she felt in having her salacious lechery
satisfied. We were not able to meet every day, for frequently Miss
Frankland accompanied us, and joined in the youthful sports we then
gave way to. Lizzie continuing to harp on the extraordinary enjoyment
the whipping had procured her, after it was over, fired the imagination
of Mary, until she was wound up to a pitch of actually longing to be
whipped. In such a case it was easy to incur the penalty; she had but
wilfully to neglect her studies, and she was sure to get it. This she
accordingly did, and it resulted as before. When released, she rushed
to the summer house, and without any preliminaries, called upon me to
fuck her directly; and a very similar scene followed to that which had
occurred when dear Lizzie was whipped. Mary did not, however, give way
to the uncontrollable desire to throw herself into Miss Frankland's
arms as Lizzie had done. Miss F., as usual, retired to her room after
the punishment was over, and was late in coming down, with the same
flushed face and excited eye. I became convinced that she herself was
salaciously excited by the act, and I began to fancy that with such
passions, if I could but excite her in any way, it might be worth my
while. When once these lecherous ideas were raised in my imagination,
desire soon painted her with every charm of beauty, and I became
excessively lewd and anxious to possess her. The more I looked at and
scanned the really beauteous proportions of her finely developed form,
the more my determination to have her took root, and grew strong within
me.

About this time Miss Frankland, who had become a great favourite with
mamma, obtained permission to take possession of the spare bedroom,
with an understanding that she was to cede it to any visitor who might
come. Of course, this circumstance made my desire to get into her good
graces doubly strong, inasmuch as the opportunity of sleeping with her
afterwards could be so easily effected. I determined to watch her when
retiring to bed, and try to get a view of her naked form. For this
purpose I removed the stopping of moistened bread I had put in the hole
I made to see Mr. Benson fucking his wife. I lay awake, until she came
to bed. I saw her undress, but only caught sight of her naked bubbies,
over her chemise. As I have said, they were not large, but widely
separated, with a fine flat neck up to the throat. I mean that she
showed no collar bone, which is a great beauty in woman. She had
evidently been quite naked, and had used the bidet, but the extent of
the slit in the door did not allow me to command the part of the room
where she had used it. I remedied this defect next day, and the
following night was rewarded with a most glorious sight. You may well
suppose that I did not let sleep overcome me, but was at my post as
soon as ever I heard her enter her room. I was on my knees in a moment,
at my peephole, and saw her deliberately undress to her chemise. She
then arranged all her magnificent head of hair, brushing it out as far
and further than her arms would extend; and after well brushing and
combing it, she plaited and rolled it up, in a great big rouleau
behind, then washing her hands, she drew out the bidet, poured water
into it, and then divested herself of her shift. She was standing in
front of the dressing-table, with two candles shining on her, so that
when she lifted her shift over her head; I had a well-lighted full view
of her wonderfully covered belly. She was all over hair; it was as
black as coal, and shone as if polished in all its beautiful curls. I
am now an old man, but never have I seen the equal to that dear woman
in a hairy belly. It was quite up to her navel, and several inches down
the inside of her thighs, besides running thickly in the chinks of her
bottom, and with two bunches where the beautiful back dimple is usually
situated, as thick, and even thicker than ordinary women have in on
their mounts. In addition to this, there was a beautiful little line of
curls that ran up her belly, as far as between her bubbies, to say
nothing of the very hairy thighs, legs, and arms. I never saw a more
deliciously hairy woman, and she was all that such excessive growth of
hair denoted--passionate and lecherous to a degree, when once she had
confidence in her companion, to let her feelings have vent. Of course,
I am now describing my after-experience; at the moment I was only
dazzled by the extraordinary richness and quantity of that exquisite
ornament--hair--not only in splendid quantity on the head, but in a
profusion such as I had never then and have not since witnessed. I was
struck dumb with astonishment and admiration. She laved her hairy cunt,
and all the adjacent parts, then wiped herself dry, put on her
night-gown, extinguished her light, and, of course, got into bed. So
did I but only to toss and tumble, and at last, in troubled sleep, to
dream of that most gloriously covered cunt, and to imagine myself
revelling therein. So great was my excitement that I had the first wet
dream I ever experienced. It is needless to say, it was under the
dreaming idea that I was enjoying to the utmost that wonder cunt.

I was quite exhausted by morning with such a restless night, and was
not only very _distrait_, but was really so fatigued that I could not
attend to my lessons. Of course Miss Frankland noticed this, and being
unaware of the cause, attributed it to wilful idleness and bravado of
her authority. She spoke very gravely and seriously to me, and told me
if I did not improve my conduct by next day it would be her painful
duty to punish me with severity.

"I expect to see you exhibit very different conduct tomorrow, otherwise
you will drive me to do that which I would much rather not."

It rained hard that afternoon, and we had to amuse ourselves within
doors. On retiring for the night, I determined to watch again for Miss
Frankland, but my want of rest the previous night overpowered me, and I
fell fast asleep until far in the night. I rose and crept to my
peep-hole, but all was dark. I could hear Miss Frankland breathing
heavily. The thought at once struck me that I might safely steal up to
my sisters' room, as they were now alone, since Miss F. had the
previous night removed to the spare bedroom, where she was now fast
asleep. So softly opening my door, and leaving it ajar, I crept along
the passage, gained my sisters' room, and gently awakening them, jumped
in between them, to their great joy and satisfaction. We immediately
began with a gamahuche, I taking Mary's cunt, while Lizzie crossed her
legs over her head, and was gamahuched by Mary, whose finger was at the
same time acting _postilion_ to her charming bottom-hole, while I had
the exquisite prospect before me of their operations. As soon as ever
Mary spent I made Lizzie lie down on her back, with her head towards
the bottom of the bed, Mary knelt over her in the opposite direction,
presenting her very full backside, which was daily developing larger
proportions. I plunged into her cunt, plugging her little rosy bum-hole
at the same time with my middle finger, while Lizzie did as much for
me, at the same time rubbing Mary's clitoris with the fleshy end of the
thumb, while Mary, at the same time she herself was fucked and frigged
in two places, was employed in gamahuching Lizzie, and frigging her
bottom-hole with two fingers, Lizzie declaring that one finger felt as
nothing. We lengthened out our delicious proceedings until excess of
excitement compelled us to give way to all the fury of our feelings,
and we managed to spend all together with such rapturous and lascivious
delight as rendered us quite powerless for some time. We then had a
delicious cuddle, the girls having each one hand on my prick and the
other on my buttocks. When we had once more worked ourselves up to
fucking heat, we reversed the previous position, and I fucked Lizzie.
Mary was gamahuched and bottom-fingered by Lizzie, while she employed
herself with Lizzie's clitoris and my bum-hole. Lizzie was far hotter
and more salacious than any of us, and spent copiously on my delighted
prick, which enjoyed excessively the warm bath of glutinous liquid that
was poured down upon it. I gave a few slow-drawn thrusts in and out, to
moisten well its whole shaft, and removing my two fingers from her
delicious bottom-hole, and wetting it with my saliva, I withdrew my
prick from the reeking sheath of her cunt, and to her great delight
slowly housed it in her longing and exquisitely delicious bottom-hole,
keeping it quiet there for some time, so as not to spend before Lizzie
was ready. I enjoyed the delicious throbbing of her body, which at last
becoming too exciting, I stooped over her, passed a hand under her
belly, replaced Mary's fingers, rubbing her clitoris while Mary frigged
her cunt with two fingers thrust into it. We thus quickly brought
matters to an end, and died off in all the ecstasies of satiated lust.
As daylight was beginning to dawn, I tore myself from their loving
embraces, gained my room in safety, and slept the sleep of the just
until late in the morning.

My orgie with my sisters had so far satisfied my animal passions that I
rather began to dread the severity I knew Miss Frankland would use if I
came under her hand. This made me so far attentive next day as to
satisfy her; and as it was a fine afternoon she came out to walk in the
garden, while we innocently amused ourselves. That evening I kept
awake, and again enjoyed the superb display of Miss Frankland's
wonderfully hairy cunt, all the lower part of her body was as black as
a chimney sweeper's. The sight awakened every lustful feeling within
me. I felt I must possess her, and determined to brave the severest
infliction she could give me with the rod. I somehow, instinctively,
arrived at the conclusion that this extraordinary profusion of hair
could only grow where nature had implanted the hottest animal passions,
and had but to greatly excite them to turn their lust to my advantage.
I determined that to-morrow I should bring things to a crisis, and that
I might be equal to every effort I went to my bed, and did not attempt
to steal up to my sisters' room. Next day nothing could be made of me
in the morning; Miss Frankland sternly warned me that if such conduct
was pursued after dinner nothing should save my skin from a severe
scourging. However, my mind was made up, and I went in "for the whole
hog," as our vulgar Yankee cousins say. I was more idle and
insubordinate than ever. Miss F. looked thunder; at four o'clock she
ordered me to stay, and the girls to go. She then locked the door, took
out from the desk a formidable rod, and told me to approach her. I did
so--really half in fear, for she could look dreadfully fierce and
determined, in which case I came up to her side.

"Now, Charles," she said, "your conduct, for two or three days past,
has been such as I cannot put up with. Your mother has given me full
power to punish any of you severely, if I think you deserve it; you are
getting to be of an age that I hoped you would have so acted as to give
me no cause of offence, but I am sorry to see my hopes are
disappointed. I am now about to punish you, submit to it quietly, or it
will be all the worse for you. Unbutton and put down your trousers."

I felt I must submit, but when brought to this point I really so much
dreaded her that there was not the slightest erection in poor cockey.

While I was undoing my trousers, I observed that Miss Frankland had
quite lifted up her outer frock, and had sat down, evidently intending
to flog me across her knee. Both being ready, she told me to put the
footstool by her side and kneel upon it, then desiring me to bend
forward over her knees she put one hand over my body to hold me down;
then uncovering my bottom, and taking the rod, which was by her side,
she raised her arm and gave me a fearful cut, which made me not only
flinch, but cry out most lustily. Blow followed blow, causing at first
great agony, that made me cry again in good earnest; then the very
continuance of the blows seemed to deaden the parts until I hardly felt
them. This was succeeded by a titillation and lascivious excitement
which speedily brought my prick out in the fullest vigour. I then began
to push it against Miss Frankland's thigh, and to wriggle myself nearly
off her knees. Seemingly to prevent this, she passed her left arm quite
round my body, bringing her hand under my belly, and, apparently by
accident, against my prick, which she grasped, and I could feel her
hand pass both up and down it as if she was measuring its length and
thickness, continuing all the time to shower down blow after blow on my
devoted backside. As she held a firm grasp on my prick, I pretended to
be evading the blows, while in reality I was thrusting it in and out of
her hand with the utmost energy and excitement, which speedily brought
on the delightful crisis, and with a cry of rapture I gave down a
copious discharge into her hand, and sank almost senseless on her lap.
I pretended complete loss of consciousness, which she believing, she
gently felt, and even frigged a little, my prick, pressing me the while
close to her body, and then I felt a shudder run through her whole
frame. I have no doubt she was in a paroxysm of lust, and had spent, I
gave her time to recover a little, and then pretending to come to my
senses, but in a confused state of ideas, said--

"Oh, what has happened? I have been in heaven!"

Then raising myself, and apparently only just recognising Miss
Frankland, I threw my arms round her neck, and exclaimed--

"Dear Miss Frankland, do flog me again if it will produce again such
ecstasies as I never before experienced."

Her face was flushed, her eye shone with all the fire of libidinous
passion. My prick had hardly lost its stiffness when I spent, and was
now projecting out firmer than ever.

"Why, Charles, I thought you a mere boy, while you are quite a man with
such a thing as this."

"Oh!" I cried, "do continue to hold it, you give me such pleasure!"

"Has anyone else ever held it in this way?"

"No, I never felt anything like it before."

"But don't you know what this is meant to do?"

"Oh, yes, it is what I piddle from."

She laughed, and asked if it was often in its present state of
stiffness.

"Every morning when I awake it is so, and it hurts me very much until I
piddle."

"And has no one ever taught you any other use of it?"

"No, what use can it be of?"

"You dear innocent boy, if I could trust you, I would teach you a
secret that this dear thing would greatly enjoy. But can I trust you?"

"Oh, certainly, dear Miss Frankland, I know what you mean now, to
repeat the delicious sensations you gave me a few minutes ago. Oh, do,
do! do it again, it was far too nice for me ever to tell anybody, as
long as you will do it for me."

"Well, Charles, I will trust you. Do you know that women are
differently formed from you?"

"Yes, I used to sleep in mamma's room, and I have often been surprised
to see that she piddled from a long hole, and had not got a doodle like
I have to piddle from."

"My dear innocent Charlie, that long hole was made to take in this dear
fellow here that is throbbing almost to bursting in my hand, and if you
promise me faithfully never to tell any one, I will teach you how it is
done."

You may be sure my protestations of secrecy were most earnest.

"Look here then, my dear boy, and see what I have got between my legs."

She laid herself back on the long chair, drew up her petticoats, and
exhibited to my charmed gaze the wondrous wealth of hair she possessed.
Opening her legs, I saw the wide-spread rosy lips showing themselves in
beautiful contrast to the coal-black hair that grew in the greatest
profusion all round the lower lips, and extended also some five or six
inches down the side of each thigh. But what at the moment most
astonished me, and drew all my attention, was to see a deep red
clitoris standing out from the upper part of her cunt quite stiff, and
as long and as thick as the middle finger of a man. I very nearly
betrayed myself at the sight, but, fortunately, was able to keep up the
character of apparent ignorance I had hitherto shown, and said--"You,
also, have got a little doodle to piddle with?"

She laughed, and said--

"It is very different from yours. Give me yours here, that I may kiss
it."

She fondled it for a second or two, and then could not resist the
impulse to take it into her mouth and suck it.

"Oh, what pleasure! I shall die!"

"Not yet, dear boy; kneel down there, and I shall instruct you in the
real secret of pleasure."

But, before she could do anything, I threw my head down, crying out--

"I must give this pretty little fellow a taste of the pleasure you have
just given mine."

And in an instant I had the delicious thing up to the root in my mouth,
sucking furiously at it. Her twistings, and up and down action of her
loins, showed how rapturously I was exciting her, in fact, I brought on
the crisis, when she pressed my head down hard upon it, and closed her
thighs on each side of my head, as she poured over my chin and breast a
perfect torrent of sperm. A minute after she seized my arms, and drew
me up on her belly, then slipping her hand down between us, she seized
my prick and guided him, nothing loath, into her burning hot and
foaming cunt. She placed her hands on my buttocks, and pressing me
right up to the hilt, began a movement which she told me how to second,
that in a very short time brought down an exquisite spend from me. The
idea that she was giving me the first lesson in love, and of being the
first possessor of my person, seemed to excite her lust to the utmost,
and she immediately followed my discharge with another, so copious that
it spurted all over my thighs. Her force of pressure on my prick in her
agonies of enjoyment was so great as nearly to hurt me. I never knew
any one but her with such strength of pressure of cunt on the prick.
She has often actually brought tears into my eyes, so powerful was her
grip that it made me really feel as if in a vice. She lay back with
closed eyes and panting bosom in a rapturous trance of lascivious
lubricity, her throbbing cunt holding me tightly pressed between its
palpitating folds in the most delicious imprisonment, and from time to
time grasping my prick with a pressure that very shortly restored it to
its fullest vigour and stiffness. She was as hot as fire and responded
immediately to the renewed life she found stirring within me. She gave
way to her salacious lust with, if anything, a more passionate excess
than the first time. My superb weapon seemed to stir up within her a
force of lubricity that nothing could seem to satisfy. Her hands
clutched my buttocks convulsively, and seemed to wish to force my whole
body into her wildly excited cunt. With such vigour was the action
carried on that the grand crisis soon arrived, most rapturous to both,
and almost maddening to Miss Frankland. The heavings of her body and
gaspings for breath were quite hysterical, while, with one of those
real vice-like pressures, I felt as if she were nipping my prick in
two. It was not a mere throbbing pressure, but a long continued
convulsive squeeze, as if her cunt had been seized like the jaws of the
mouth with lock-jaw, and could not open. It was nearly ten minutes
before she recovered her senses. She seized my head between her hands,
kissed me most lovingly, declared I was the dearest creature that ever
lived, that she had never before had any one who had so satisfied her,
and filled her with inexpressible rapture, &c. This fondling had again
brought up my prick to full stand. Miss Frankland said--

"Dear Charlie, we must be prudent, as the time is drawing near for your
sisters' return."

But there was no stopping, the exquisite pleasure of her splendid
interior cunt pressures was irresistible. My movements speedily
determined matters in my favour. Miss Frankland's temperament was far
too warm not to quickly set her passions to the highest fucking heat;
and again we had a most exquisite fuck, lengthened out more luxuriously
by the more urgent fires of desire having been moderated by the three
previous discharges. With more abandon we both sank in the death-like
ecstasies of the delicious melting away in all the luxury of contented
and voluptuous discharges. Miss Frankland lay for some short time
luxuriously closing in my delighted prick, but raising her body, she
said--

"Charles, we must cease for the present."

And, pushing me away, I was forced to withdraw; but her dear cunt
seemed as reluctant as myself, and held my prick so tight that I had to
pull hard to draw it out, and, at last, he left with a noise like
drawing a cork from a well-corked bottle. Before I rose, or she could
hinder me, I threw myself down and glued my lips to her reeking cunt,
and greedily licked up the foaming sperm that had surged out of her
well-gorged quim. She with difficulty drew away her body, but as I rose
she clasped me to her bosom and kissed me most fervently, and licked
her own sperm off my richly covered lips. Begging me to button up, and
putting herself to rights, she desired me to sit down by her side. She
wiped my mouth with her handkerchief, arranged my disordered neck-tie,
collar, and hair. We then embraced most tenderly, and she thanked me
for the immense gratification I had given her; she praised my parts as
being of extraordinary development and more satisfying than any she had
yet had any experience of. This was the second time she referred to
other experiences. I took no notice of this all the time, as if I was
supposed to be too ignorant or innocent to think any harm of it, but I
determined in some excess of passion to get her to give me a recital of
some of her previous experiences.

Before my sisters came in, she said--

"I shall try and arrange some means for our meeting unobserved
to-morrow. Meanwhile, you must sit as if you had been severely
punished, and I shall assert that you had done everything to resist my
authority, for which I had punished you further by not allowing you to
leave the school-room."

I said not a word to Miss F. about the ease of meeting by merely
opening the door of communication between our rooms. I was afraid to
make her suspicious of a former use of it. But I determined, when she
came to bed, to rap at the door and beg her to open it, and I had no
doubt she would be as delighted as myself to find with what facility
she could indulge to the utmost every libidinous passion which her
lascivious nature could suggest. My sisters returned, and appeared
disappointed that I had not been able to join them, as they had
anticipated a glorious fuck or two each, after the whipping had excited
me as it did them. They told me afterwards they had been obliged to
content themselves with a double mutual gamahuche, but it did not make
up for my absence.

While they were all engaged after tea, I slipped up to Miss Frankland's
room to see that the key was in the lock of the door between our two
rooms. I opened it, oiled the hinges, and locked it again from her
side. I also, with a view to sometimes slipping up to my sisters' room,
oiled my own and their doors, hinges, and locks, as now that the ice
was broken with Miss Frankland, it would be necessary to be doubly
careful not to excite suspicion of my visits to my sisters. Having
finished everything to my satisfaction, I joined them in the
drawing-room, and while my sisters were playing duets on the piano to
mamma, I challenged Miss Frankland to a game of chess. She, of course,
was a far superior player to me, but our legs meeting under the chess
table, her little charming foot sought mine, rested on it, and pressed
it from time to time. This distraction of her ideas enabled me to win
two games successively. My mother sent the girls to bed, and told me to
follow their example, but as I did not wish to lie long waiting for
Miss Frankland's appearance in her bedroom, I pleaded for relaxation in
the hour of retiring, to enable Miss Frankland to regain her chance of
beating me, at the same time pressing her foot as a sign to her to
second my request. She took the hint, though she had no idea of the
object. Mamma came near us to look over our game. This induced Miss
Frankland to play with more caution and thought, and she won three
games in succession, making her the final winner. Mamma now said I must
go to bed, as it was very late for me. She still treated me as a child.
I, however, had gained my object in obtaining nearly two hours' delay
in going to bed, so that I had not long to wait before I heard Miss
Frankland enter her room. I determined to let her finish her toilet
before I called her attention to me. I watched through my peep-hole,
and could now calmly and leisurely see all the beauties of her
well-developed form, and the rich wealth of hair she possessed. She
went through all her ablutions as usual. I observed she also used a
syringe to thoroughly purify the inside of her glorious cunt. When she
had dried herself, and was about to pull on her chemise, I rapped on
the door of communication, and in a loud whisper called her attention
to me.

"Are you there, Charlie?"

"Yes, pray unlock the door and open it, that I may come to you."

She actually had not yet discovered that the door, locked and bolted on
her side, communicated with my bedroom, but her delight at the
discovery was greater than her surprise. I flew into her arms, and was
hugged to her bosom, and covered with kisses. But as my prick was in a
bursting state of erection, I drew her to the bed, upon which we both
threw ourselves, she on her back, and I above, and in an instant I was
engulphed up to the cods in her glorious and glowing cunt, and we ran
an eager course of rapturous thrustings, until nature could stand no
more, and we sank in all the delights of a most delicious mutual spend.
I lay soaking in bliss for some time, and after fondling each other,
Miss Frankland said--,

"Get up, dear Charlie, and let us get into bed."

For we had been in too great haste to do otherwise than tumble on the
top to it. My charming bed-fellow also rose for a necessary purpose,
which I had interrupted when I knocked at the door. She sat down on the
_pot de chambre_, and a mighty rush of water followed. I cried--

"Oh, do let me see you piddle from your beautiful fanny."

I still kept up my character of innocence, and used none but infantine
words in reference to our organs of generation.

She laughed, but pulled up her shift, and raised her thighs above the
pot, so advancing the light, I had the delicious sight of her
wide-stretched cunt, pouring out a stream of piddle with great force.
Her position brought out all the beauties of the vast wide-spread mass
of black curly hair that thickly covered all the lower part of her
magnificent quim, ran down each thigh, up between her buttocks, and
opening out on her back, had two bunches just below the two beautiful
dimples that were so charmingly developed below her waist. There was as
much hair there as most women have on their mons Veneris. Her whole
body had fine straight silky hair on it, very thick on the shoulders,
arms and legs, with a beautiful creamy skin showing below. She was the
hairiest woman I ever saw, which, doubtless, arose from or was the
cause of her extraordinary lustful and luxurious temperament. The sight
I was indulging in brought out my pego in full bloom; as we both rose
she saw it sticking out under my shirt.

"Off with all that, and let me gaze on your charming young perfections."

I did as she desired, begged her to do the same, and there she stood,
in all the glory of her superb form. We encircled each other's naked
bodies, and then turned each other round to gaze on all the exciting
charms displayed to each other.

"Come, my darling boy, and let me kiss and fondle you all over."

She laid me on my back, reversed herself above me, and taking my prick
in her mouth, after first feeling it most gently, and praising its
large proportions, again declaring it was the finest she had ever seen,
she began to gamahuche me with a skill such as I had never before
experienced, and gave me the most exquisite and most luxurious delight.
For my part, seeing her wonderful clitoris, stiff standing out of the
bright red lips of her luscious cunt, I took it bodily into my mouth,
sucked it, and rolled my tongue about it, to the evident delight of my
salacious companion. Her buttocks rose and fell, and the lips of her
cunt immediately before my eyes opened, or closely pressed the lips
together, showing the delicious nature of her enjoyment. I felt her put
her hand to my bottom and insert her finger, and begin frigging me
there. I let her see how it pleased me. She stopped a moment, to beg me
to do the same to her, anticipating my earnest desire to do so. I lost
no time in following her example. The parts adjacent were well
lubricated by our previous indulgence, and first inserting two fingers
into her deliciously juicy cunt to moisten them, I slipped one of them
into her charming bottom-hole, and finding great ease of space, slipped
the second in as well. My other hand and arm embraced and caressed her
magnificent backside, which rose and fell on my face with unwearied
speed, as my finger frigged her bottom-hole in unison with her
movements, and my mouth more closely sucked her stiffly excited
clitoris.

Her whole body became convulsed with erotic movements, showing what
force of lubricity our mutual embracings were most rapturously
exciting. I, too, grew wild with desire, and was equally energetic in
my movements, and would have thrust my prick down her throat but for
her hand, which grasped the lower part of the shaft. The rapturous
crisis came at last and laid us prostrate with soul-killing ecstasies.
We each retained the dear object of our mutual caresses within our lips
and our fingers remained within the delightful recesses that had so
much contributed to the excessive raptures we had enjoyed. We lay for
some time in this sweet languid enjoyment. Miss Frankland then rose
from off me, saying--

"My darling boy, we must now get into bed." We did so, quite naked as
we were, closely embracing, and covering each other with kisses and
caresses, murmuring soft terms of endearment, and in whispered accents
told of the ecstatic joys each had given the other. Our hands wandered
over every charm. Miss Frankland had an art of gently passing her
fingers over my prick that had the instant effect of raising him into
the fullest vigour. It was the most exquisite method of feeling my cock
I ever experienced. She seemed scarcely to touch it, but drew her
fingers along its length, from foot to head, with a delicacy of touch I
have never found equalled by any other woman. The effect was magical,
and invariable, no matter how many times I might have fucked her
before. With her hot temperament, and excessive lubricity, it was
almost a necessary art. She was one of those libidinous natures that
could well employ several men at once. At my happy age, she found ready
to her hand one who could respond to her every desire in every way, so
happily does nature second youth and health that she never found me
wanting, when called on. There was no excess of lubricity we did not
afterwards practise. We satisfied our passions in every way in which
they could be indulged, nor did we hesitate at any thing which
imagination could fancy would stimulate them. She was surprised at my
aptitude, and rejoiced and congratulated herself on having found so
powerful and charming a satisfier of her libidinous nature. How
delighted she was to think she was the first to cull the sweets of my
innocence, and how happy to find so apt a scholar, who in one sweet
lesson became a master of the art. The more I gained experience of the
charming sex, the more I appreciated the wisdom of the counsels of my
really first and ever loved mistress, dear, charming, lovely Mrs.
Benson. How truly she had foretold that all who might hereafter think
that they were giving me the first lesson in love would doubly, trebly,
a hundred fold enjoy the sweet intercourse from such self-deception.
Here was my fiery Miss Frankland, who had had considerable experience
in the amatory world, pluming herself upon instructing an innocent
youth in all the mysteries of the passions for the first time. It
evidently added immensely to her excitement. Indeed, in our
after-conversation, she avowed that as it was the first time she had
ever taken the maidenhead of a youth, so it had been the greatest
degree of excitement she had ever experienced. I might fancy her
delight at finding combined with such a satisfaction a wonderfully
well-hung youth, and who proved so apt, and so equal to every luxurious
whim that the most erotic lust could suggest. But I digress. At
present, her magic touch had brought me up to bursting point, she threw
a leg over me, and raising her body, said she would help herself this
time. Guiding my prick to the wanton lips that were longing for him,
she sank slowly down on the stiff pole on which she was so delightedly
impaling herself, until our hairs were crushed beneath her weight, and
nothing more could be engulphed. She again rose, until the edge of the
nut showed itself at the mouth of her cunt, and then as slowly sheathed
it again. She continued this exquisite movement for some time, to our
delicious mutual enjoyment, then falling down on my belly, and telling
me to pass my arm round her bottom and finger her as before, she glued
herself to my lips, our tongues interlaced, and shot in and out of our
luxurious mouths; our movement grew fast and furious, until we again
sank in all the luxury of the last grand crisis. It was the very act of
voluptuous rapture, and we lay lost to every sense but that of erotic
ecstasy and satisfied lust. When we recovered our senses, she lay down
by my side, cuddling me most closely, and toying and prattling, until
she thought we had paused long enough. She slid her hand down to my
prick, and very quickly, by her delicious and delicate handling of it,
renewed its full vigour. Throwing her right leg over me, while lying on
her back, she heaved up her body into a position half turned to my
belly, I lying on my side; she then bid me embrace her other thigh
between mine, then guiding cockey to the entrance, she gave a push
backwards, to meet my forward thrust, when it was instantly sheathed to
the hilt.

"Now, my darling boy, in this way we can lengthen out our pleasures as
long as we please; you can make me spend oftener than yourself, which
will satisfy my very lustful nature, and not over exhaust your young
powers."

Giving one or two delicious side wriggles to her bottom, and nestling
her backside close to my belly, she told me to pass my left arm under
her waist that I might embrace her left bubby and finger its nipple, a
proceeding which she told me was as exciting as playing with her
clitoris--then turning her head, our tongues interlaced; she put my
right hand down to her stiff-projecting clitoris, which I continued to
frig just as I might have done to a boy's cock. Keeping up a slow in
and out movement with my prick, excited by so many points of lascivious
friction, she spent most copiously before I was prepared to join her.
Her head sank back in the ecstasy of her discharge, drawing away from
me, and leaving my mouth free. I instantly dropped it upon her other
firm and elastic bubby, at which I sucked away, pushing my prick as far
as possible into her cunt, and leaving it there, without movement, to
enjoy the rapture-giving pressures of her delicious cunt, slowly
passing my hand up and down her still sufficiently indured clitoris.
She lay for some time in the luxurious enjoyment of the position, then
once more sucking my lips, she thanked me over and over again for the
pleasure I had given her, heightened as it was by knowing that it had
not exhausted me. I began to move slowly in and out, keeping up my
movements at the other points of excitement. She was ready on the
instant to second me, and as she meant this time that we should spend
together she left nothing to desire. Her movements were of the most
exciting and stimulating description, and we were not long before the
ecstatic moment arrived, and we sank in the lap of luxury, pouring
forth streams of ecstatic bliss. We lay close locked in the most
delicious embrace, only conscious of unutterable joy. It was some time
before we could venture to break this exquisite trance of enjoyment. It
was followed by the sweetest toyings and prattlings, until again my
delighted prick, stimulated by the internal pressures of the luxurious
sheath in which it had remained engulphed, again awoke her
scarce-slumbering passions to dash on pleasure's heavenly course. Again
she spent before me with, if anything, increased rapture, and, after a
pause, renewing her lascivious movements in response to my own, we sank
in a perfect death-like swoon of thoroughly satiated lust, and
gradually and imperceptibly fell into the deepest slumber for many
hours, locked as we were in each other's arms. Her wonderfully
retentive power of cunt held my happy prick a willing prisoner through
our long sleep. I awoke first, to find it standing stiff within the
charmed circle which even in her sleep was deliciously grasping it with
its nervous folds. I passed my hand down to her clitoris, and began
fucking her. She heaved her bottom up and down, and murmured some
incoherent words, being evidently still under the influence of sleep,
and probably dreaming of some former events, for in her half expressed
murmurings, I could make out something--

"Henry--my only--ever loved one--meet again--oh! how ineffable--how
exquisitely delicious. Do push it in--more faster--beloved of my soul."

She clasped me with a hug, as if she would make but one body of us
both, and spent with a scream of agonized delight, pouring down and
spurting out a perfect torrent of boiling spunk all over my cods and
thighs.

"Dearest, beloved Henry, it is too much," she uttered, and fainted away.

I lay quite still, and determined not to speak until she should come to
herself. It was evident her dreams had brought back some former loved
and happy man and no doubt the fact of my being in possession, in full
fuck, had made her believe in the reality of her sleeping thoughts. She
was quite a quarter of an hour before recovering her senses; daylight
had broken, and she looked round in a sort of alarm, and exclaimed--

"Where am I?"

Then her eye catching my face--

"Oh! my darling Charlie, it is you! I have been dreaming of being far
away, and, I suppose, the fact of your dear weapon throbbing within me
made me think of former events. Well, the dream had its pleasures, if
only in a dream."

"It was no dream, my dear Miss Frankland, or at least, only partially
so, as far as regarded your loved Henry--for that was the name you
applied to me, and most deliciously did you embrace me under the idea,
and die away in an excess of pleasure I quite envied; but you alarmed
me by really fainting afterwards. I am so pleased to have turned a mere
vision of the night into ecstatic reality, and I am not at all jealous
of your former lover, because had you not had any, you would, probably,
never have loved me. Oh, no! I should never be jealous of you my dear
mistress. I would even like to see you in all the ecstasies of passion,
in the arms of another, provided that I should share in your delights."

She listened in an astonishment, acknowledged that she had imagined
herself in the arms of one she had greatly loved, and had thought the
whole affair was a dream, and was not conscious of its absolute reality
as to her being fucked.

"Well, I must have mine now, feel how it is bursting for relief."

"Yes, yes, the dear fellow, push him away, my Charlie, and you will
see, I shall enjoy the real Charlie quite as much as the dreamt-of
Henry--of whom I shall some day speak to you. You are worthy of him and
of me--and I fear I shall love you as I do him, far too dearly."

Then lending herself to the work we were at, she did, indeed, exert all
her lascivious power, and we enjoyed such a fuck as seldom falls to
mortals here below. We lay prostrate and panting with satisfied lust,
until prompted by the urgency of natural wants we were both obliged to
rise and relieve ourselves. My darling mistress then used her bidet and
told me to lave my parts in the basin, as it was not only cool and
refreshing, but also reinvigorating. After which as it was now broad
daylight, she allowed me to pose her, and turn her in every position,
that I might admire and handle every part of her superb form. Her
bottom was larger and harder than any I had yet seen, and, indeed,
excepting one, of which, dear reader you will presently hear something,
it was about the finest in form and size of any I ever met with. Of
course, this handling was not effected without producing erotic
excitement in both parties. Miss Frankland had occupied herself as much
with me as I had done with her, and her beautifully large clitoris was
showing its head in full stand out from among the vast mass of bushy
curls surrounding it. I proposed we should have a mutual suck on the
floor, with her bottom to the light, that I might have a full view of
all her glorious parts. She humoured my fancy, and pulling a couple of
pillows off the bed to prop up my head, she stepped across my body, and
kneeling down, took my prick in her mouth, and brought her splendid
backside and lascivious cunt down to my face. I first glued my lips to
the open cunt, thrust my chin in, and then my tongue, as far as I could
reach, licking the luscious moisture which our previous handlings had
excited; it was as sweet and delicious as cream. This stimulated her
very much, and she closed the sides of her cunt upon my tongue so
closely as to give it a good squeeze. I never saw a woman but her, who
had such a wonderful power in that way. My nose actually felt it was
reciprocating the pressures of the cunt, so I changed the venue, and
slipped my tongue into her bottom-hole, evidently to her excessive
delight. But things were approaching a crisis, and she cried to me to
take her clitoris in my mouth, and substitute fingers in both the other
orifices. This I quickly did, while she sucked and postillioned me,
handling the root of my prick, and my buttocks with the delicious
gentle titillations in which she had such skill, until, in an excess of
joy, we both poured a tribute of sperm into each other's mouths, and
both greedily swallowed it. After this we got into bed again, to have
one loving cuddle before parting. Of course, it ended in raising such a
storm of desire as a fuck could only allay--she said--

"My loved Charlie, this must really be the last."

I told her it had so excited me to see her splendid bum before my eyes
when we were on the floor that I should like to kneel behind and put it
in that way. I really meant into her cunt, but she thought I meant her
bottom-hole, and said--

"Well, you are a strange boy, what on earth made you think you could
put that great big thing of yours into my bottom-hole; but, to tell you
the truth, after being well fucked, I rather like it that way, so you
shall try, but you must be gentle in getting in."

I said, "I did not know I could do it that way with my prick, I meant
to put it into your cunt from behind, but now, from what you say, I
should like to try what the other is like."

You see, I was keeping up my apparent ignorance. She turned on her
face, and keeping her head on the pillow, drew up her knees to her
belly and exposed to the greatest advantage her glorious backside. I
knelt behind, but previous to beginning, I glued my lips to the
delicious orifice, and shoved my tongue in as far as I could, and
deliriously excited her. Then approaching my stiff-standing prick, and
thrusting it into her cunt up to the roots two or three times, so as
thoroughly to lubricate it, I withdrew and placed it before the smaller
temple of lust; then, by a gentle uniform pressure, I gradually and
almost imperceptibly glided in to the utmost extent. She pushed her
bottom out, and, I could feel, was straining as if to void something,
which is the real method to accelerate the entrance of a prick in that
enchanting channel with the least difficulty and pain. We then
commenced a slow movement--she wanted me to stoop forward and place my
arm round her body, and frig her clitoris, but I begged her to do it
herself, and allow me the luxury of looking on the delightful wriggling
of her superb backside, and also the sight of my own prick surging in
and then withdrawing. She humoured me, and we had a most exquisite
fuck. Her bottom-hole had hardly so tight a pressure as she could
exercise with her cunt, but, nevertheless, it held me in very firmly,
and had a peculiar heat which was most exciting. We both died off
together, she so completely overcome with ecstatic delight that her
body sank flat on the bed, drawing me with her, without unsheathing my
weapon. We lay for a short period, she convulsively shuddering from
time to time with the intense degree of excitement this delicious route
had produced upon her. At last she begged me to rise and relieve her.
As we must now separate, I rose. She assisted me in my ablutions, put
on my night-shirt, conducted me to my bed, fondly kissed and thanked me
for the exquisite night of every species of delight I had conferred
upon her, promising a repetition the following night. She left me and
locked the door of communication, but previously unlocked mine, in case
I should oversleep myself.

Thus ended the first delightful night I ever passed with that most
charming and deliciously lascivious woman--the first of many scores
that followed, but in none of which were her raptures more intense, if
as much. She ever after dwelt on the night when she had been the happy
means of initiating me into all love's mysteries, for she never knew of
my previous experiences, and always plumed and prided herself on being
my first instructress.

The next day I was somewhat somnolent, of which you may be sure Miss
Frankland took no notice. She retired to her own room when we went for
our recreation. My sisters scolded me for not coming to them the
previous night, but I told them that Miss F. had continued to move
about her room for so long a time that I had fallen fast asleep, and
even then had not had enough, as they might have observed how sleepy I
had been all day. However, to satisfy them, I gamahuched them both, and
fucked them both while each was giving the other a second gamahuche, so
that then each spent three times to my twice. I thus kept in my forces
for the renewed delights I anticipated at night. I went to bed early
and slept soundly at once, having no anxiety about keeping awake,
feeling certain that Miss F. would awaken me as soon as she was ready
to take me to her arms. She came, and we passed another most delicious
night of every salacious and libidinous enjoyment. A third night
followed, which differed only in the lascivious proposition of Miss
Frankland to deflower my bottom-hole with her wonderfully prominent and
elongated clitoris, little dreaming that there, too, she had been
anticipated by our loved and charming friend MacCallum. She had,
however, all the imaginary pleasure of first possession. As you may
well suppose, I did not attempt in any way to enlighten her ignorance
thereon. We had gamahuched each other, I had fucked her twice in the
cunt and once in her bottom-hole, when the fancy seized her to bugger
me with her clitoris. Of course, I made no objection; on the contrary,
sucking it up to a proper stiffness, I placed myself on my hands and
knees in the most favourable position to satisfy her erotic fancy. She
first slipped her tongue into my bottom-hole, then spit upon her
clitoris, and then anointed my aperture with the delicious slime of her
well-fucked cunt, and then with the utmost ease pushed the dear thing
up to its utmost limits. I humoured her in every way, wriggling my
bottom sideways, which she declared was a vast improvement on her back
and forward movements. She passed her arm round my belly, and with that
exquisitely delightful touch on my prick for which she was so
distinguished, she excited me to the utmost, making my sphincter ani
respond to the throbbings of my exquisitely delighted prick, and
equally exciting her lascivious passions with the idea of first
possession of that narrow abode of voluptuousness. She could feel by
the electric excitement of my prick how near I was to spending, and
quickening the action of hand and clitoris, we both died away together
in all the raptures that such an extra exciting conjunction could
produce.

Several nights thus passed in the indulgence of every form of the most
lascivious enjoyment. We used to amuse our moments of relaxation in
trying who could suggest any new position or varied manner of effecting
the delicious junction of our bodies. On one occasion, recurring to the
state of excitement her flogging had thrown me into, I asked her, as if
I did not know the fact very well already, if the application of the
rod on the bottom of a woman, or the mere act of being flogged, at all
excited her sex. She told me both acted with great force on her erotic
nerves. She thought, from experience, that being whipped caused the
greatest excitement and produced the greatest longing to be fucked.

"Then," said I, "do you think it had erotically excited my sisters?"

"Certainly, especially your sister Eliza. I do not know whether you
noticed her sudden impulse to embrace and kiss me after her return to
school work the day I flogged her; that was a stray erotic impulse, and
had we been alone, I could not have avoided responding to it in a way
that would have delighted her, and initiated her into some of the
delicious mysteries of venery. Nay, I think, but for my happy discovery
of your great and delightful merits, I should have sought for and found
an opportunity of being alone with that dear girl, for you must know we
can lasciviously embrace our own sex with immense mutual pleasure, and
although not equal to that which this noble fellow"--(taking hold of my
prick)--"inspires, is not without its merit, and even as a little
variety from time to time is very enticing."

"Then, I suppose, you still have some hankerings after the virgin
charms of dear Lizzie?"

"I have, and what is more, I believe both Mary's and her passions have
already developed themselves. I have sometimes fancied I heard
suppressed sighs and gentle movements going on in their beds, and I
shrewdly suspect they were practising masturbation on each other. I did
not interfere, and after what has passed between you and me, I will
tell you that I had a little plan in my head to let them proceed to
such lengths that when I chose to make the discovery they would be at
my mercy. I then could initiate them in every lascivious and voluptuous
delight that woman can have with woman. The happy discovery of your
excellences, and the perfect facility my change of room has given for
meeting without the slightest chance of discovery, has for the present
driven that idea out of my head. I am, however, indebted to it for the
change of room, as I asked for it solely to leave the two girls the
utmost liberty to indulge in their voluptuous mutual enjoyments,
certain that it would increase and give them every desire for the
further instruction I could impart to them."

"I suppose you would have fucked them with this dear stiff little
thing?" said I.

"Oh, yes, you darling, but you have so excited me talking about it,
that you must fuck me directly."

We indulged in a most exciting fuck, and when recovered from the
confusion of ideas the delightful crisis always produces, we resumed
our conversation on the interesting subject of my sisters. I observed
that she had not lately flogged them again.

"All your fault; I am now so satisfied with you that I no longer seek
for relief to pent-up desires in that way."

"Tell me, dear Miss Frankland, did flogging my sisters excite you much?"

"It did, even to spending; but the fear of proceeding further with them
at that time rendered me ferocious. The very severity I used was as it
were in revenge for stopping short of other salacious embraces, but if
once I had gone so far as to make them partakers of my lubricity, I
should never have flogged them again so severely, but only to such a
gentle extent as would raise their passions to an uncomfortable pitch,
rendering them slaves to my burning lust. Even now I have, from time to
time, a desire to do so, especially with dear Eliza, as I think she had
far more of venereal lust in her nature than Mary. You would not
object, dear Charlie?"

"Not in the least, if you will only give me the voluptuous satisfaction
of hearing all the details from your lips afterwards; it would
stimulate us both to additional raptures, and spur our desires to
renewed combats."

"I don't think it wants much to do that; your glorious prick is as hard
as iron."

"It was the lascivious idea of your enjoying Lizzie that made it get
up, but I must fuck you again or it will burst."

"I, too, my dear boy, am inflamed at the idea; put it in behind this
time; I have a great letch in that way at this moment."

I did as I was directed, and so great was the agony of delight when we
died away that she sank on the bed dragging me after her, and we lay
almost insensible, soaking in bliss for quite half an hour. We did not
again renew our conversation that night, but I determined to push her
forward to carry out her idea, and also to give Lizzie a hint to second
her wishes in every way, without giving her any idea of what had passed
between Lizzie and me, and being equally reserved as to my nightly
connection with Miss Frankland.

The following night we passed again in all the amatory delights we
could imagine. After our deep midnight sleep, which always took place
locked in each other's arms, and poor cockey held firm as if in a vice,
I awoke her first, and found my prick stiff-standing in her cunt, which
was involuntarily pressing it in the delicious interior folds. I began
moving gently, until she was so excited as to quite wake up, when she
joined me in all the raptures of a delicious and voluptuous fresh
morning fuck. We then rose to satisfy natural wants, and cool our
excited nerves by a copious ablution. As we were returning to bed, I
observed that Miss Frankland took something out of her wardrobe wrapped
up in a handkerchief, and placed it under her pillow with a certain air
of mystery. I said nothing. After purifying ourselves we always
indulged in a voluptuous gamahuche; after which Miss Frankland
generally asked, as a favour, that I should finish off _in culo_. I
loved her delicious bottom-hole too dearly ever to refuse. She placed
herself as usual on her knees, thighs well drawn up, and head down, so
as to make the most of her glorious backside. After I had followed the
usual preamble of thrusting in and out of her luscious and juicy cunt
so as to lubricate my prick well, I then introduced it, always with the
slow and gradual pressure, until it was sheathed to the hilt, when we
generally paused some minutes to reciprocate mutual throbs and
pressures. In this lascivious pause I saw her hand steal under the
pillow, and draw out the handkerchief and put it under her belly. I
shortly found a considerable substance entering her cunt, and making my
quarters still more tight and narrow. I began to move, and found the
substance in the other entrance keeping time to my movements. I had a
tight hold of her projecting clitoris, which I had frigged up to a
stiff-standing point. I slipped my hand down and found she was dildoing
herself with what proved to be a very handsome dildo, in not very
formidable proportions.

"That's right, my darling," I cried, "why did you not do it openly, you
ought to know that my greatest wish is for you to enjoy these salacious
meetings in every possible voluptuous manner; frig on then, my beloved,
and be sure that if it adds to your delight it adds to mine."

"Thank you, my darling Charlie, shove away, I am in the seventh heaven
of delight in having as good as two pricks working in me at once."

She would have explained more, but her words were cut short by the
ecstasies the double fuck produced, and she spent copiously before me,
on finding which I held back, and was rewarded by making her spend
eventually with the utmost excess of delight twice to my once. By this
time it was broad daylight, and too late in the morning to enter into
any conversation on the new partner in our amatory combats, which was
reserved for the next meeting.

This did not occur so soon as we expected, for that day Miss
Frankland's flowers declared themselves. It was a fortunate thing for
me that she had them at the period of the new moon, and as Mary had
them at the full, it enabled me to dedicate a night or two to my
beloved sisters, who considered I had been neglecting them of late. I
said I had not felt very well, and that I began to think that our
excessive fucking was becoming too much for me; that they must remember
I was one to two, and I felt if I continued to overexert myself I
should break down and fail altogether.

"That would never do, dear Charlie, and it is very true you do twice
our work and more, because we don't pour down such a torrent as you do
when we spend; you must take care of yourself, we will not be so
exacting in future, but cool ourselves first by a mutual gamahuche
between Lizzie and me."

I thus arranged a certain amount of cessation of fucking in that
quarter that I might dedicate the more to the far more exciting powers
of the delicious and salacious Miss Frankland.

I had always remained in my own bed until I heard her heavy breathing,
denoting that she slept, before I dared to leave my own room to go to
my sisters. The desire of racking me off, as dear charming Mrs. Benson
used to call it, might have seized her, and my absence would have
discovered all.

However, she had, no doubt, considered that it would be all to her
advantage that I should be left perfectly quiet to recruit my system,
after the heavy drain on my amatory resources which she had kept up for
the previous fortnight. She never sought in any way to excite me until
a day and a night after the cessation of her menses. She told me it was
much better to have done with it entirely at once, rather than by
erotic excitement keep up the discharge for a week or more.

"And it is not, my dear Charlie, from any want of randy lust on my
part, for, especially at first, there is an extreme desire to be well
laboured by the biggest prick one could find in existence; the natural
irritation of the parts seem to be increased by the way in which the
sensual system is affected in that quarter. Former experience has
taught me that it is much better to bear this, than by seeking for
erotic excitement to keep up the natural discharge for twice as long as
it would otherwise endure. Besides which, there would have been a
danger of affecting your dear health. Sometimes conjunctions, at such a
period, produce a urethral irritation very prejudicial to a man, and
such as might deprive me of the delight of your embraces for some
weeks. So you see, my own beloved boy, that in every way it is prudent
to avoid any amorous excitement at such a period, however hard nature
may press for venereal relief. Some women hazard all this, and for a
momentary gratification, run risks perfectly unwarrantable, not only
for themselves, but above all for their lovers. I, too, my darling,
have had my day of imprudence, and knowing the result, I should be both
cruel and stupidly insensate to let you run the risk of what already
occurred."

As she recounted those sage counsels, I could not but remember my loved
Mrs. Benson, whose advice had been of such service to me, and here was
another loved mistress instructing me in further matters connected with
the sex. It certainly was a stroke of great good fortune for me to have
met at so early an age two such admirable women, not only most amorous
and lascivious, but instructing me in the real knowledge of their sex,
and the world, at the very time that they were indulging my every
lascivious desire, as well as their own. Mistresses of their art, no
mystery in love's catalogue of excitements, and of means of gratifying
the same, was unknown to them. But they knew, too, how to inculcate
wisdom for future conduct. I owe every amatory success of my after-life
to the admirable teachings of these two charming and estimable women.

The next night, after we had sacrificed sufficiently often to Venus to
enable us more calmly to resume the delightful discussion on the
various ways of pampering and exciting the passions, I turned the
conversation on flogging; for to take you, dear reader, into my
confidence, I was seized with an uncontrollable letch to flog the
superb bottom of my loved mistress. I had often seen it palpitating
under the vigorous attacks of my stiff-standing pego, while belabouring
either of the delicious entrances to the temples of lust. I had often
given her glorious bottom good sound slaps of the hand, but I longed to
apply to it in earnest a good birch rod, see it flush to a raw meat
hue, and then to shove my prick with the utmost force into either or
both of the delicious orifices. I thought the best way of arriving at
this desired object was to recur to her own description of a less
severe flogging exciting the passions with pain; and as she had also
admitted that it excited her equally to be flogger or flogee, I
proposed that she should exercise a gentle discipline on my bottom, to
try its efficacy. She jumped at the idea, but there was no rod in her
room, perforce the ceremony was put off until the next night. On that
occasion, she advised me first to indulge in every excess of lubricity,
and when nature should begin to flag, then the real efficacy of the rod
would be experienced. She aided me with the utmost skill in every act
of most voluptuous and luxurious venery, and we mutually poured down
six tributes to our blessed Mother Venus, with very little cessation,
for we both wished to feel somewhat exhausted, before trying the
effects of the birching system. We lay quiet for a short time, and then
dear Miss Frankland began exciting me, but only in an ordinary way. My
prick had already been too well satiated with the previous encounters
to respond at once to the calls made on it.

"Ah," said she, in her sweetest way, "I see we want the rod here.
Prepare yourself, sir, and take care to make no resistance, or it will
be the worse for your bottom."

Following her cue, I began to implore pity, to promise I would behave
better in short time, etc., etc. But she was inexorable, and ordered me
to lie across her knees. Then, taking me round the waist, she gave a
smart cut or two, really sharp, that made me for the moment wince.

"Take care, sir, you are resisting, and you know your punishment will
be severe, if you so continue."

"Forgive me, mistress dear, and I will never do so again."

"We shall see."

Cut three, sharp, though not so severe. I did not flinch. "Ah! that is
something like a good boy, now we shall have no difficulty."

She began a series of less and less severe blows, until it ended in a
gentle irritable titillation which very shortly began to show its
effects by the stiffness of my pego--fiercely shoving against the naked
thigh of my loved castigator, who, passing a hand round my body, laid
hold of it, delighted to find how efficacious her proceedings had been.
Pretending to be quite exhausted, she sank back on the bed, and said
she could do no more. I sprang upon her, and we had two more _coups_
without withdrawing, with the greatest excess of voluptuousness. It was
now my turn, and as she let me slip out of her delicious cunt, I took
that up as a cause of dissatisfaction.

"What! you naughty girl," I cried, "is that the way you treat your
master, bundling him out of his room in that manner; here, give me the
rod, I must make your bottom pay for your ill conduct--here, kneel on
this footstool, and lay your body over my thighs, no resistance, or it
will be the worse for you."

"Oh! pray, sir, do forgive me this time," and she knelt at my side, and
pretended to cry. I forced her down, and she presented her glorious
backside, in all its splendour of rotundity and size, before my
delighted gaze. I seized her round the waist, and first gloated my
sight with all the full and lascivious charms, not only displayed, but
in my power, and I armed with a splendid rod. I gave her two or three
sharp cuts, which made her beauteous buttocks wriggle, but called forth
no remonstrances; but as I continued, in all the rage of lust the
exercise excited, to flog away most severely, she begged me to be
somewhat more gentle. But I flogged on with increased vigour, until she
began to writhe under the severity of the punishment I was inflicting.
She struggled fiercely, at last, to be free, but she was completely in
my power, and I did not spare her until I saw that, changing from
severe pain, her feelings were turning to a storm of lechery and lust.
She became frantic with excitement, and screamed out--

"Cease, darling Charlie, and fuck me directly. I am dying for it."

I threw down the rod, jumped on the bed, and drew up her loins, so that
she was placed in a kneeling position; she herself seized my bursting
prick, and carried it to the lips of her cunt, where he instantly
engulphed himself to the hilt. Her movements became lascivious beyond
expression, and were urged with a vigour, which brought down in a very
short time a torrent of sperm from both of us. We were too much excited
to stop short, and almost without a pause, a second course was run
still more voluptuously. She was not even then satisfied, but making me
lie on my back, she reversed herself upon me, and we commenced a mutual
gamahuche. I succeeded in making her spend again, and she was able to
bring my pego up to a standing point.

"Now, Charlie, dear, we must finish off behind."

So getting again on her hands and knees, she guided my willing prick to
the narrower abode of felicity. After first steeping it for a moment in
the moisture of her foaming and reeking cunt, I thrust it into her
bottom-hole. I seized hold of her clitoris, she had her dildo all
ready, and working it herself with one hand, we ran a last course of
most lustful and lecherous enjoyment, which ended in such killing
raptures that we both sank all but insensible on the bed. Exhausted as
we were by the wild excesses we had indulged in, we fell, without
moving or regaining our senses, into a deep and profound slumber, until
almost too late in the morning, so that I had to regain my room the
moment we awoke, without attempting any further amorous toyings. Thus
ended my first experiences as a flogger. The sensation was so new, and
the temptation to lay on with a vengeance was so great, that I had gone
beyond all reasonable bounds in inflicting such a severe punishment on
the glorious bum of my beloved Miss Frankland. I must, however, do her
the justice to say that she comprehended and excused the feelings under
which I acted, only begging me, on any future occasion not to let them
carry me away so far as they had done on this. We several times renewed
this bum flogging, but with more moderate inflictions--sufficient to
highly excite without actually punishing the patient, whichever of us
it might be.

We often after this made flogging the theme of our discussions, and I
gradually led on to the idea she had expressed of Lizzie's evidently
amorous disposition. She still affirmed that such was her conviction. I
then suggested that it would be worth her while to try and gratify it,
as well for Lizzie's sake as for the satisfaction of her own letch in
that way.

"I suppose you could easily find a pretext if you desired to do so?"

"Yes, easily enough, the idea excites me, and I shall indulge it."

I do not remember what the pretext was, but Lizzie was kept in next
afternoon at four o'clock--Mary and I proceeded to the summer house. I
knew we should not be interrupted by Lizzie, and that I need not hold
in for her satisfaction. So I gave Mary all the benefit of our being
alone, and we had four most exquisite and refined indulgencies in every
attitude admitted of by the legitimate entrance to love's temple. For,
as yet, I had never been able to gain an entrance to the narrower
orifice, which was too small for my formidable weapon to penetrate. It
is odd how easily Lizzie accommodated me in her delicious bottom-hole,
while Mary, older and more womanly in form, was as yet unable to make
room for me in that strait path of bliss. When night came I was all
curiosity to know how my dear mistress had carried on matters with
Lizzie. She told me that Lizzie had been somewhat nervous at first, but
she had spoken kindly to her, told her how her amiable and loving
conduct after her first whipping had won her affection; that she did
not mean to be so severe as on the former occasion, but that discipline
must be kept up.

"So come, my dear girl, drop off your frock, as I shall mine, that the
bundle of clothes may be out of the way, as well as to avoid their
being creased."

Seeing that Lizzie still trembled a little after she had dropped her
gown, she took her in her arms, and kissing her lovingly, desired her
not to be afraid--she would not punish her much.

"Lift up all your things, my dear, and let me see if any marks of the
former punishment remain."

Lizzie had a very prominent and very promising bottom. Miss Frankland
felt it all over, and admired loudly its form and firmness, declaring
it was quite beautiful to look at, and how womanly it was growing.

"Turn round, and let me see if you are as womanly in front. Upon my
word, a well-formed mount with a charming mossy covering."

Her hand wandering over her form excited Lizzie, whose face flushed and
eyes glistened with rising desires. Miss Frankland herself became
moved, but proceeded at once to lay her across her lap, and began with
gentle switches, just sufficiently sharp to attract the blood in that
direction, which, of course, acted with double force on all the already
excited erotic organs, and Lizzie began to wriggle her bum in all the
lasciviousness of lust under the excited gaze of Miss Frankland, who,
seeing how matters were going on in her favour, increased the force of
her blows, but only sufficiently to still more lecherously excite her
patient--until, driven to an excess of lust, she cried out--

"Oh, my loved Miss Frankland, I am dying with pleasure, do embrace and
caress me."

Miss Frankland lifted her up, and drew her to her bosom and lips, and,
while sucking her tongue, slipped her hand down and found Lizzie's quim
wet with her flowing spunk, and her little clitoris stiff with the
erotic passion that was consuming her. She frigged her until she spent
again, while their tongues were in each other's mouth. As Lizzie spent,
Miss F, shoved a finger up her cunt, which, of course, met with no
resistance, but as Lizzie possessed in perfection the art of nipping,
she was sufficiently tight to leave a doubt of anything but
finger-fucking.

"Ah, you little puss, you have been playing with this before now, tell
me the truth?"

"I will tell you everything, if you will only play with me again. Ever
since you flogged Mary and myself, we have both been so often burning
down there, and have found out that feeling it, and pushing fingers in,
was so nice, although at first we often hurt ourselves. But you do it
so much better than Mary--oh, do, do it again, dear Miss Frankland!"

"I shall do it much better, my darling, with what I have got down
there--look here!"

And, lifting up her petticoat and chemise, she exposed, to the absolute
astonishment of Lizzie, her extraordinary mass of hair, and her fiery
red clitoris glowing and sticking out of its black mass of curls.

"How beautiful!" cried Lizzie. "I declare, you have got a doodle, for
which I have been so longing; I must kiss it."

Stooping down, she took it in her mouth, and sucked it.

"Stop, dear Lizzie, we shall both enjoy it."

Taking the cushion from the chair, she lay down on her back on the
floor, telling Lizzie to turn her face the other way, and to kneel down
across her body, so that both their mouths could adapt themselves to
each other's quim.

Lizzie told me afterwards that she took care to show no previous
knowledge, but to let Miss Frankland apparently initiate her into all
the ceremonies of gamahuching.

Miss Frankland glued her lips to dear Lizzie's charming quim, while
Lizzie took her extraordinary clitoris into her mouth. After a few
ardent caresses Miss Frankland pushed a finger up Lizzie's bottom-hole,
then paused an instant to tell Lizzie not only to follow her example in
that respect, but to use her other hand in her quim while sucking her
clitoris. Then, both adapting themselves as prescribed, they gamahuched
on, until both could no longer move from the excessive raptures
produced by their profuse discharge. After this first bout Lizzie
became curious to see all the wonderful hair-covered organ and limbs of
Miss Frankland, who gratified her to the utmost extent of her wishes.
Nor did she leave this inspection entirely to Lizzie, but reciprocated
it. Undoing her dress above, she uncovered the charming budding
beauties of Lizzie's bubbles, and began sucking the nipples. Their
mutual caresses and handlings very quickly refired these hot and
lecherous women. After a little renewed gamahuching, until both were
wild with excitement, Miss Frankland proposed to put her clitoris into
Lizzie's quim; told her to kneel down, and kneeling behind her, she
sheathed it with ease in the hot and juicy folds of Lizzie's beautiful
cunt. Passing her hand under Lizzie's belly, she frigged her clitoris
until again nature gave down her delicious tribute, and they sank in
all the voluptuous languor that follows. A third time they renewed
their salacious and lascivious raptures, then resumed their dresses so
as to be ready to receive us. Miss Frankland begged Lizzie to keep her
counsel and not reveal, even to Mary, what had passed. But Lizzie urged
Miss F. to admit Mary into the new mysteries she had just herself been
taught, and said she could assure her that Mary had a far more
beautiful body than hers, and would like it quite as well as she did.

"Well, my dear, I shall think of it, and find an occasion to flog her,
as I have done you."

"Oh, that will be jolly!" cried Lizzie. "She will like it just as much
as I do; it is so nice, you must flog me every day, dear Miss
Frankland. I loved you from the first, I adore you now."

They embraced most lovingly, but our return put an end for the present
to any further conversation.

These details were accompanied and interrupted by two or three
delicious and most voluptuous fucks, without once withdrawing my
burning prick from her equally heated and throbbing cunt--for her
description of these proceedings was most exciting. When she had
finished, I withdrew, that we might gamahuche each other, and lick up
all the delicious spunk in which her juicy cunt abounded. We then
renewed our combats, sacrificing to holy Mother Venus in both orifices.
Then we slept as only easy-conscienced people like ourselves could
sleep; and, like giants refreshed by slumber, renewed our devotions on
every altar before separating in the morning.

Two days later Mary was initiated by Miss Frankland in a like manner to
Lizzie, while Lizzie and I made the most of our time in the summer
house. Excited by her naive description of her scene with Miss
Frankland, we indulged in every salacious device that we could cram
into the hour's absence, which, by the way, we lengthened out by more
than a quarter of an hour, for which Miss Frankland thanked me at
night. Her scene with Mary had been one of even greater lubricity, in
consequence of Mary at once lending herself to everything, and
acknowledging that she knew from Lizzie what she had to expect.
Besides, Mary's more developed form and something about her greatly
excited Miss F., and she was quite amorous upon her. She had done so
much in the way of spending, that after I had gamahuched and fucked her
two entrances three times, she required the stimulus of the rod to
bring her up to the highest point of lascivious lubricity. And, to tell
the truth, I afterwards required and received it myself. Thus our
voluptuous passions acted one on the other, and we passed an exhausting
night in every excess and refinement of venery, in which Miss
Frankland's dildoes, for she had two, of different sizes, played no
small part in both our persons.

Now that the ice was broken, I easily persuaded Miss F. to have
occasionally first one and then the other of my sisters to sleep with
her, alleging that an occasional early night's rest would recruit my
powers, and that when she dismissed her bedfellow in the morning, I
could finish her off in force; she could thus initiate them in mutual
floggings, and in the use of dildo. Of course, I need not say that my
ultimate object was to succeed in our making it a general orgie. In
this indeed it ended, but not exactly as I had intended. That mattered
not, as long as the desired object was attained. I had the delightful
opportunity, too, of watching through my peep-hole many of the
delicious scenes of lubricity enacted, and when driven to the fiercest
excess of passion, I used to withdraw, steal up to the unoccupied
sister, and vent my raging lust in every indulgence with her.

This had been carried on for about a fortnight, one or other of the
girls sleeping every other night with Miss Frankland. Lizzie, it
appeared, had often professed to long to see a real cock, and had
managed to worm out of Miss F. that she had enjoyment of mine. The
little hussey importuned Miss F. to let her see me fucking her, saying
that she could easily hide behind the curtains, and I would never know.
Miss F., whose passions were at the utmost tension of desire,
consented, and placing Lizzie where she could see without being seen,
opened my door, but found an empty bed. She at first suspected that I
had gone to one of the female servants, but thought she would make sure
and see if Mary was not the object. So she stole softly upstairs, and
found us in the act of enjoying a double gamahuche, which as it was
early morning light, she could see without difficulty. She had the
kindness to let us enjoy it to the end, and then dragging me off, said--

"Oh! Charles! this is dreadful! Why could you not be content with
me?--have I ever refused you? Do you know this would be the ruin of all
of us if ever it should become known? You are too young to know the
dreadful consequences of discovery."

Here she burst out in a torrent of tears--it was evident from real fear
of the sad results that might ensue, and not from any feeling of
jealousy. I threw myself into her arms, and as she had herself
acknowledged our intimacy, I had less difficulty in alluding to it. I
caressed and fondled her, and told her there was no fear of
discovery--less now than ever--as we would be all interested alike in
keeping our secret; she would cover my intimacy with my sisters, and
they would cover my intimacy with her. All at once she said--

"How long has this been going on?--tell me truly."

I had long prepared myself for such a question, and at once replied
that after the description of the libidinous scenes that had taken
place between her and them, and her exquisite account of their young
charms, I got so lecherous upon them that I had sought Mary out while
she was engaged with Lizzie, and Lizzie when Mary was with her; they
were both too much delighted to refuse me anything, and we had now
enjoyed each other about a dozen times. I had previously told my
sisters to support any story I might recount to Miss F. Lizzie had
stolen up after she found Miss Frankland had passed through my room,
and now both confirmed the tale told. We surrounded Miss Frankland,
caressing her in every way. My pego got terribly excited. Drawing up my
nightshirt, I said--

"Let this dear fellow make peace between us, and become equally dear to
all. I know, my loved mistress, that my sisters are longing to see him
exercised on your glorious person, and buried in your delicious hairy
cunt, so let me offer up sacrifice to its juicy charms. Lizzie has just
said you sought me for the purpose--see, the dear clitoris is raising
its head--let Mary lie down under you to suck your clitoris, and see my
prick close above her eyes in vigorous action filling your exquisite
cunt. You can gamahuche her and Lizzie can look on behind, witness the
glorious sight, and act postillion to my bottom-hole."

"Well, my beloved children, the die is cast, it is no use crying after
spilt milk, so let us make the best of it. I never could resist the
eloquent look of this loved and long thick thing, that was made for
giving poor woman all she could crave for."

So arranging our relative positions as I had prescribed, we ran a
course of the most luxurious and salacious enjoyment imaginable.
Lizzie, who had taken possession of one of the dildoes, manipulated
herself, while watching every voluptuous movement of our bodies, and we
all managed to spend most rapturously together. We could not afford to
do more at that moment, as time was creeping on, and the household
would soon be astir. Miss Frankland regained with me my room, her own
door being locked, and kissing me tenderly, said I was a bad boy, but
she supposed it must eventually have come to this, so it was well it
was sooner than later.

Thus passed our first general orgie, which was the precursor of many
much more luxuriously and salaciously libidinous, and which I shall
more minutely describe as events progress.

Miss Frankland would not allow us to have a general orgie the next
night. She was now aware of our summer house doings--only of late
begun, as she supposed--for my story had been too plausibly off-hand
not to deceive her, especially as she had felt convinced by all that
occurred on our first fucking that she had had the delightful pleasure
of taking my maidenhead. She was quite satisfied on that head. But she
now suspected that what I had just begun I should be too glad to
repeat. She accompanied us to the garden in our recreation hour, so
that nothing erotic took place. We sat down all together after a little
running about, and Miss F. opened to us a rule of conduct we must in
future pursue. She said--

"However delightful it would be for you all, as well as for myself, to
meet every night, it would in the first instance become a dangerous
habit, dangerous because of engendering carelessness in the necessary
precautions against discovery; and next, and above all, because it
would be the destruction of our loved and darling Charlie, who could
not possibly long continue such excessive venery as three loved objects
at once would constantly require of him."

Seeing my inclination to interrupt her, and declare that I felt quite
equal to it, she stopped me, and told us I was too young to know what
such excessive indulgence would lead to; that we must trust to her
experience and be guided by her, and we should all find the advantage
of it. Three times a week was the utmost she could allow, when we
should be all together. The other nights she would take care that I
committed no excess. Such were the sage counsels of this admirable
woman, and such in future became the programme of our proceedings. I
rebelled and kicked against what I thought at the time too great a
restriction, but I eventually became convinced that greater pleasure
followed the enforced delays. Of course I slept with Miss Frankland on
what might be called our off nights, but she soon established a custom
of restraining my spendings to twice a night, allowing me to excite and
make her spend as often as I pleased. I was difficult to manage at
first, but eventually settled down in great regularity to the rules she
dictated, and, indeed, enforced. I soon found out the wisdom of her
proceeding, for often afterwards my lagging efforts required the spur
of the rod to be applied in earnest for the completion of our orgies.

The second night after the discovery of my intercourse with my sisters
was the first of meeting all four together, in Miss Frankland's room.
We had been sent, as usual, early to bed, and Miss F. had privately
recommended us to go quietly to sleep as soon as possible, and not to
be under any anxiety, as she herself would go for the girls, after all
the household had retired. As for me, it was the plan I had always
adopted, as it enabled me to reap the greater amount of enjoyment, and
its longer continuance, by the rest I had previously secured. Winter
had passed away, and summer came round again. It was a lovely, warm,
moonlight night. As soon as we were all assembled, stripping to the
buff was the order of the night; then followed charming embraces and
mutual posings, so as each should admire the beauties of all. Hands
wandered everywhere over every charm, chiefly concentrating on the
wonderful and finely developed form of the fascinating Frankland,
whose richness of coal-black hair was so deliciously exciting. It soon
became necessary to calm the first effervescence of our passions, which
we always did by a general gamahuche. Miss Frankland, who had taken an
extraordinary letch for Mary, paired off with her, while Lizzie and I
accommodated each other. Miss Frankland, who had provided herself with
a store of dildoes, furnished us all with one, differing in size,
according to the intention of their application. As Mary's bottom-hole
as yet could only accommodate a moderate size, Miss F. kept the
smallest for her particular use, the others were indiscriminately used.
Thus armed, we proceeded to enter on all the voluptuous excesses of
gamahuching in every form, lengthening out our pleasures as much and as
long as possible, that we might pass the whole night in the most
libidinous raptures. When the ecstatic moment overtook us, our mouths
had to cease their operations to give vent to the expressions of the
rapturous nature of our feelings. We lay panting for some time before
being able to rise and resume our mutual caresses. Now that we had
taken off the edge of our lustful appetite, we prepared more calmly for
further and more voluptuous combinations. The upper coverings of the
bed were entirely removed, so that it presented nearly a square field
of combat for love's encounters, admirably adapted for its purpose. We
held a council as to our next movements, and finally decided to begin
as follows: Mary to lie down on her back, Lizzie reversed above her,
Miss Frankland was to indulge in her letch for Lizzie, which was that
of fucking her bottom-hole with her extraordinary clitoris, while I was
to fuck Miss Frankland's cunt, and postillion her smaller orifice with
two fingers, Lizzie was to postillion Mary with her finger, while
gamahuching her, Mary to apply the smaller dildo to my bottom-hole, and
frig Lizzie's cunt with a larger one. It was also agreed we should run
two courses in this voluptuous group, varying only in the substitution
of my prick in Miss Frankland's bottom-hole, instead of her cunt, in
which was to be placed one of the dildoes. We were none of us to press
matters to a speedy termination, but to make the most of the exquisite
conjunction of our parts. We enjoyed a most salacious and voluptuous
fuck, and so managed matters as all should spend together in perfect
raptures of lubricity and lust. Notwithstanding the pleasure of the
final discharge, we managed, as previously agreed, to hold our mutual
positions, our parts palpitating with repeated throbbings on or in the
delicious quarters with which they were conjoined. These soon
reawakened our passions, which we as yet had done but little to calm,
and when sufficiently heated, the slight change agreed upon was
effected, and I plunged up to the hilt in the glorious and hairy
bottom-hole of the divine Frankland, who gave almost a scream of
delight as she felt my huge pego rushing up into her burning entrails.
We had to pause some minutes to allow her excitement to subside to a
certain extent, or she would have discharged after two or three thrusts
of my potent weapon. We then proceeded more leisurely, and after
drawing out our enjoyment in the most salacious and voluptuous manner,
the ecstatic moment seized us all together, with such an excess of wild
enjoyment that with screams of almost agonised delight, we poured into
or upon each other whole torrents of hot boiling sperm, and sank almost
insensible into a confused heap of naked forms. We were a long time in
recovering our senses. Then disentangling ourselves, we rose and laved
our parts in cold water, not only to purify ourselves, but as a
stimulant to further exertions in all the wildest excesses of lubricity
that any of us could fancy. But we always managed so as to make Miss F.
think that she was the author of any new salacious idea or suggestion.
In fact she nearly was so in every case, for her experience in every
letch, and its gratification in every form of libidinous refinement,
was great and we owed to her many new and delicious combinations in our
salacious orgies. After partaking of wine and cake, which Miss F. had
taken care to secure, we indulged in some delicious romping and pulling
about of the rich curls and hairy coverings of nearly all Miss
Frankland's superb form. The girls above all admired the magnitude,
hardness, and beauty of her truly magnificent buttocks, and what with
one now and then sucking her bubbies, and at other times toying with
her already standing clitoris, we soon brought her to such a state of
excitement that, seizing hold of Mary, she got her on the table and
gamahuched her, while Lizzie, creeping under, sucked her clitoris, and
I pushed my prick from behind into her cunt. We brought on a delicious
spend, and the glorious creature died away in excess of pleasure along
with Mary, while I had not yet arrived at the climax. So I contented
myself with making my prick throb to her delicious squeezings, until
the fatigue of the position required us to break up the pose. She was
so far calmed that she could now propose and discuss after-proceedings,
and what our next form of enjoyment should be. As Mary had had an extra
spend with Miss Frankland, Lizzie was now placed on her knees, with her
head well down. I thrust my prick into her longing cunt. Miss Frankland
standing up, strode across Lizzie's body in front of me, here I
introduced first a smaller dildo up her bottom-hole and then a larger
one up her cunt, both up to the cod pieces. She then pushed forward her
belly and put her stiff-standing clitoris into my mouth, and placed her
two hands on my head. I then passed one hand under her open legs, and
seizing both dildoes in one hand, proceeded to work them up and down
both holes at once, in unison with my suction of her clitoris, and my
fucking movements in Lizzie's cunt, who at the same time was frigging
her own clitoris with her fingers. Mary, armed with two dildoes,
applied one to my bottom-hole, while she fucked herself with the other.
In this way we ran a most exciting and delicious course. Miss F., in
the ecstatic moments, seemed as if she would have pressed my head into
her belly. She was so charmed with the voluptuous delights this pose
had given that she cried out we must not change until another course
was run. Lizzie said she must change from front to back, and begged
Mary to hand her a dildo with which she might frig herself. The women
were ready directly, but my pego was longer in answering the call, so
Miss Frankland told Mary to apply the birch rod skilfully.

This she did with great art, working the dildo, which was still in her
cunt while so occupied. The effect was almost electrical, and my
glorious rampant prick filled dear Lizzie's delicious and longing
bottom-hole to her utmost delight. Miss F. begged Mary to give her a
gentle stimulus with the rod. Nothing could better have pleased Mary,
for she afterwards admitted she had long had the greatest letch to flog
that glorious and immense backside. With such stimulants as these this
course proved one of the most salacious and voluptuous we had yet had,
and the ecstatic ending was accompanied with screams of delight, as we
died away in the deathlike swoon of rapturous and satiated desires. We
again rose to purify and refresh ourselves, and for some time after lay
closely embraced on the bed. As Mary had not yet had my prick in her
cunt, Miss F. proposed that I should fuck her, that Lizzie should kneel
close behind us, she could fuck Lizzie's bottom-hole with her clitoris,
and work one dildo up my bottom, while she worked a second in her own.
No sooner said that done. Lizzie's head was shoved almost below Mary's
belly, so as to bring Miss F. close enough to me to operate as she
desired, and we ran another delicious course with such extreme pleasure
that all sank sideways down on the bed and dropped into a sound
slumber. We did not awaken until so late that we only had time to lave
ourselves in cold water, finish off with a general gamahuche, and then
regain our separate rooms. On this last occasion Miss Frankland said
she must gamahuche me, as she delighted to break her fast on cream. The
joke amused the two girls amazingly.

It was about this time Mrs. Vincent gave birth to a fine boy. I have
not spoken of her since our first interview after her marriage in the
summer house, when all had gone into the town to bring out Miss
Frankland. We had only had two stolen interviews since that time, which
I have not mentioned, because they were too hasty, and with too little
comfort to have been thoroughly enjoyed; then she became too heavy with
child to afford me any further opportunity. Mamma wrote a
congratulating letter to Mr. Vincent, wishing him joy of the advent of
a son and heir, little dreaming that her own son was the father
thereof. This brought a visit from Mr. Vincent to beg that mamma would
kindly become godmother to the little fellow. My mother at once
assented, and asked who the godfathers were. He said an uncle, from
whom they had expectations, had consented to be one, but he was at a
loss to know whom to ask as second.

"Why not ask Charlie, he was always very fond of your wife as his
governess, and he, too, has an uncle from whom we hope some day to
receive something handsome."

"That is a very good idea of yours, Mrs. Roberts, and if you will
kindly send for Charles I shall put it to him, and if he consents, it
saves me all further trouble."

I was sent for, and, you may be sure, accepted immediately, thanking
Mr. Vincent for the honour he did me, and hoping that Mrs. Vincent
would be equally agreeable that I should be godfather, although so
young.

"Leave that to me, my dear wife is so much attached to me that my wish
is her law, so do not make yourself uneasy on that head."

It may well be supposed I was not at all uneasy, but quite certain that
it was the very thing Mrs. V. would have proposed if she had not been
withheld by prudence. We heard afterwards from Mr. V. that she had
simulated objections on account of my youth, but the very first moment
she could say a word to me in private it was to tell me what delight it
had given her that her husband should have fulfilled in the matter the
very wish nearest and dearest to her heart.

The ceremony eventually came off as had been proposed, but it was at
very rare intervals that I could find an opportunity of renewing our
old combats in the field of Venus. Meanwhile I had no reason to regret
this as far as indulgence of my erotic passions went, because, for
nearly two years, that is until I had passed my eighteenth birthday, I
continued to enjoy uninterrupted bliss in the arms of the luxurious and
fascinating Miss Frankland, or in orgies with her and my sisters, which
culminated in every excess of venery capable of being enjoyed by three
women and one youth. In fact, we all indulged rather too freely, if I
may judge from the fact that, at least to Miss Frankland and myself,
the rod had almost become a necessity, and occasionally even my sisters
admitted it gave them a fillip. Under the able tutorship of Miss
Frankland we became the most perfect adepts in every voluptuous
indulgence of lubricity. But I must also give her the credit of never
neglecting our education. Indeed, I may say it gained by the intimate
union of our bodies. For that estimable woman impressed upon us that to
keep her friendship and confidence we must do justice to her teaching.
I have already said her system of instruction was very superior to
anything we had previously known, and now that she had won our
unbounded love and affection, there was nothing we were not ready to do
in school to second her efforts for our mutual improvement. She had
very superior attainments-spoke French and German like a native, had
sufficient knowledge of Latin and Greek to ground me well in them, and
her knowledge of music was very superior. I have hardly ever heard
anyone with a more charming touch on the piano. In the two years that
followed our first orgie we made really astonishing progress. We all
spoke French very fairly, had a pretty good knowledge of German,
especially Mary, who really spoke it well; as for myself I was well up
in French, fairly so in German, and with a very good ground work of
Latin and Greek.

It was about this time that an event happened which completely changed
the order of my life. My mother had hinted that I had some expectations
from an uncle. These were very vague. He was my father's brother, but
they had never agreed, and we were almost strangers to each other. He
died, and one day we were all surprised, not to say delighted, to hear
from his executor, a Mr. Nixon, a rich merchant in London, that my
uncle had left my mother four hundred pounds a year as long as she did
not marry again, but at her death the said annuity was to be divided
between my two sisters, independent of any coverture. The residue and
bulk of the property was settled on me, under trust to Mr. Nixon until
I was of age, with a request that I should be brought up to the law and
entered as a barrister in the Inner Temple. Further, a sum of five
hundred pounds was allowed for a new outfit, in every way becoming to
all of us. Mr. Nixon announced that in a fortnight he would take the
opportunity of being in our neighbourhood to come over and make the
necessary arrangements consequent upon the altered state of affairs. He
added that the residue of the property would yield about one thousand
pounds a year, and that, therefore, my education must be looked to more
closely than it probably had been. Here was, indeed, a change. My
father had left the house and grounds, and something like six hundred
pounds a year in the funds, entirely to my mother as long as she
remained a widow, or until her death. Afterwards one hundred and fifty
pounds per annum to each of my sisters, and the house and residue to
me--a moderate income requiring other efforts to make it comfortable to
one's upbringing. Here I was now the heir eventually to something like
fifteen hundred pounds a year, two country houses, and a very fair
house besides attached to my uncle's house. You may easily imagine the
joy of the whole family when from somewhat pinched economy, we found
ourselves in easy circumstances, with at once quite double our previous
income. We indulged in somewhat wild dreams of what all this might
produce; but mamma brought us to our senses by informing us that until
I was of age Mr. Nixon would entirely control our destinies, and that
it was more than probable he would insist upon sending me to a public
school. This news dashed all our hopes to pieces with a vengeance,
because it was precisely on our greater freedom that we had been
counting, and now there was every probability our delightful
intercourse and delicious orgies would come to an abrupt termination.
We exchanged sad and crestfallen looks on hearing this from mamma, and
met in a very disconsolate humour that night in Miss Frankland's room;
but that charming and estimable woman cheered us up with the hope that
if a temporary separation did occur, it would only lead to our safer
and more perfect reunion hereafter.

"And, to tell you the truth," she said, "my dear Charlie, we have been
of late too much for you, and your health and constitution will benefit
by a forced inactivity, for I have observed some symptoms about you
lately that prove we three have taxed you too hard. I have no doubt I
shall be retained as governess to your sisters, and leave me alone to
keep them to a point that will not disappoint you when we meet again,
which must always occur at intervals of not longer than six months."

To our loving minds six months seemed an age. At the same time Miss
F.'s remarks had, to a certain extent, reassured us, and although we
could not enter into our orgie with the usual fury and letch,
nevertheless we managed to pass a night sufficiently rapturous in the
enjoyment of our libidinous passions, which many would have thought
excessive.

In due course Mr. Nixon made his appearance. He was a pleasant-looking
elderly gentleman, and a complete man of the world. Finding that I had
been educated entirely at home under governesses, he fancied I must be
a milk-and-watery ignorant youth, and had already hinted as much to
mamma--who, having told me, put me on my mettle. Mr. Nixon sent for me
into the parlour alone, and began an agreeable conversation apparently
leading to nothing, probably with a view not to render me nervous and
timid, gradually turning the conversation upon educational subjects. He
was agreeably surprised to find the progress I had made, not only in
historical and geographical subjects, but in languages, and above all
was surprised at my knowledge of Latin and Greek. He was particular in
asking if some clergyman had not lent his aid to the governess. After
dinner, during which he paid great attention to Miss Frankland, he
warmly complimented her on her system of teaching and its extraordinary
success. At the same time he observed that, as his dear old friend had
desired that his nephew should become a barrister, it would be
necessary he should be sent to some clergyman taking a few boys, and
then to King's College, London, before entering a barrister's chambers.
Miss Frankland at once admitted the justice of the remark, and hoped
that Charles would not shame her teaching.

"Quite the contrary, I assure you, Miss Frankland. I have been struck
with the admirable ground work you have established, and especially the
advantages you have given him of the knowledge of modern languages. I
am so much pleased that I intend to beg of Mrs. Roberts to keep you as
the able governess of the girls until they are so much older as to
require a little knowledge of the world which a metropolitan ladies'
school is sure to impart."

All this was said with a certain deference of manner to Miss Frankland,
that I felt certain the old gentleman was greatly struck with her
person, as well as her system of teaching. But of this it is probable
my readers will learn more hereafter.

My mother, hearing of the intention of sending me to some clergyman,
immediately suggested that her own brother-in-law, the Rev. Mr.
Brownlow, rector of Leeds, in Kent, a retired village close to the
castle of that name, would be a suitable person. He was a gentleman who
had taken honours at Cambridge, and was in the habit of receiving one,
two or even three young gentlemen, but never more, to prepare them for
the universities. At that moment she knew by a letter from her sister
that he had a vacancy. His name, she said, stood high as an instructor,
as Mr. Nixon would find on inquiry; and as Charles had never been away
from home, it would be a great satisfaction to her to know that he was
under the care of her own sister. Mr. Nixon said he perfectly agreed to
her suggestion, provided, as to which he had no doubt, his inquiries
justified his sending me there. He left us with a promise of an early
decision, and, indeed, before the week had passed we received his full
concurrence to my mother's suggestion. So my aunt was written to, and
it being the period of the holidays, Mr. and Mrs. Brownlow were asked
to come over and spend a week, and then I could return with them to
Kent. We had not seen aunt or uncle since we were little children, and
only remembered her as a very tall immense person. The distance had
prevented personal intercourse, and we only knew of them by
interchanges of hams, Canterbury brawn, and oysters at Christmas time.
As they replied by return of post, saying they would be with us in two
or three days following their letter, you may be sure Miss Frankland
and all of us made the most of what was to be the last of our mutual
orgies for the time. No restrictions were put upon us, and every night
was dedicated to the god of lust and voluptuousness.

At last the fatal day arrived. My mother and the two girls went into
the town to fetch uncle and aunt out, leaving Miss Frankland and me to
our studies. You may well suppose it was the prosody of love and not
that of grammar that occupied us. There was a tenderness of manner, and
a loving kindness and fondling, which I had not before observed in Miss
Frankland, and which I should have thought alien to her character.
Embracing me tenderly, and pressing me lovingly to her bosom, she burst
into a flood of tears, and sobbed as if her heart would break as her
head sank on my shoulder. I tried to comfort her in the best way I
could, and as my kind reader knows, a woman's tears always had a most
potent effect on my prick, I placed it in her hand, she hysterically
laughed amidst her crying, but instantly sank her head down to the
loved object, embraced, sucked, and frigged it until I poured a flood
of boiling sperm into her mouth, which she greedily swallowed, and
continued sucking until not a drop was left. Then rising once more to
caress and embrace me, she said--

"Yes, my own beloved boy, that was indeed a means to stop my tears, I
not only adore it, but have come to love you, my darling, more than I
ever loved anything in my life--you are my own scholar, bodily and
mentally. I shall miss you greatly, and I bitterly regret our parting;
but we shall meet again, although never with such freedom and ease as
we have done. You will spend your holidays at home, and we shall make
the most of them. I can feel the dear object already to be made the
most of again, and so it shall, dear fellow, so come to its own nest."

These last fond words were addressed to my prick, which, already
rampant again, was claiming attention. We went at it, hammer and tongs.
Recruited at luncheon, we renewed the raptures of lubricity as that
estimable woman alone knew how to indulge them. We were the less
reasonable, as it had been decided by us the night before that I was to
find out the habits of the coming couple before I should venture on
leaving my room to slip up to theirs, and thus I had a night of
relaxation before me.

At five o'clock the carriage drove up, and uncle and aunt were welcomed
to our house. My uncle was a tall, portly, unctuous-looking clergyman,
quite a gentleman in his manners, and with a very agreeable voice. My
aunt, who was some fifteen years my uncle's junior, was very tall for
her sex, a fine portly figure, broad shouldered, large bubbies well
apart, a small waist for her size, immense hips and evidently buttocks
to more than match. She was very stout, but stood firm upon her pins,
and walked with great elasticity of step, showing there was a good deal
in her, or rather she could take a good deal out of anybody. She had a
profusion of fair hair, with thick eyebrows, that promised abundance
elsewhere. Her eyes were of a deep blue that could look very far into
you. She had a very pleasing expression, a small mouth, and very white
teeth. Her complexion was exceedingly fair, her arms immense, but
beautifully formed, hands and feet small, fat and plump. She looked
thirty-five, but was nearly forty, and was altogether a most desirable
woman to look at, on a large scale. She embraced me tenderly, which I
did not fail to return, and complimented me and the whole family on our
late good fortune. The first introduction was altogether most
agreeable, and I already began to imagine I might not be so badly off
after all.

We were allowed to sit up rather later than usual, and as my aunt was
fatigued with her day and night's journey, they were glad to follow our
example almost immediately. I had only just time to get undressed, when
I heard them enter the room which Miss Frankland had vacated the
previous day. This had previously been arranged, and she now slept in
my sisters' room, as formerly, until we should depart. I quickly blew
out my light, for fear they should observe it shining through the
chinks I had made. Kneeling down, I began to watch the proceedings. The
first thing my aunt did was to squat on the pot just opposite my
peep-hole, and as she held up her dress well, I could see that she had
a most prominent mons Veneris, thickly covered with very fair ringlets.
Her power of piss was something wonderful, it was like a cataract in
force and quantity, and at once made my mutinous prick stand at the
mighty rush of waters that could be so plainly heard. As she rose, and
before she dropped her dress, I saw her splendid proportions of limb,
the like of which had never before met my eyes. Alas! it was but a
passing glimpse. However, I determined to watch on, hoping to see a
further display in the course of undressing. She took off all her upper
clothes, until nothing but her stays and chemise remained. I could now
mark the real grandeur of her proportions. The stays kept in the waist,
and allowed the splendour of her hips and buttocks to stand out in all
their glory. Never in my life have I seen a finer backside than my aunt
had got. I am now speaking from a vast amount of after-inspection and
adoration, but in its covered magnificence in which I at this moment
viewed it, it appeared the finest backside I have ever met with, and
was in fact the one I alluded to some time back, when I observed that
Miss Frankland's was the finest but one I ever saw. It is true, her
stoutness added greatly to its prominence, but though stout, even very
stout, it was not a stoutness you could call fat. For in
after-intimacy, which became of the very closest and most voluptuous
nature, I was never able to pinch her in any muscular part. She had the
hardest, as well as the biggest, backside I ever met with. I am quite
sure that when she was standing upright, a child might have stood on
the immense projections of her buttocks. Her thighs were positively
monstrous in their mighty proportions, as hard as iron, exquisitely
moulded, and of a fairness and smoothness that rivalled ivory, which,
in another respect, they much resembled, namely, in feeling cold to the
touch. Her legs were worthy of the glorious frame they supported, and
finished off with a pair of charming, clean-run ankles, and very small
feet for her size. As her chemise was short sleeved, the grand
magnificence and beauty of form of her splendid arms and neck, where
the bubbles came out in all their perfection and brilliancy of skin,
were fully displayed. As may be supposed, not a bone was to be traced
in her upper neck, but all was dazzling in colour and flesh, which is
such a beauty in woman. When a woman shows her gaunt collar bones, it
is a proof of bad breeding, and a common nature. Aunt's truly grand
bubbles rose magnificently over her bodice, which I thought at the time
was their support, but this glorious woman required nothing of the
sort, for when perfectly stripped, her bubbles stood out firm and
projecting in all their grandeur, and they were of the largest, worthy
of all her other fully developed charms. Her belly alone was somewhat
too prominent, when standing up, but as she never had had children, it
did not at all hang flabbily, and ended in one of the most prominent
and largely developed montis Veneris I have ever met with, profusely
covered with the fairest of curls, which did not prevent her lovely
creamy skin from shining through them. She was well provided with hair
on that part, but after the extraordinary hairy covering that Miss
Frankland possessed, and with which I had so often toyed, all other
women appeared as nothing in that way. My aunt, after donning a
night-robe, sat down to her toilet, and proceeded to let down her
massive bunch of tresses. Here, she was, indeed, richly gifted, her
hair was all her own, in the utmost profusion, and, tall as she was,
fell much below her buttocks, and was so thick that she could let it
spread over both back and front, and completely cover her nakedness.
Titian must have had such another magnificent head of hair for one of
his models, for it exactly resembled, except in being somewhat of a
fairer hue, his celebrated Magdalen, in the Pitti Palace, at Florence,
where she is represented covered only with the rich profusion of her
ringlets. Such was my aunt, and often and often afterwards has she
indulged all my fancies, by showing herself off in every voluptuous
attitude with this, the greatest ornament of woman, flowing in the
utmost profusion over her glorious and mighty charms. Meanwhile, the
doctor had undressed, but it may well be supposed perfectly unnoticed
by me. I had better game in view. He, too, had donned a _robe de
chambre_, and sat down by his wife to have a chat over the occurrences
of the day. Of course, their conversation very naturally turned upon
myself. They began by congratulating themselves that the good fortune
of the family was partly reflected on them by the circumstances of my
being put under the doctor's care. The lady remarked how doubly
fortunate it was, as the little scandal that had happened had, for some
time, prevented their having any pupils at all. The doctor said--

"Never mind that, my love, this little fellow will soon be the decoy
duck for others; he seems a nice, gentle lad, but I shall seek to have
some talk with him to-morrow, and see what he is made of; boys, under
women's instructions, are generally mere milk-sops."

"I don't think you will find it so in this case," added my aunt. "I am
not a bad judge of character, and I feel certain that Miss Frankland is
too stern and firm of purpose not to have bent any boy's will to her
bidding; I fear, on the contrary, she has, if anything, been too severe
with him, for my sister told me that she had full power to wield the
rod, but, after one or two severe bouts, she completely mastered them,
and that their progress was really very great, and most satisfactory,
as Mr. Nixon, Charles's guardian, who had examined him, had reported
most favourably thereon. But he appears to be insignificant, and
undersized, thin as a whipping post, pale, and somewhat sickly-looking,
he appears much younger than he is, and seems hardly fitted for what
you and I would delight in. Eh! dear doctor?"

I did not understand at this time what her allusion meant, but it was
followed by the doctor stooping forwards, kissing her, and, I have no
doubt, tongueing her too. He first thrust a hand below her beauteous
bubbles, and then pulling up her chemise, began foraging between her
legs. She put down her hair brush; and laid hold of his cock, but
quickly said--

"Don't excite me, my dear, you see this poor fellow can do nothing
without a rod, and we have none here, so be quiet and go to bed, that
is a good boy."

Obeying her, he rose, threw off his robe, put on a nightcap, and
tumbled into bed, and was sound asleep before his magnificent spouse
had finished her toilet. When it was concluded, she took off her stays,
and drew her chemise over her head, I doubt if it could have fallen
over her enormous buttocks. She then walked across the room in my
direction, stark naked as nature made her, and strikingly magnificent
in the firmness of her tread, and the glorious uprightness of her truly
superb grandeur of form. I was positively awestruck. I could imagine
her to be Juno in all her glory before Jupiter, and well he might be
tempted to stray to the forbidden path of love, if Juno had such a
backside as the enormous and glorious one my aunt possessed. She again
squatted down, naked as she was, and poured out another torrent into
the pot. I felt overpowered at the sight, and staggered back to my bed,
and for the first time in my life felt constrained to rack off by
self-pollution the excess of lust the gazing on such superhuman
beauties had engendered. I could hardly refrain from shouting out to
relieve my till then suppressed excitement, especially when nature gave
way, and there spurted forth a jet of sperm, actually from the bed
against the door towards which I had pointed my prick while wildly
frigging it, and in imagination shoving it into aunt--anywhere; for if
ever the saying that "there was plenty of good fucking about all these
parts" was applicable to any one, it was supremely so in my glorious
aunt's case. Any one might shove his prick against any part of her
body, and spend at once from excess of lust, at her very beauty and
splendour of form and exquisite colour and fineness of skin. Never,
never have I met her equal. Her power of fuck, too, was on a par with
the immensity of size, and of a quality to please the most fastidious,
or the most lustful. Such were the first experiences that I had of my
aunt's person, and as my narrative extends, the reader will become more
intimate with her person and proceedings. I sank to sleep, to dream of
possessing her in every way, rivalling Jupiter with Juno, and Mars with
Venus, mere visions of the night, but which were in after-days
converted into sweet realisations of the most voluptuous and rapturous
nature.

The next day, at our hour of recreation, Miss Frankland walked out with
us, and seeking a retired part of the grounds, while the girls amused
themselves, I recounted to Miss F. all I had seen and heard. She at
once came to the conclusion that I was destined to fall into the arms
of my aunt.

"I am so far pleased, my dear Charlie, that it will be into those of an
extraordinary fine woman; you must, after your present experiences with
me, have had some one to go to, and certainly you could not have a
finer. There will, evidently, be every facility, for I read those
hints, which have puzzled you, as intimating any thing but reserve once
you are admitted into the inner arcana of their lives, or I am much
mistaken. There is one point I must strongly caution you about, and
your general prudence and great good sense will make you appreciate its
importance. Your aunt is evidently much experienced in erotic
pleasures. If at once she found in you the extraordinary adept you are,
she would never cease tormenting you until she discovered who had been
your instructress. Now it must be evident to you that if she thought
you and I were intimate in that way, she might draw evil inferences
with regard to your sisters, or if not going so far as to think we had
equally corrupted them, it is probable enough she might seek to remove
me from their society. So you see, my darling boy, though it may be
very difficult to do, you must, for all our sakes, determine to appear
quite innocent and ignorant of every thing connected with indulgence in
amorous passions. You must not let yourself appear excited, but leave
her to take all the initiatory steps, and I much mistake if she will
not be extremely ready to do so, but all the more so if she finds you
apparently innocent. However much you now know of love's proceedings,
you must keep a guarded check upon your feelings, so as not to let your
knowledge become apparent in the smallest degree. She will, eventually,
be twice as well pleased if she fancies she has had your first fruits.
Before you leave I shall give you some short hints as to how to conduct
yourself."

All this time I was getting rampageous, so begging her to stoop forward
upon a stump, I tilted up her petticoats and fucked her from behind,
frigging her delicious clitoris, and making her spend at the same time
as myself. It was a hasty fly, but very sweet nevertheless, for we were
both conscious that it was necessary to make the most of the short time
I had yet to remain at home. I mentioned my aunt's remark about having
no rod at hand, and it was agreed that Miss Frankland should put one on
an upper shelf of her wardrobe, and accidently leave the key in the
door. As this wardrobe remained in the room uncle and aunt were
sleeping in, woman's curiosity was sure to induce an examination of it.
This answered a double purpose, for Miss F. so arranged things that
some excellent books full of little bits of paper inserted here and
there, at highly moral or religious passages, led both uncle and aunt
to have a very high idea of her moral character--for these were works
that apparently could only be for her own private reading.

The rod was placed, and the bait laid next day. Meanwhile, that
afternoon, the doctor called me aside, and put me through a
conversational sort of examination. I was studiously modest, but being
very fairly grounded by the admirable system of teaching pursued by
Miss Frankland, I not only satisfied him, but he took occasion to
compliment Miss Frankland very highly for the admirable groundwork she
had laid. I fancied also, as he continued in conversation with her,
that he grew more kindly and unctuous, as if the spirit of lust was
infusing itself in his veins, as he continued to converse with and gaze
on that most engaging and lust-creating creature.

That night I watched, as before, their preparations for sleep, and
heard their conversation. This time the doctor was profuse in his
praise of me, but aunt thought I was timid and lifeless; there seemed
no spirit about me, as there ought to be, she added, at his age, but
this education by females makes girls of boys. I thought to myself, I
guess, I shall very soon undeceive you on that point, my dear aunt. The
doctor went quietly to bed; aunt stripped and used the bidet, giving me
a most exciting and voluptuous view of all her full-blown charms. No
sooner was her light out, and she in bed, than I slipped out and crept
up to my sisters' room, where three randy cunts were impatiently
awaiting my advent with an equally randy and inflamed pego. We indulged
in every complicated combination of lust and lubricity, and never
ceased until daylight forced my unwilling retreat. Before leaving, as
the rod was to be put in the wardrobe, and the key left in the door,
it was arranged that the next night the girls, and Miss F., too, if she
could, were to endeavour to sleep soundly before I came. For if our
stratagem succeeded, I should remain to see the result which would
probably occupy more than an hour or two, and I would awaken them by
applying Moses's rod to their water courses as doubtless I would be in
a rampageous state, if our expectations of the doctor's and aunt's
tendencies that way were realised.

I kept myself awake until aunt and uncle came to bed, and then I
immediately placed myself _en vedette_. At first no notice was taken of
the key being in the lock. Aunt continued her operations, and uncle
became somewhat more tentative than usual, when aunt, finding by
placing her hand on his prick that it was mere useless desire, rose and
scolded him. He grew more emboldened, and followed her up, wishing to
feel her splendid cunt. It so happened she had drawn back as far as the
wardrobe itself, until the key actually hurt her back.

"Ah what have we here?" she cried, and then turning round, said that as
the key had been left in the lock, there could be no harm in looking
in. Her husband became as curious as she. Of course, the first things
they saw were the prearranged books. They were seized upon with avidity
probably with the expectation of finding something smutty, but to their
surprise, and especially that of the doctor, it was quite the reverse.

"Well, I should never have thought this; do you know, my dear, I had
begun to suspect that, under a demure exterior, there was lurking an
enormous deal of animal passion in that Miss Frankland, but if so,
these works prove that it is under complete regulation. More's the
pity, for she is made for the real enjoyment of the passions."

"Oh you have been speculating in that quarter, have you, you old
lecher?"

"Well, my dear, you know we have both liberty to stray now and then,
and you, yourself, have not a little availed yourself on our mutual
understanding."

"Now, doctor, you are too bad; do I not quite overlook all your
weakness for the younger members of your own sex, and do I not lend
myself to your fantasies in that way, when chance deprives you of any
opportunity of pederasty?"

"Well, well, my love, I was not upbraiding you, you are too dear and
too kind to me to permit of any thing beyond a joking allusion; but
what have we here? A birch rod! by all that is holy."

Reaching up to the high shelf, he drew down the rod. At first they
suspected Miss Frankland operating on herself, but the perfectly
untouched state of the rod proved that it was there in reserve only,
and had not yet been used.

"What a lucky chance," cried my aunt. "I shall now be able to birch you
into something like a fit state to fuck me--and you shall birch me
afterwards, if it will only produce a second fuck, back or front,
whichever you like."

"You are an angel, my darling wife, and I shall try to content both
orifices; it is an abominable shame that with such a gloriously made
magnificent woman as God has given me in your noble form, I should ever
require any other stimulant than a glance at your exquisitely exciting
proportions; but I suppose it is age that weakens our sensibilities."

"You are right, my dear John, for I, who used to think your dear old
cock was enough for me, find I require the excitement of younger ones
to give me the real excess of pleasure my constitution demands; it
would be a shame if I did not humour all your little caprices, when you
so readily throw opportunities in my way. I only wish this nephew of
mine had been more worthy of us, we should have made him a glorious
_bonne bouche_ between us, equally to his satisfaction as to ours."

"Well, my dear, the air of Kent, and more manly treatment, may yet
develop his somewhat stinted growth, and under your tuition, he may yet
prove not so bad an object as you seem to think, at all events, he may
serve as a _pis aller_, until a better turns up; but you must proceed
with caution, for he seems as modest as a maid."

"My dear John, your modest ones always make the best, when once broken
in. I only wish his physique had been more to my liking, but we shall
see, we shall see; meanwhile let us both strip to the buff, and proceed
to make the most of this happy discovery of the rod--the very thing we
most wanted and wished for."

Aunt rapidly twisted up her magnificent tresses, and as rapidly
stripped to the skin; the doctor likewise. I assure you he was a
well-made, muscular, portly, handsome man, with a large well-filled
pair of cods. His pego still hung down his head, but had a certain
amount of size, doubtless stimulated by the exciting nature of their
conversation and reminiscences. His skin and his cock were beautifully
white, and the ball of his prick of a tempting scarlet. I felt at the
moment that, if I dared, I would have bolted into the room, and sucked
it into such a stiffness as would have instantly satisfied the
insatiable cunt of my glorious aunt. This was a delight to be left for
a future day, when I allowed the doctor all the credit and pleasure of
persuading me to do that which I was burning with desire to do. But I
digress. No sooner were both fully prepared than my aunt, in a stern
voice, ordered the doctor to approach.

"Come here, sir, I must whip you, you have not done your duty as you
ought lately, and you are a very naughty boy."

The doctor, putting on the air of a schoolboy, begged to be excused
this time, but his inexorable mistress was not to be moved, and seizing
him by the arm, pulled him over her broad and massive thighs, and with
one arm round his waist, seized his cock in her hand, and began
whacking away at his backside in such real earnest and, apparently,
with all the force of her powerful arm, that I began to think the
doctor must cry out in earnest. But he took it all without a murmur,
only wriggling his fat and smooth buttocks about in a way that rather
inferred satisfaction than suffering. Presently my aunt, who,
doubtless, knew by the grip of his prick that matters had arrived at
the point her own passions had most at heart, lifted him up, and said--

"Now I must put you in pickle, but as your great red buttocks are too
large to be pickled, I shall pickle your prick instead. So come here,
sir, and let me put this rampant fellow into my pickle tub, where, I
promise, the salt brine will soon bring down his pride."

I suppose this was the sort of childish yet lascivious talk which
pleased them both, for uncle, who had risen, and who now presented a
much finer weapon than I had given him credit for, pretended to fear
this further punishment, and begged and entreated to be let off--he had
been punished enough, &c., &c. Aunt, however, leading him by the prick
to the bed, threw herself on the edge, and lying back, drew up her
enormous thighs almost to her belly, and showed to my gloating gaze her
tremendous salmon-coloured gash, all covered with spunk, for the
operation had made her spend profusely. I never saw so large a cunt,
nor such an extensive triangle as lay on the side of each lip between
it and the commencement of the buttocks, beautifully covered with the
fairest curls.

"There, sir, is your place of punishment, stoop and kiss it before I
imprison your indecent cock within it."

The doctor, nothing loath, stooped and gamahuched her so well that her
mighty backside wriggled beneath his head, and made every thing in the
room jingle; her hand pressed his head until I thought it would have
been pushed in altogether. At last, she spent with a shout of delight.
He hastily gobbled it all up, and rising, without more ado, thrust his
stiff-standing weapon up to the hilt, I might almost say cods and all,
in her longing and magnificent cunt. Here, he soaked for some minutes,
and I could see by the convulsive movements of her backside how much
aunt was enjoying it. They soon became bent on more active movements,
for throwing her splendid legs over his back, she began an up and down
movement, much more active than I could in any way have given her
credit for. They went at it in real earnest for a longer time than I
expected, but when the mighty crisis came, it was with an energy, and
passionate struggles worthy of the strength and substance of the two
love wrestlers. I could see her cunt all foam again around the roots of
the increased size of uncle's very respectable prick, and then they lay
in apparent apathy for full twenty minutes, but one could see by the
convulsive throbs of their whole bodies what delicious transports of
rapture they were enjoying. Uncle was the first to rise, but only to
stoop and to greedily lick up all the foaming spunk which the
wide-spread entrance to her glorious cunt exhibited. This being done,
she, too, rose, and throwing her arms round the doctor's neck, drew his
mouth to hers, and seemed to suck his slimy lips, and gain for herself
as much as she could of the delicious spunk the doctor had been
revelling in. This lasted some minutes. Then my aunt turned him down on
the bed, and took a long suck at his prick, now hanging limp, but still
of a goodly thickness. Then she thanked him for the great satisfaction
he had given her, and declared it was almost as good as the first days
of their union. Then after toying and cuddling on the bed for a time,
she said they must now proceed to a little further castigation, on her
bottom this time, as he had promised to give her a double dose.

"Yes, my love, but you know you promised I should take my choice of
which temple I should make my sacrifice at."

"My own John, you know, that after being once well fucked, the hinder
hole is my preference, that is understood."

They accordingly rose, and uncle, furnishing himself with the rod,
desired aunt to kneel on the edge of the bed, and present her
magnificent backside projecting out fair for his birching. This she
immediately did, and being directly before my eyes, I had a full front
view of her gloriously large wide-open cunt, and all the pinky brown
_aureola_ around her charming bottom-hole, over which the little fair
ringlets showed in great beauty. I need not say that my own John Thomas
was in all the pride and panoply of prickdom, and ready to burst with
excitement. My uncle took the rod in hand as soon as aunt was in
position, and placing himself on one side, while his left hand passed
under her belly to frig her clitoris, he had his right hand free to
inflict any amount of whipping. And, I must say, neither one nor the
other spared the rod; they laid it on right soundly, but drew forth no
word or sign of complaint. My aunt soon began to wriggle her stupendous
backside, in a way to show how very exciting the birching was to her.
Her exquisitely creamy white skin began to see the scarlet of the blood
rushing to the surface under the infliction received. The redder it
became, so did the evident palpitating movement of her two resplendent
orbs increase, until uncle, too, showed how the glorious sight was
stimulating his less easily excited system, by the stiffening and
uprising of his pego. Aunt's hand slipped down to it, and being well
acquainted with its habits, pronounced it to be as equally ready as
herself. Turning her body lengthways, but still on her knees, the
doctor scrambled up behind her, and first stooping, licked up the foam
on her cunt, for she had already spent once; and then, rolling his
tongue about the beautiful indentation leading to her delicious
bottom-hole, he thrust it in as far as he could there. Then rising on
his knees, he first plunged his jolly good prick into her cunt for two
or three shoves, and then drawing it out well lubricated, presented its
point to her exquisite bottom-hole, and plunged it up to the hilt at a
single thrust. Aunt gave a cry and shudder of delight as she felt it
penetrate to her very entrails. The doctor, satisfied for the moment,
lay soaking in the exquisite pressure that aunt's _sphincter ani_ was
applying to his happy prick. He looked down upon her glorious buttocks,
handling them with evident pleasure. I saw aunt's hand steal down to
her cunt, and could observe that she was actively frigging her
clitoris. She shortly cried out to uncle not to be so idle, but to
commence the delicious movements she expected from him.

He did--they did; and such a scene of excitement it was to see so
magnificent a woman with such a mighty backside in all the agonies of
enjoyment that I could hold out no longer, but seizing my bursting
prick in my hand, two or three rapid movements up and down, and tight
graspings of the shaft, brought on the ecstatic rapture of so
lascivious a spend that I actually fainted and fell heavily on the
floor. It was fortunate that aunt and uncle were so hotly engaged that
an earthquake might have shook the house without their being conscious
of it. So as I only fell from my knees it never disturbed one moment of
their pleasure. I must have been some minutes without consciousness,
for when I came to my senses, and was able to resume my inspection, I
found their crisis was past, but that uncle still lay soaking in the
narrow cell he so delightfully occupied. He was gazing with evident
pleasure on the still palpitating buttocks of the divine backside
immediately below him. Neither was in any hurry, but they dwelt for a
considerable space of time in this repose of lubricity. At last, his
cock, reduced in bulk, slipped out of its close quarters. Then, rising,
and helping aunt out of bed, they warmly embraced each other, kissed
and tongued, and aunt thanked him for a most rapturous fuck. Aunt then
sat down on her bidet, and uncle used the wash basin. After purifying
themselves, and aunt showing all the extraordinary fine development of
her glorious form, they put on their night-dresses, blew out the
lights, and tumbled into bed. I immediately hastened to gain my
sisters' room, with my cock standing stiffer than ever. I entered
gently--they were all asleep. My two sisters lay reversed, with their
heads between each pair of thighs; they had evidently fallen asleep
after a mutual gamahuche in the very attitude in which they had spent.
Miss Frankland had apparently waited for me, but feeling drowsy, had
thrust her very fine hairy backside right out of bed, ready to attract
my attention the moment I should come. So gently approaching, and
bringing the light to bear on the beautiful sight, I spit upon and
lubricated the end of my prick, and very gently introduced him into her
ever delicious cunt. I managed to fully engulph it before applying my
finger to her bottom-hole, and my other hand to her clitoris. She had
already in her sleep involuntarily squeezed me with her usual force.
Then, suddenly applying all my energies, I began an active movement,
which instantly awoke her. She was as ready for the sport as I was, and
in a very few minutes we ran a most rapturous course of intense
delight, and spent with an energy which proved the strength of the
excitement I had been under. As I was standing by the bedside, and she
lying on it with her fine bottom projecting beyond the edge, it was not
a position to remain long in; besides, I was still dressed. So,
withdrawing, I undressed myself. My sisters had slept through all this,
so first preparing everything for an excessive orgie, by getting out
dildoes and birch rods, we awoke the two darlings, who, rising,
stripped to the buff. The three dear creatures were all curiosity to
know what had kept me so long--more than two hours and a half, and what
had been done.

I recounted all the proceedings, except in so far as they had talked of
initiating me, for neither Miss Frankland nor I wished my sisters to be
acquainted with that matter. They laughed heartily, and little Lizzie
said she must act aunt, first flog me and be fucked; then be flogged by
me, and have my darling prick up her bottom-hole to follow. We laughed
and humoured her, and that scene came off with considerable _eclat_.
Miss Frankland fucking Mary, for whom she had a great letch, in the
cunt first, and in the bottom, after my example on Lizzie, in the
second place. Lizzie and I then laved our parts and prepared for fresh
encounters, and we then began a more regular course of the most
lascivious lubricity, in which dildoes and rods played conspicuous
parts, both becoming necessary under the excessive indulgencies of
these last few nights. I stole to my room long after daylight, and
slept soundly for an hour or two. You may be sure our lessons were of
the lightest in these few days that were left us, and I was allowed to
doze off during school hours.

Miss Frankland again walked with me alone in the garden, to give me, as
she thought, last lessons in the way I should act with aunt, who she
now felt more certain than ever would very soon attack and carry my
person when she reached home and had the place and time all to herself.
I listened with apparently great attention; as the reader knows, I was
already an adept in the art she wished to indoctrinate--thanks to the
admirable advice of my ever charming real first instructress, the
lovely Mrs. Benson. But I could not help thinking how completely these
two admirable women had the same wisdom and knowledge of the world with
which they were so anxious that I, too, should become conversant.

The next night the doctor and aunt went quietly to bed, the doctor
declaring that his previous night's doings would prevent any more that
night. So I only had one more gaze at all aunt's magnificent beauties,
which had a never failing effect on my excitable weapon, and which she
sent away when her light was put out in a perfectly fit state for the
work that awaited him in my sisters' room. I came upon them sooner than
expected, and found the three rolled into one body, two gamahuching
each other, and Miss Frankland's clitoris in Mary's bum-hole. For a
wonder they did not hear me as I gently opened the door, and I
patiently waited till the lascivious crisis brought down a delicious
spend from them all. When clapping my hands applaudingly, I cried--

"Bravo! bravo! encore!"

I was so far glad, for to confess the truth the pace was telling, and I
began to require more and more of the rod. However, we had but this and
the next night at our disposal, and the knowledge that we must soon
cease our delicious orgies nerved us all to increased efforts.

Again our passions raged furiously, and broke out in spurts of foaming
sperm. Every desire our lascivious lubricity could suggest was carried
out to increase our pleasures or renew our exhausted resources, until
time warned us again to separate.

The next day there was no school time--it was spent in packing and
preparing for departure. My poor mother took it much to heart--she was
a most affectionate creature, as innocent as a babe. I often wondered
where we three got all the natural wantonness of our characters, for
mamma had nothing of it. I suppose it must have come from our
grandparents, as aunt had it in the fullest degree, and was almost the
equal of the adorable Miss Frankland, who only excelled her in having
Greek blood in her veins, which, doubtless, accounted for the extreme
heat of her lubricity. Some day I will recount the chief events of her
romantic story, which she herself, in after-time, fully related to me.
The day was a sad one for us all, even sadder than the next, the actual
day of departure. As often happens, the anticipation of evils is
greater than the reality when they come.

That night my aunt and the doctor had another whipping bout, but this
time she only succeeded in getting a single course out of the doctor.
As before when all was over, I slipped away to pass the last delicious
night with the dear creatures with whom I had now carried on the most
rapturous orgies for more than two years past. My sisters were rapidly
developing into remarkably handsome fine young women, especially Mary,
who, having the advantage of a year and a half over Lizzie, was
naturally more filled out and formed, although Lizzie promised in the
end to be, and in fact became, the finest woman, and had also by far
the hotter temperament of the two. We passed the night in orgies the
most refined, interspersed with tears of regret at our parting, and
soft endearments leading to perfect furies of lubricity, until I was
nearly fainting with exhaustion. We tore ourselves asunder with
difficulty, and the three angelic creatures held their door open, and
with streaming eyes watched my receding form; twice, on looking back, I
could not help returning again and again to throw myself into their
arms for a last loving embrace; but like all things human it came to an
end, and I reached my bed and sobbed myself to sleep.

It is needless to dwell on our parting next day. My mother accompanied
us to the town where we were to take a coach. It drove up. My poor
mother could hardly utter her blessing and farewell, and I saw the
tears coursing down her venerable cheeks as she waved her handkerchief
before the coach turned the corner that shut us from her view. Of
course my heart was full, whose could be otherwise when quitting home
for the first time. My aunt put her arm round my waist, and laid my
head on her ample bosom, and comforted me as well as she could; but a
full heart must vent itself. Fortunately, we had the inside all to
ourselves. My aunt was very tender, and so was the doctor. I soon
sobbed myself to sleep; even in the bitter grief of the moment I had
some slight comfort in the idea of pressing those glorious orbs. My
aunt frequently kissed me, and I returned it with full pouting lips,
which I fancied rather pleased her. I slept until the coach stopped for
supper, ate heartily, and, as may be supposed after my late week of
hard work, soon again slept like a top.

I did not awake until it was broad daylight, and, like all heavy
sleepers, was awake and sensible of what was going on before opening my
eyes. I became conscious that a hand was gently pressing and apparently
taking the size of my standing pego, which the pressure of water on my
bladder had occasioned to be in an erection of the hardest. I lay quite
still, continuing to breathe heavily, but unable to prevent sundry
throbbings of my pego, occasioned by the soft hand of my aunt, who was
gently following its form from the outside of my trousers. It appeared
she had only just commenced her manipulations, not having previously
observed the bulging out of its large dimensions under my trousers. She
pressed her knee against that of the doctor opposite, who I presume,
was dozing off, and in a whisper I heard her draw his attention to my
extraordinary development.

"Feel it, my dear, but very gently, so as not to waken him, it is the
largest prick I have ever felt, and altogether beats the late Captain
of Grenadiers you used to be so jealous of."

The doctor did feel, and I think aunt would have unbuttoned my
trousers, had not the coach suddenly pulled up at the inn we were to
breakfast at. So perforce they shook me up. I acted the suddenly
awakened sleeper very well. As soon as we were out of the coach, I
whispered to the doctor--

"If you please, uncle, I want to piddle very bad."

"Come here, my dear boy."

And taking me behind some wagons in the innyard, where we would not be
seen, he said--

"Here, we can both piss down this grating."

And, forsooth, to encourage me, pulled out his own standing pego. I saw
what he wanted, and out with my own in all its length and strength.

"Good heavens, Charles, what an immense cock you have got--does it
often stand like that?"

"Yes, uncle, every morning it hurts me so until I piddle--it gets worse
and worse, and bigger and bigger--it was not half so big a year ago. I
don't know what to do to cure myself of this hardness, which is very
painful."

"Ah, well, I must speak to your aunt, perhaps she can help you. Have
you ever spoken to anybody else about it?"

"Oh, dear no! I should have been quite ashamed; but when I saw you also
had the same hardness, I was very glad to ask your advice, dear uncle."

"Quite right. Always consult me about that part of your body, whatever
you may feel."

We breakfasted, and I could see, on regaining the coach, that uncle and
aunt had a satisfactory exchange of words on the subject. We got to the
Rectory in Kent in time for dinner, at which I was the object of great
and devoted attention of both, especially of my aunt.

Our previous long journey made an early retreat to bed a necessity for
all of us. They both conducted me with much _empressement_ to my
bedroom, a very comfortable one, having a communication at one end with
a corridor, and, on the right-hand side entering, another door
communicating with my uncle's dressing-and bath-room, and these opening
into their bedroom, which had a similar dressing-room on the other side
fitted up with wardrobes for female gear, and dedicated to my aunt's
sole use. I was left to a quiet night's rest, which I most thoroughly
enjoyed, and slept profoundly until late in the morning. I was awakened
by my uncle drawing all the clothes off me. Of course, I was rampant,
as usual. He gazed for a moment or two without speaking at my enormous
cock at full stand. He then said it was nine o'clock, and breakfast was
ready, that he had not liked to disturb me sooner, as I was in so sound
a slumber, but now it was time for me to get up.

"I see," he added, "that your doodle, as you call it, has got the
hardness you spoke of yesterday."

Then he laid hold of it, and gently squeezed it--it filled his grasp.
He evidently enjoyed the pleasure of handling it, but contented himself
with saying that my aunt must see to giving me some remedy the next
day, when she should come and inspect it in the morning, so as to see
how hard it was, and how it hurt me.

I replied that it would be very kind of aunt, but what would she think
of my showing my doodle to her; mamma had told me, when I slept in her
room, always to piddle in a corner, and never let anyone see it.

He laughed at my apparent simplicity, and said--

"Your mamma was quite right as to people in general, but it is quite a
different thing with your aunt, whose close relationship authorises her
doing what she can to relieve her dear nephew, in whom we both take
such an interest; besides, I suppose your mamma never saw it in this
size and hardness?"

He was gently handling it all the time of our conversation.

"Oh, no! mamma never saw it but at night, when it was quite shrunk up,
and that is nearly a year ago, when I used to sleep in her room; it is
since then it has grown so large and hurts so much, and throbs so
violently as it is doing now in your hand. It makes me feel so queer,
dear uncle, and I shall be so much obliged to dear auntie if she will
but give me a remedy to relieve the pain I suffer."

He laughed again, and said--

"I shall speak to your aunt, and we shall see--we shall see; but get up
now, we shall find your aunt waiting for us. So make haste and dress;
come down stairs, you will find us in the dining-room."

He left me, and I could hear him laughing to himself, as he walked
along the corridor, doubtless at my apparent innocent simplicity. I saw
at once that I should be called upon to show myself a man next day; but
I already felt the advantage of the advice both my admirable mistresses
had given me, as to making all new conquests believe that they had my
first fruits. I determined to adhere to the game I was playing, and I
foresaw that the pleasure of supporting such a thing would greatly
enhance the delight aunt would naturally take in being fucked by my
really monstrous cock. I was soon down to breakfast, and was most
warmly embraced by my gloriously beautiful aunt, who, in a graceful
dishabille, looked more charming than ever. She hugged me for more than
a minute in her arms, and devoured me with kisses. I have no doubt the
doctor had recounted our interview, and by the sparkle of her eye, and
the flush on her face, as she so closely embraced me, she showed that
already her passions were excited, and she was longing for the hour in
which she could indulge them. However, all that day, they were kept
under restraint. The doctor had some parish business to attend to, and
aunt leaving me for an hour after breakfast, while she attended to some
necessary household affairs, afterwards took me all over the house and
grounds, and then we had a walk through the village. The house was one
of those snug rectory houses situated in their own grounds which abound
in England, but few have so glorious a prospect as was seen from the
front of the house. Leeds, in Kent, is situated on the ridge of hills
running east and west, and commanding views over the rich and beautiful
weald of Kent. The rectory faced the south, and the ground falling
rapidly beyond the garden left a splendid landscape in full view.
Although close to the village and the church, both were planted out by
a thick belt of evergreen trees, which extended to north and east,
sheltering the house and grounds from every adverse wind. The house
itself was very commodious, but unassuming. The south front had a large
projecting half-circle, with three windows in it and a window on each
side of the half-circle; this formed the drawing-room below and my
uncle's bedroom, and two dressing-rooms above. To the right, looking at
the house, there was a wing with an open-arched passage leading to a
greenhouse and vinery, while above ran a suite of three rooms, each
with one good-sized window overlooking the garden. These were the three
rooms kept for the same number of young gentlemen who might be taken in
for preparation for the University--a number the doctor never exceeded.
Of these rooms I was at present the only occupant. They were built so
as to be shut off from all the rest of the house by a door on the
landing, leading into the corridor, from which a door communicated with
the doctor's dressing-room, and with each of the three rooms. At the
end was a water-closet for general use. I have already mentioned the
first of these rooms had a second door of communication with the
doctor's dressing-room, and this was appropriated to me. Below these
rooms, but looking north, and communicating with the village by a
covered way and having a playground into which it looked, was the
school-room, taking up about half the space of the rooms above. Beyond
the covered way to the village was a quiet garden square, into which
the doctor's study looked. This study was separated by a passage from
the school-room, and had double baize doors both on the house and
school-room sides. It was in fact the doctor's sanctum sanctorum, of
which more will be told in the sequel. In this manner the school-room
part of the house was quite shut off from the rest, and was nowhere
overlooked. To return to the habitable part. The west front contained a
small library, opening from the drawing-room, and beyond a comfortable
dining-room, communicating with the kitchen and offices, which
overlooked the courtyard of the entrance to the house, above these were
the domestics' bedrooms, &c. The entrance was from the north into a
handsome entrance-hall, with a good broad staircase leading to the
upper landing, which, turning westward, led to three extra bedrooms
above the library and dining-room. It was thus a very convenient house
and well-adapted for a clergyman adding scholastic duties to his other
ministrations. I forgot to say that the first bedroom, in the west
wing, had a door of communication with my aunt's dressing-room, which I
afterwards found had often served for amorous propensities by making it
the bedroom of some favoured lover. The grounds were charmingly laid
out with a profusion of flowers. There was a perfectly shaded walk in
the east shrubbery leading from the greenhouse down to a most charming
summer house overlooking the very finest prospect, and perfectly secure
from all observation. It was furnished very appropriately for amorous
purposes, the couches being low, broad, and with patent
spring-cushions. In the sequel it was the scene of many a bout of
lubricity. My aunt took me through all that I have described. When we
arrived at the summer house, I could see that it was with difficulty
she restrained her great desire to possess me; I would most willingly
have rushed into her longing arms, and fucked her to her heart's
content, but prudence withheld. I had undertaken to act a part, and
must go through with it. No doubt aunt was withheld by a similar
motive. She and the doctor had resolved that nothing to alarm my
modesty-heaven save the mark!--was to be attempted till the next
morning. So with a deep sigh she led me away from the summer house into
the village, where we met the doctor, and returned to luncheon. After
luncheon the doctor took me for a walk again through the picturesque
village along the ridge of hills, to enjoy the beautiful views of Leeds
Castle, the doctor giving me very many interesting historical details
connected with it. After a most pleasant and lengthened walk we
returned in time to dress for dinner. I found that one of the rules of
the house was that no matter, whether alone or with company the doctor
invariably insisted on regular evening costume at dinner-time. This has
many advantages. In the first place it gives at least half an hour's
occupation, an object in itself worth something to persons living in
the country, and then it gives a _cachet_ or rather _chic_ to your
dinner party, however small it may be, and is in itself a certain
amount of restraint on excessive exuberance of spirits, and thus may be
considered as a disciplinary element of education tending to keep up
that reserve and self-restraint characteristic of Englishmen.

Beyond a marked attention to me in every way, our dinner and evening
passed without anything worthy of record. I was evidently high in their
favour, probably for the reason that both began to have great hopes
that I would serve their purpose in every way. We retired early to
rest, and I thus obtained three nights of uninterrupted rest,
recruiting me after all the excesses I had indulged in before quitting
home. It was so far fortunate, that I was thus ready to satisfy the
strong passions of my aunt, who was insatiable when once her lust was
let loose. I awoke earlier than on the previous morning, and shortly
afterwards, hearing a movement in the doctor's dressing-room, I feigned
sleep. It was as I expected, the doctor coming to me in company with my
aunt. They approached my bedside. I had laid myself on my back
purposely to allow the thin summer-covering to be lifted up and bulged
out by my stiff-standing pego. I heard the doctor whisper to aunt, to
draw her attention to it. She gently slipped her hand under the
clothes, and grasped it in her soft fat fingers, upon which it throbbed
so violently that I thought it politic to waken at once. My aunt was
not at all put out, but held it still in her hand with a gentle
pressure. She said--

"My dear nephew, your uncle has brought me to see if I cannot relieve
the extreme hardness and pain you feel in this immense thing of yours.
Let me see it."

She now threw off the coverlet, and brought to light my large prick in
all the glory of the stiffest stand.

"My word! what a monster!" she cried.

Her eyes sparkled, and her face flushed as the sight met her full gaze.
The doctor approached, and also handled it with evident delight.

"My dear, will you be able to put it into your natural warm bath? It is
so very large!"

"Oh! I have not the slightest doubt but that I shall be able to soothe
and deliver it of all pain--poor fellow, how it throbs! Does it hurt
much, dear Charles?"

"Oh, yes; your hand seems to make it even harder than before, but, at
the same time makes me feel so very queer, as if I were going to faint.
Do relieve me, dear auntie, the doctor says you can if you like."

"I will do so, certainly, my dear boy; but the method is a great
secret, known only to your uncle and myself; and you must assure me you
will never mention it to any one, or tell how I cured you. It is only
my strong affection for you that makes me anxious to do anything I can
to relieve you. Do you promise to be discreet?"

"My dear aunt, you may be sure I shall be too much obliged to you ever
to think of revealing your great kindness. Do, pray, do it at once; I
feel so queer, and I am bursting with pain."

"Well, then, make room for me beside you, and I shall lie down; the
doctor will cover us up, and I shall soon reduce the stiffness."

She got into bed, lay down on her back, pulled the sheet over us,
laying bare her splendid belly, and, at the same time, opening her
magnificent limbs and desiring me to get upon her, telling me she had a
sheath in her body, which, when my hard doodle was put within, would
soon relieve it of its stiffness. I got awkwardly upon her. She seized
my standing prick, and placing its knob between the already very moist
lips, told me to push it in as far as it would go. It glided into its
delicious sheath up to the cod piece in a moment.

"Oh, heavens!" I cried, "how nice! Dear, dear, auntie, what shall I do
now, I feel as if I were going to die."

My apparent innocence seemed to add to her pleasure. She threw the
sheet that covered us on one side, and with arms and legs clasped round
my body, begged me to move my bottom up and down, so as to make my
doodle go in and out. I followed her directions, and she seconded me
with rare art, squeezing my instrument with wonderful pressures as I
withdrew and she retired, to meet again the up and down shock with the
most lascivious delight. I felt the hand of the doctor embracing my
testicles and gently pressing them. I became aware that the crisis was
approaching, and shoved home with a cry of rapture, but remembering my
part, I exclaimed--

"Oh, I am dying, dear aunt; oh! oh! stop! stop! I--can't--can't--bear
it." I sank away, but could hear aunt murmuring--

"Dear, darling, delicious boy, I never had such a glorious prick in me,
or a better fuck before. I fear the dear child has fainted from the
excess of pleasure, and the newness of the sensation, but his glorious
prick still throbs deliciously within me--only feel its root, doctor,
how stiff it is."

I felt the doctor grasping it, making it throb violently as he did so.

"The dear boy is as stiff as ever. You will get another fuck out of him
the moment he comes to himself. I am glad of that, for it is delightful
to see you at it, especially with so splendid a prick operating upon
you--it is the greatest treat you have ever given me in that way."

"I don't wonder at that, my dear, for I never met with such a fine
prick in my life before, and little thought my nephew could have had
such a splendid one in his trousers when we first saw him. Oh, I am
lewder than ever, and am spen--spen--spending. Oh!--oh!"

And she poured down another copious hot flow on my enraptured prick. I
let her revel in the ecstasies of her second lascivious discharge until
I found that her libidinous passions were again excited and longing for
more active operations. I pretended not to know where I was, and began
a faltering--

"Oh, where am I? What has happened? I have been in paradise!"

Lifting up my head, I apparently recognised aunt in surprise--

"Oh, dear; how came I here? Oh, remember, auntie, you promised to
relieve my hardness, and it seemed so nice, but I feel it is harder
than ever; you will try and relieve me again, won't you, dear auntie?"

"Certainly, my dear nephew, you must do as you did at first, move in
and out, and I shall second you; and perhaps we shall succeed this time
better than before."

Of course, I was less gauche, and she more energetic. I felt the doctor
insert a moistened finger up my fundament, and move it in unison with
our thrusts. Aunt cried out to me to go on faster and faster, and we
soon came to the grand crisis, dying away together in sobs and sighs of
delighted enjoyment. I again sank on her noble panting bosom, really
overcome with the rapture-giving delights of that most delicious cunt.
On lifting my love-humid eyes to the face of my aunt, she seized my
head in both hands, and drew my lips to her in a long, long kiss of
satisfied lust, and thrust her tongue into my mouth, which I
immediately sucked. She then begged me to give her mine. After
tongueing together for a minute or two she asked if my doodle was in
less pain, and if its hardness was reduced.

"A little, dear auntie, but I feel it is getting hard again--you must
try once more, if you please--oh! it is so nice!"

And my prick throbbed up and stiffened to prove the truth of my words.
But the doctor here interrupted us by saying that he must have his own
stiffness reduced, at the same time presenting his really fine prick at
full stand before our faces.

"You must get up, my dear boy, and your aunt will allay your new
hardness in another way, in which she will be able to relieve both our
hardnesses together."

Reluctantly I rose, withdrawing my reeking prick at more than half
stand. Looking down as I rose on the truly large and magnificent
foaming gash from which I had just withdrawn, I cried--

"Oh, dear aunt, what a wonderful sight it is; I must kiss it for the
efforts it has made to relieve me."

I threw my head down upon it, kissed it, licked its wide open lips all
foaming with fuck as they were, thrusting my tongue in as far as it
would go. This evidently gave aunt great delight. But the doctor drew
me off, told me to lie down on my back, and made aunt straddle over me.
She took hold of my now completely standing prick, bent it back, and
directing it aright, sank upon it until her ample bush of hair lay
crushed on mine. She rose up and down two or three times in a slow
delicious movement, and then bending forward, glued her lips to mine
while I threw my arms round her glorious body.

I could feel the doctor getting up between my legs on his knees, and
then felt his prick was rubbing against the lips of the cunt fully
distended round my large pego, doubtless for the purpose of lubricating
it before thrusting it into aunt's magnificent backside. I felt the
rubbing of his prick against mine through the thin partition, as he
glided slowly up into her entrails. We then began our joint movements,
but aunt beat us both, and spent twice before joining in our final
finish, which was ushered in by loud cries of delight from all three as
the death-like ecstasy seized us, and we sank in that half unconscious
state of supreme bliss. It was some time before any of us spoke a word.
The doctor rose first, and without drawing his prick from the delicious
orifice in which it had been engulphed, showed by the way it hung down
its pendant head, that aunt had at all events allayed its stiffness. He
desired aunt to rise also, but I felt by her throbbing cunt, and the
pressure she put on my prick, as she rose from it, so that it came out
with a loud flop, that she would fain once more have done me the
service of allaying any stiffness that might re-arise. However, it was
much limper than before, although still of a goodly thickness. When she
got on her legs, she stooped forward, kissed it, took it in her mouth,
and most lovingly sucked it, saying how delighted she would be to
relieve me whenever it was troublesome. They begged me to get up and
dress, and we should meet at breakfast. They then withdrew, to complete
their own toilets. I lay for some minutes in the dreamy delight of
thinking over the delicious event that had just taken place, and amused
at the last remark of my aunt, which seemed to infer that she thought I
was innocent of the real meaning of the performances that had just
taken place. I determined to act as if it were so.

We met at breakfast, aunt kissed me most lovingly. I thanked her for
her great kindness in relieving me from pain in so delicious a manner,
and told her I could not help loving her more than I had ever loved any
one before, and said I hoped she would kindly relieve me every morning,
for I always suffered at that time from the painful hardness, though I
should never be sorry for that, as long as she would so kindly allay
it. I put my hands quite in a childish way on each cheek, and held up
my mouth for a kiss, which was given to me in the lewdest way. She
called me her dear boy, and told me that she would always help me as
she had done that morning, as long as she found I was discreet, and
never told how she did so. You may be sure that my promises were most
earnestly reiterated. So we kissed again, and sat down to an excellent
breakfast with sharpened appetites from our early exercise, and did
full justice to the viands set before us. The doctor gave me a book of
history, and desired me to read for a couple of hours, and said that at
luncheon we would talk over the subject of my reading. I studied
attentively for the time prescribed, and then aunt came to ask me to
walk in the grounds with her. Insensibly or not, she led me to the
summer house, and sat down on a low ottoman. I sat down beside her. She
drew me to her, kissed me, and clasped me to her bosom, murmuring terms
of endearment, and pressing me to her glorious bubbles. Of course, my
unruly member fired up at once. To prevent her imagining it was
lasciviousness that prompted me, I said--

"Oh, my dear aunt, I do so want to piddle, my doodle at once gets as
hard as wood if I at all restrain the inclination to do so, just feel
how stiff it has become; will you let me go and piddle?"

"My dear boy, I will go with you, and unbutton your trousers for you."

We went among the trees. Her busy fingers undid my trousers, and helped
to bring forward my lordly cock in its glory. Fortunately, I did want
to piddle, and aunt held it up as I did so, her eyes sparkling with
lust as she handled it, and her face flushed with her excited passions.
She remarked what an astonishing size it was, gently rubbing it up and
down. Of course, it became more rampant than ever. Throwing my arms
round her stooping neck, I asked her if she could not again relieve the
excessive hardness and pain it was in.

"To be sure, my dear boy. Come here again into the summer house, where
we cannot be observed."

We entered. She put a cushion on the floor for my knees, threw herself
on her back, and lifted all her petticoats well over her belly,
exposing her very hairy cunt, and its splendid pinky gash, already
moist from her excitement. I threw myself on my knees, and stooping
down, said--

"I must kiss the dear reliever of my pains."

I kissed and tongued, until my aunt begged me to raise my body, and
come upon her, that she might quickly put me out of pain. I rose, and
slipped my stiff member up to the hilt in her longing cunt almost
taking away her breath by the suddenness and completeness of the
insertion. Her legs and arms were round me in a moment, and at it we
went hammer and tongs, until we quickly spent with cries of delight,
and sank in momentary oblivion, soon to recover our full sensations,
and dash again on passion's furious course, this time aunt pouring down
her hot boiling discharge before me, and again when she felt the
torrent of my sperm shooting up to the top of her womb. Our final
crisis was even more ecstatic than the first time, and we lay longer in
the soft languor of the after-sensations. The excessively voluptuous
nature of her inward pressures soon re-illuminated all my libidinous
desires, and refired my prick with renewed force. We soaked for a short
time, each indulging in the delicious inward throbbings, until our lust
could stand no longer such mere preliminary work, and stimulated anew,
we rushed with freshened passions into the fray. The fiery nature of my
lustful aunt paid down two tributes to Priapus to my one. This time our
sensations were so ecstatic in spending that we really lost all
consciousness, and lay for long locked in the closest embrace. I could
feel that we were both becoming re-excited, but my aunt begged me to
rise, saying that was enough for the present, the stiffness was
allayed, and my weight was too much for her to endure longer. I rose,
but again buried my face in the wide gash of that glorious cunt, and
before rising completely, I licked up the delicious foam, and even
ventured to give, as it were, an accidental lick to her little knob of
a clitoris, for she was not much distinguished in that way; she
shivered with excitement, when I touched it, and even pressed my head
down upon it, when she felt the pleasure pressure.

"My dear boy, what exquisite delight you give me! Continue for a little
to keep moving your tongue on that hard projection."

I did so. Her splendid backside wriggled below in the fullest
enjoyment. She rapidly came to the ecstatic ending, nearly thrusting my
whole face into her vast orbit, and spurting out a very torrent of
sperm, all over my face and neck. She seized me by the shoulders to
draw me up, that she might kiss me. My prick had regained its full
vigour, and could not fail to slip in of itself into that most
lascivious and gaping cunt when it reached the entrance. My aunt
started at such an unexpected result, but was too much gratified to
hesitate for an instant. Throwing legs and arms around me, her supple
loins were in immediate action. I myself was equally in a state of wild
lubricity, so that our course was even more rapid than at first, and we
both spent and sank together in the delicious after-languor as soon as
the ecstatic joy of the first rush of the exquisite discharge was over.
My aunt, who could not but be most highly gratified, still kept up the
appearance of relieving me, she desired me to rise, and said we must
go, as luncheon time was at hand.

"But, my darling nephew, you must yourself endeavour to keep down your
hardness, and not allow it to become stiff so often--you will injure me
with your violence."

"Oh, my darling aunt, you give me relief with such exquisite pleasure
that my doodle seems to harden only for the purpose of your relieving
it--see how it is again bulging out of my trousers," for she had
buttoned it up. She put her hand upon it, and squeezed it, but said,
with a deep sigh--

"Come along, come along, or I do not know what might happen."

She drew me away, but by the manner in which she squeezed my arm, I
could feel she was herself still greatly excited. Her prudence alone
enabled her to resist further indulgence, as she seemed to think I was
still unaware of the real nature of our proceedings. We found the
doctor waiting for us at the luncheon table. He guessed by the flushed
face of my aunt the nature of our late employment, and asked if I had
been again troubled with my unnatural hardness.

"Yes, poor fellow," said my aunt, "it appears that whenever he wants to
piddle, and cannot do so at once, it troubles him in that way, and I
have had some difficulty in allaying it. I succeeded at last, but I
have told my dear nephew that he must endeavour himself to restrain it
in the daytime, as it is not always in my power to relieve him."

"Quite right, my love; my dear Charles, you must endeavour to follow
the wishes of your of aunt."

Of course I promised, and with such a look of innocence that I could
see they exchanged smiles at it. We sat down to luncheon. Afterwards
the doctor, seating himself by my side, began a conversation on the
historical subject I had been studying. Our conversation became really
very interesting. The doctor was a man of great erudition, and of
varied knowledge, and had a manner, special to himself, of making
almost any subject most interesting. Hours flew by, and it was only
when aunt entered about five o'clock, to take a cup of tea, as was her
wont, that we were aware how time had flown. The doctor praised my
knowledge of history, and the pertinency of the questions I had put to
him, in a manner highly flattering to me, and I could see that I had
risen much in his estimation, quite apart from any erotic influences.
He proposed a constitutional walk before dinner, and much interested me
by his instructive conversation during it. Our dinner was most
agreeable. In the drawing-room aunt, a most admirable performer on the
piano, enchanted us with her skill and taste. The doctor challenged me
to a game at chess. He was, of course, far superior to me, but he
praised my style of play, saying I should become a great proficient
with time and practice. We retired, as usual, about half-past ten, the
doctor seeing me to my room, and promising to bring aunt in the morning
to see if I was still troubled with that painful hardness. I thanked
him warmly, but with much simplicity, as if quite unaware of the real
nature of the application of the remedy. He left me to my repose. The
quiet nights of sound sleep made my day efforts pass off without any
exhaustion, and I felt my erotic powers increasing in force.

I slept soundly, and so long that I was only awakened by the caressing
hand of my aunt on my stiff-standing pego. She had gently lifted off
all the coverings, and I lay quite exposed to eye and touch.

"Oh, my darling aunt! how kind of you to come this early to relieve
that troublesome thing."

I held out my arms. She stooped down to kiss me. I clasped her to my
bosom. Our lips met, and our tongues darted fiery lust into our bodies.
She threw herself down by my side, I was onto her in a moment. The
doctor took hold of my pego, and guided it into the delicious orbit of
his wife. Dear aunt begged me to do as I did yesterday, if I wanted
relief. Our action became fast and furious. Her legs and arms wound
round me in loving pressures. Her active backside wriggled in delight.
The doctor had introduced first one finger, and then two, into my
fundament, and added greatly to the fury of my lust, so that I spent in
an agony of pleasure, as quickly as the fiery lust of my aunt produced
her hot and plentiful discharge. I sank on her charming bosom, panting
with the force and fury of our coition, but like all very fast fucking,
my virile member hardly flinched from his first vigour, and a very few
of aunt's exquisitely delicious internal pressures sufficed to bring
him up to the fullest stiffness. We were about to plunge again with
renewed ardour into all love's wildest excitement, but the doctor
insisted upon our first changing places, that he, too, might have his
hardness allayed. Our change of position was instantly accomplished,
and dear aunt, after impaling herself on my upright member, sank on my
bosom and was clasped in my longing arms. The doctor scrambled up
behind her, and lost no time in sheathing himself in her fine and
beautiful bottom-hole, and then we ran a double course of delight, dear
aunt taking the lead as usual, and deluging us with her hot and
delicious discharges before we were ready to pour into her a double
dose of delight, which again made her spend with fury and cries of
rapturous enjoyment, in which we both joined, and then sank in love's
exquisite inanimation. On recovering ourselves the doctor withdrew, but
I was already as stiff as before. Aunt began a most effective and
delicious movement above me, which soon brought on another grand
finale, and we died away in mutual delight. I could feel that the
doctor was gently handling my cods, both during and after our last
combat. When, by our mutual throbbings, he saw that we were about to
become fit to enter on another career, he begged his wife to rise from
off me. But the idea of losing her and her extra pressures made my
prick immediately resume an erect position, so that when she rose from
off it, it was shown in a completely standing state.

"What! again, Charles?" said the doctor. "Your member is sadly unruly.
My dear, you must again try to allay it, but put yourself this time on
your knees, and we shall see if that position be better adapted for the
purpose of relieving this immense object."

He was gently and admiringly handling it all the time. His wife was
quite aware of his object, and, indeed, so was I. Our last bout had
helped to restiffen his prick, and although not yet quite rampant, it
was evident that when my bottom was in full view, and so placed as to
be got at with facility, it would be quite as stiff as necessary. When
his wife had knelt down, and by lowering her head had exposed all the
wondrous grandeur of the most superb backside that ever met my eyes, my
prick bounded with joy. The doctor still grasping it, and feeling it
throb so wildly, saw that his game was sure. He pointed out all the
beauty of aunt's second orbit of love, and told me it was in that he
had allayed his own hardness, and as the other orifice had not
succeeded in quieting me, he recommended my entering within the narrow
path of ecstasy. I professed no surprise, but seemed to take it quite
as a matter of course in the simplest innocence of manner. Uncle
continued to handle my tool as I mounted on my knees behind aunt.
Guiding the almost bursting weapon into the delicious cunt in the first
place, to be lubricated there, and then telling me to withdraw it, he
directed it to the smaller orifice, and desired me to push gently and
smoothly in. It glided in slowly up to the meeting of my belly against
the enormous buttocks of that sublime backside. There I paused for a
minute or two within the throbbing sheath. Aunt had pushed her bottom
well out, and by the action of apparently voiding, had facilitated the
entrance. She winced once or twice, but on the whole, as she told me
afterwards, took in my enormous tool with less difficulty than she
expected. After a few slow movements, during with I caressed and
devoured with admiration the glorious orbs beneath my dearest gaze,
uncle desired me to lean forward and embrace my aunt's splendid bosom.
As soon as I did this, and began slowly to thrust in and out of the
delicious sheath in which I was so rapturously engulphed, I felt
uncle's hands wandering over my buttocks, followed by the introduction
of two fingers into my anus. My throbbings on them showed how much he
pleased me. He asked if it added to the pleasure I was enjoying.

"Oh, yes, dear uncle, immensely."

"Then," said he, "as I, too, am suffering from hardness, I shall try to
allay it in your bottom, as you are doing in my wife's; don't be
afraid, if I hurt you I shall stop."

"Do just as you like, dear uncle, both you and aunt are so kind as to
do all you can to relieve my pain, and I should be very ungrateful if I
did not do all in my power to relieve you."

"You are a darling boy, and I shall love you dearly."

He knelt behind me, and spitting on his cock, presented it at my
bum-hole, and pressing gently forward, soon sheathed it to the utmost
depth. He did not hurt me at all, as I was too much used to be dildoed
there to have felt any difficulty of approach, but I deemed it politic
to beg him to be gentle from time to time, as if it were a virgin vale
he was entering. He fancied as much, and that was just as good. When
once he was fully within, after a few throbs, which were felt most
deliciously on his delighted prick, we proceeded to more active work.
Aunt, in the meantime, by more pressure on my prick, and by frigging
her own clitoris, which I was quite aware she was doing, had spent
profusely; and, as the case with all the mucous membranes of the body
which sympathise with the cunt's discharge, her bottom-hole became
quite moist and deliciously heated. The doctor and I then went at it
with fiery force, and soon gave down nature's tribute, and mutually
poured a flood of sperm up the entrails we were respectively
belabouring.

We lay for some time after in all the luxury of soaking in the
delicious apertures. I fell to nothing, and reluctantly withdrew. I had
again become rampant, and keeping myself more erect, with a hand on
either immense hip, I devoured with greedy eyes all the glories beneath
my gaze. Fired by such a truly magnificent sight as these huge buttocks
were, when in an entire state of wriggle, I again spent with cries of
agonised delight, and in all the ecstasy of fully satiated lust, sank
almost insensible on the broad and beautiful back of my aunt, who
herself had spent several times, squealing like a rabbit, and
eventually falling flat on her belly overcome with exhausted lust,
drawing me with her still held a willing prisoner in her glorious and
exquisite bottom-hole. We lay entranced for some time, until the
doctor, who, during our last bout, had purified himself, told us we
must now get up. With difficulty I tore myself from out of that
delicious sheath, and rose with my cock at last pendant. The doctor
congratulated me on the success of the last move. His wife lay still
panting with all the delight of satisfied desire, and we had to help
her up. She threw herself into my arms, and hugged me close to her
heaving bosom, kissed me tenderly, and hoped she had relieved me of all
pain. I was her own darling boy, and she would always be truly happy in
relieving me of that inconvenience whenever it troubled me. I was
internally amused at their continuing to keep up this idea, but I
humoured them, and appeared the most innocent simpleton,
notwithstanding all that had occurred. The day passed much as the
previous one. After two hours' reading, aunt again proposed a walk,
which, of course, ended at the summer house, where again a pressure of
water brought on the painful hardness, which aunt succeeded in allaying
after four most exquisite bouts of love, varied by a thoroughly good
double gamahuche between the last two acts. Aunt must have spent at
least ten times, and appeared thoroughly contented, but continued to
attribute it to her gratification at having relieved me of my painful
hardness. Again I passed hours in instructive conversation with my
learned uncle and after a similar evening to the last, retired at our
usual hour.

Next morning I was awakened by uncle alone, who told me that my aunt
was somewhat poorly, and could not come.

"I am sorry it is so, for this little fellow is as hard as usual."

"Oh, I am so sorry dear aunt is poorly, both on her account and my own.
What shall I do, dear uncle? It is so hard and painful."

"Well, my dear boy, I must try to allay it myself. I love you too
dearly to leave you in this state. I am not so good at allaying this
painful attack as your aunt, but as you know you were successfully
relieved in her bottom, and I in yours, yesterday, we shall try to-day
if I can accommodate this huge fellow, of which I have some doubts.
Take off your night-shirt as I do mine, it will be more commodious."

In an instant we were both stark naked. We threw ourselves into one
another's arms and lovingly kissed each other. Our tongues met in a
delicious sucking--our hands took each a prick, and we had a most
exciting and loving embrace. The doctor then took my prick in his
mouth, sucked it a little, and well lubricated it with his saliva,
spitting on the lower part of the shaft and rubbing it round with his
finger. He then knelt, and presenting a really beautifully rounded
bottom of the fairest hue, he pushed it out, showing a light brown
corrugated bum-hole, most tempting to look at. He desired me to wet it
with my saliva. I stooped and applied my mouth and tongue to the
appetising morsel, and thrust my tongue in as far as it would go--to
his evident delight, leaving it well moistened. I then brought my prick
to the entrance; he shoved his backside well out, and acted as if he
desired to void himself. A firm but slow pressure quickly engulphed the
knob. The doctor desired me to rest a moment, and drop some spittle on
the shaft. Again it was firmly pushed forward, and gradually it won its
way up, the belly against the buttocks, without much flinching on the
doctor's part. After resting a while, he desired me to bend forward and
feel his cock while I should move backwards and forwards in the sheath
until I was relieved. I had a most delicious fuck. The doctor's
bottom-hole was quite hot internally. His pressures with the sphincter
were exquisitely delicious, and he had acquired the charming side
wriggle so exquisite in quim fucking. Of course this was an old letch
of his, which his position as schoolmaster had given him so many
opportunities of indulging in, and the still greater pleasure of
initiating others in it. At this very moment he was delighted with his
delusion about me in that respect. Of course I never undeceived him,
and he had all the extra delight of the idea. My younger and hotter
passions had made me spend before he could; so after indulging me in a
delicious soak after the ecstasy of the discharge, he drew my attention
to the rigidity of his own member, which, he said, I must now allow him
to allay in turn.

"Of course, my dear uncle, I am too sensible of your great kindness in
relieving me to hesitate about giving you the same relief."

I now withdrew. He rose for a mutual loving embrace, and then I
stooped, and taking his fine milk-white prick with its lovely vermilion
knob into my mouth, most deliciously sucked it, making my tongue tickle
the entrance to the urethra, to his infinite delight. He murmured out
soft terms of endearment; then getting exceedingly lewd, he begged me
to kneel down as he had done. He then kissed and gamahuched my
bottom-hole, making my prick stand and throb again with delight. Then
spitting on his prick he quickly sheathed it in my glowing backside.
After pausing to enjoy the exquisite pleasure of complete insertion, he
stooped, and passing a hand round my belly laid hold of my
stiff-standing prick with one hand, while he gently pressed the
ballocks with the other. We then proceeded to active measures. He soon
made me spend, which I did with loud cries of delight, giving him the
most exquisite pleasure by the pressures the act of spending made me
exercise on his pleased prick. He soon resumed his thrusts, and
eventually we both spent together in the most ecstatic joy. I sank
forward on the bed, dragging the doctor with me still imbedded in the
rapture-giving aperture of my backside. We lay long in all the
enchantment of delight. At last he withdrew completely reduced, but was
surprised to see me still in a rampant state. When I got up he took my
prick in his hand, praised its noble proportions, and again stooping,
took it in his mouth, frigging the lower shaft with one hand; he then
introduced two fingers into my bottom-hole, continued his suction and
movement on my prick in unison with the working of his fingers up my
bum-hole, and in this manner quickly produced a delicious discharge in
his mouth. I had placed my hands mechanically on his head, and I nearly
choked him as I thrust my prick halfway down his throat as I spent. He
greedily swallowed every drop, and then rising, embraced me lovingly,
telling me I had given him the greatest treat in the world, and he
loved me dearly. After this he invited me into his dressing-room, and
we both entered the bath together and mutually laved each other. Then
dressing we joined aunt at breakfast. She had not the least air _d'une
malade_, but with a sly smile hoped the doctor had proved as efficient
as herself.

"Oh, yes, my dear aunt, and I am so much obliged to both of you for
your solicitude to relieve the pain I suffer in the morning, but it
seems to me that it more frequently and more severely attacks me than
ever. I only hope I shall not tire out your kindness by such frequent
appeals to your aid."

"Oh, my darling nephew, do not imagine anything of the sort. We are but
too happy to be of any service to you."

This was accompanied with a knowing smile cast at each other, caused by
my apparent uncommon simplicity, but which they were evidently glad to
see. We sat down and enjoyed a capital breakfast.

The day passed quite as the two preceding ones. Aunt asked me to walk
with her, and as before ended by leading me to the summer house, where,
after relieving my distress symptoms, as she called them, three times,
and finding that the relief was still inefficacious, she proposed to
try if by adopting my uncle's position she could not be more
successful. So kneeling on the low ottoman, and throwing her clothes
over her back, she exposed all the glories of that most splendid
backside, and dazzled my sight with its huge magnificence and
ivory-like surface, perfectly milk-white, the pureness of which was
equally perceptible through the rich light curly hair that spread
bush-like between her legs, and wandering beautifully upwards between
the cheeks of the enormous orbs, stole round the charming corrugated
aperture that I was about to penetrate, the rosy circle of which
appeared all too small to admit my very large virile member. I threw
myself on my knees, and first licking out the wide open lips of her
wonderously fine cunt, and taking care to pay my respects to the small
knob of her indurated clitoris, I transferred all my attention to the
smaller and most charming orifice. After kissing it most lovingly, I
thrust my tongue in as far as it would go, and rolled it about to her
infinite delight, while with my left hand below I kept pressing and
frigging at her excited clitoris. She wriggled her glorious backside in
all the agonies of the delicious excitement until she spent most
profusely, actually hurting my tongue with the tightness of the squeeze
her sphincter muscle gave as she poured down her plentiful discharge
over my chin and neck. In her grand excitement, and wild with the fury
of her lust, she cried out--

"Oh! fuck me, my darling, and shove your glorious prick into my
bottom-hole. Oh! fuck--fuck--fuck me directly!"

Inwardly delighted at this natural outbreak of her passions, naming
matters by their more appropriate terms, I replied by acts, without any
words at the moment. It may well be imagined I was myself in the most
rampant fury of desire. So bringing my raging prick up to her
magnificently large cunt, all foaming as it was with her recent
discharge, I plunged with a furious bound up to the codpiece at once.
She met my forward lunge with a backward push and a cry of delighted
satisfaction. I moved a few times in and out, so that my prick was
white with the foam of her delicious cunt. Then suddenly withdrawing, I
presented it at the entrance of the more secret temple of Venus, and
more gently pushed it home, she helping me with outthrust buttocks and
outward straining of the entrance, so that I most charmingly glided
slowly into the glowing furnace that was awaiting with such lascivious
desire to engulph and devour my longed-for prick. For, as I have before
observed, my dear aunt was gluttonous of a bottom-fuck, after being so
fucked in cunt as I had already served her. It was so deliriously tight
and hot that I lay in the exquisite rapture of complete insertion for
some minutes. I had seen my aunt's arm move in a manner to convince me
she was frigging her own clitoris, in fact, the movement of her hand
frigging herself was felt by my codpiece. I let her continue, until
finding by the involuntary wriggling of her bottom that she was about
again to spend, I aided her with my prick, and had hardly made many
moves before she poured down another tribute of lust, with a squeal of
delight, and with such pressure on my prick as nearly drove him at once
to a similar discharge. I did my best, and succeeded in not following
suit. My aunt was insatiable, and I was glad to let her spend as often
as possible, and I so managed matters that she spent again before
joining me in the final crisis, which seized us together, and we died
away in joyous cries of thoroughly, though but momentarily, satisfied
desire. I sank on that magnificent back, as the languor that follows
the ecstatic moment overtook me, but it was only for a short time. The
exquisite internal pressures that my amorous and glorious aunt was
exercising on my delighted prick were too exciting not to rapidly
produce a reaction; nonetheless rapidly that it was in such a delicious
retreat as the pleasure-giving aperture of that gloriously exciting
backside. I was lying down on her broad back, so passing one hand round
to her large but firm bubby, I took its nipple between my fingers. The
other hand sought the knob of her still stiff clitoris. I excited both
while making a very gentle move with my hardly fully standing prick. I
felt at once how this gratified her, indeed, she often afterwards
assured me that such frigging, with the movement of the softened prick
gently working within her, was most exciting, and almost better than
when it was in full force. I soon made her spend again. Another of her
delights was to have a stiff prick shove away into her the instant
after she had spent, when she herself was at the moment incapable of
action on her part. She in after-days proved that her greatest pleasure
was to have a fresh-standing prick near, to take the place of one that
had made her spend, and had spent itself, and have it thrust into her
with all the vigour and lust the sight of the previous fucking had
inspired and fired it with. At this moment, as I had not spent, it was
the exact counterpart her libidinous imagination could have desired. I
fucked and frigged on until we both gave down in cries of joy our
united tribute to Venus. We both sank this time down on the couch in
utter forgetfulness of all but the ecstatic bliss with which we were
overcome. We long lay soaking in all the delightful sensations my
adorable aunt's convulsive clutchings of my prick with her delicious
close pressures excited. At last she begged me to withdraw, although
she could feel me now re-stiffening under the delights of that
exquisite interior. I would fain have recommenced.

"You must not, my dear boy, it is more than nature can support, and I
must consider your youth; you have delighted me even beyond previous
delights--rise then my love, and let me embrace, thank, and love you as
I shall always do."

I rose, and we threw ourselves into each other's arms, lovingly kissing
and tongueing each other. Aunt then buttoned me up, first kissing and
taking a mouthful of my prick for a moment between her lips, and then
putting him away, calling it "my pretty doodle." I seized the
expression, and said--

"Dear aunt, you called it my prick just now, and begged me to fuck you,
and to shove it well into your cunt. Are these the real names for my
doodle and your Fanny, and what does "fuck" mean, my darling aunt? Do
tell me, dear auntie? and teach me the language I ought to use when you
are so kindly relieving me of the pains of my now so frequent hardness.
I don't know whether you have observed it, dear auntie, but I never
enter this summer house with you, but it becomes painfully hard at
once; to be sure you give me such exquisite pleasure in relieving me
that I could wish to have constant hardnesses as long as you were near
to calm them. Is this natural, dear aunt, or a disease? Pray tell me,
and teach me all the endearing terms you so lavish upon me while I am
reducing my hardnesses."

My apparent simplicity evidently pleased her. She probably thought,
too, that as I must sooner or later really thoroughly understand the
nature of our intercourse, it would be much better she should, as it
were, make a confidant of me, and attach me more securely to herself.
She begged me to be seated and she fully explained everything to me. Of
course I was even better acquainted than herself with all she
communicated, but I confirmed the idea she evidently entertained of her
being my first instructress by various naive remarks on all she was
telling me. Of course I proved an apt scholar, and by my close-put
questions brought out all her own knowledge, and left nothing for me to
learn. At the end, I said--

"Do all women have such a delightful sheath--cunt I mean--between
their legs as you have, dear aunt?"

"Yes, my darling; but you must never stray to others; you will find
none so fond of you, or I may add, without vanity, so capable of
satisfying this dear fellow; but come, I see it will be dangerous to
allow him to stay here longer."

She rose, but I quickly unbuttoned and produced my prick in an almost
grander state than ever. I begged of her to let me have one more "fuck"
now that I knew what it all really meant. I put it into her hand. Her
own previous descriptive lesson had aroused her lasciviousness. She
fondly grasped it, and stooping down, kissed it, saying she could not
resist its eloquent look. Throwing herself back on the couch, with her
clothes up, her feet on the edge, and her legs apart, her glorious cunt
lay open in its moist magnificence. I threw myself on my knees and
gamahuched her until she spent: and now, knowing her greatest letch, I
instantly brought my bursting prick up to her foaming cunt, plunged in
and began a furious movement, accompanying it with all the most
endearing bawdy phrases she had just, as she thought, taught me.

"Oh, my most gloriously cunted aunt, do I fuck you? Wriggle your arse
faster--that's it! Do you feel my prick up to the hilt in your
delicious cunt? Oh! what pleasure you do give me!"

She replied as broadly. Passing her hand down she pressed my cods, and
asked if thus squeezing my ballocks added to my pleasure.

"Oh, yes, my love, your cunt, your arse, your bubbles, are all
delicious. Oh, I never before knew there could be such additional
pleasure to our fucking as using these endearing words produce."

We were both so excited by the bawdy terms we so profusely used that we
went off in the utmost excess of ecstasy, and died away thoroughly
satiated with our libidinous and most lasciviously delicious fuck. It
was time to finish. So sliding off her, I again buried my face in her
delicious gaping and foaming cunt, my mouth, lips, nose, and cheeks
were covered with sperm; she drew me to her lips and licked it all off.
Then repairing our disordered dress we returned to the house, and found
the doctor impatiently awaiting us. Our flushed and excited faces at
once showed that we had been indulging in the greatest excess. He joked
aunt upon her skill in allaying such frequent attacks as I now appeared
subject to.

Aunt informed him that she had inadvertently in her lust made use of
expressions which had betrayed so much to me that she had found it
necessary to leave me nothing more to learn, and I was now fully aware
of the true nature of our connection; after luncheon he himself might
further enlighten me, for she was certain that complete confidence
would be the best policy to pursue; it must come about, sooner or
later, and it was far better it should come from him than that I should
learn it elsewhere. He said she was quite right, and that he would
further instruct me after luncheon, so we set to work on the viands
before us, to which I did ample justice.

I was thus, as they supposed, newly initiated in the mysteries of the
coition of the sexes. I shall reserve further details of our more
intimate and expansive experiences for the third volume of this true
Romance of Lust, and still of Early Experiences.



END OF VOLUME II.



VOLUME III.



CONTENTS



Aunt Brownlow--Harry Dale--Mrs. Dale and Ellen--Mrs. D.--Ellen--Mrs.
D., Dr. Brownlow, and Harry--



After the luncheon, which closed the last volume, a churchwarden
occupied uncle for about an hour. When he had left off, uncle proposed
a walk in the garden. I could see at once what this was meant to lead
to, as he almost immediately turned in the direction of the summer
house. When we got there he sat down on the couch, and begged me to sit
beside him. He opened the subject at once by saying--

"My dear Charlie, I am very much pleased that your aunt has opened your
eyes to the real nature of our actions with you, which your simple
innocence had imagined to be a mere kindly relief to the overgorged
vessels of your virile member. Accident might have made you acquainted
with this through some less interested channel, and you might have
innocently betrayed your future position. I believe you to possess a
large fund of good sense and discretion, and the advice I shall give
you as to the conduct to pursue in future will not only be received
with confidence as meant for your future good, but listened to
attentively and acted upon. The world, my dear boy, and by that I mean
Society in general, condemns the practices we have lately been
indulging in with you. Their narrow prejudices ignore the fact that
nature alone prompts to these delightful acts, and that the great God
of nature gifted us with the powers necessary for their performance.
But, as the world has chosen to brand them with its censure, men of
prudence, like myself, whilst apparently conforming outwardly to such
stupid prejudices, know how in secret to fully enjoy them. I am blessed
in your darling aunt with a wife who fully understands and humours my
desires. She is rarely splendid in the glorious beauties of her body,
and in temperament hot as the most erotic of our sex could desire. Even
in your ignorance you must have felt the wonderful power of conferring
carnal ecstatic pleasure she possesses, and have heard how, in the
energy of her passion, she allowed her lust to betray her into the use
of grossly bawdy terms, but which, as they have enlightened you when
best prepared to receive such knowledge, is rather fortunate than
otherwise. I speak thus frankly to you, my dear boy, because I have
found you of a rare facility in giving and receiving erotic pleasures,
and of a temperament worthy of the descent from the same stock as your
aunt. You are worthy of each other, and formed to enjoy to the utmost
each other's carnal delights, and I bless my happy star that has
brought you both under my own roof. Henceforth there must be no secrets
between us. It was at my earnest wish that your aunt relieved you; and,
of course I had my own object in view. In the first place I require
some extra excitement to be able myself to indulge in these delightful
combats in love's domain. You and your aunt's copulations were to me
more exciting than you can imagine. You will have observed, too, what
is the real quarter to which, when excited, I pay my devoirs. Glorious
as is the backside of your incomparable aunt, your young charms, virgin
in that respect, excited me still more. I began by gentle touches, and
then tried the insertion of my finger, when I saw you were far too busy
operating within the orbit of your lustful and lusty aunt to observe or
even feel what I was doing. I found a facility about your bottom as
perfect for enjoyment as your truly magnificent prick or cock was
fitted for operating in its way. It was then I suggested to your aunt
to mount upon you, and afterwards made you aware that your aunt
possessed another aperture which could equally well allay what you then
looked upon as a source of pain. My object was to lead you to the same
point. Your innocent docility lent itself with easy simplicity to all
my desires. I saw that you entered readily into your aunt's glorious
bum-hole, and allowed me to work with two fingers in your own. Finding
that it rather gave you pleasure than otherwise, I proposed to abate my
own stiffness in your bottom. Your affectionate docility enabled me to
obtain unfailing ecstasy. Your after-fucking of me, while I was in my
wife's bottom, conferred the utmost erotic bliss upon me, as you have
experienced when operating and being operated upon. These--these are
the moments of a felicity your stupid prejudiced worldlings know
nothing of; and these are the pleasures which, now that we have
initiated you into all their secret mysteries, we will enjoy to the
utmost. To the true votaries of these love orgies grossness of language
is a stimulant to passion.
Fuck-frig--bugger--cunt--prick--ballocks--bubbles--arse-hole--are all
sacred words only to be pronounced when in the exercise of love's
mysteries. At all other times a guarded decency of word, act, and
gesture is imperative, as enhancing the delight of an unbridled
vocabulary in the voluptuary of raging lust. I shall from time to time
inculcate sage precepts on this point--enough for the present. Let us
now indulge in mutual embraces."

So ending, he took me in his arms and glued his lips to mine. Our
tongues met. Both our hands wandered, his on my prick, which
immediately responded to the touch, my hand was placed on his prick,
but which was only at half-cock. I rapidly unbuttoned, and brought it
forth, then stooping I took it in my mouth, and sucked it and fingered
the root with my hand. Then passing my other hand below, I sought to
penetrate with my finger into the interior of his fundament. He rose to
a standing position to enable me to enter his anus more easily. His
prick quickly standing fiercely showed how much I excited him. I ceased
not until he was in an agony of pleasure--forcing my head down on his
prick until it entered almost completely into my mouth, and shooting
his sperm right down my throat. I continued to suck and frig him until
I produced somewhat of a restiffening of his prick. He begged me to
rise, that he might take mine in his mouth, desiring me at the same
time to take off my trousers and lie down on the couch. I did so. He
knelt at my side, and first handling and examining it with loudly
expressed admiration of my noble weapon, he took its head in his mouth,
and then with his hand on its lower shaft, and finger up my fundament,
brought on a similar crisis as that I had produced on himself. He just
as greedily swallowed all. I had allowed my hand to fall down by the
side of the couch, where it encountered his prick, which had resumed
its pristine vigour.

"Come my dear uncle," said I, "and let us put it into its favourite
corner."

I rose, and kneeling, turned my backside full in his face. He stooped,
caressed, kissed, and tongued the rosy orifice. With the plentiful
saliva with which the operation of sucking my prick had filled his
mouth, he moistened my bum-hole and his own prick, and then easily
glided up to the hilt within my delighted backside. Resting for a while
in all the ecstasies of insertion, which I heightened by my internal
pressures, he seized my prick which had stood again at once at the
pleasing sensation occasioned by the introduction of his prick in my
bottom. Thus frigging my prick and fucking my arse, with occasional
pauses to lengthen out our pleasures, he at last brought matters to a
most exquisite termination, and died away in cries of joy as we poured
forth a mutual torrent of sperm. Uncle continued soaking in all the
blissful after-sensations, which I did everything in my power to
enhance by the delight-giving pressures of my sphincter muscle. When he
withdrew and rose to his legs, he helped me up, and drew me to his
bosom, and we had a long kiss of gratified desire, tongueing each other
the while, and handling our ballocks with mutual gratification. My
uncle was profuse in his praises of my docility and aptitude, declaring
that his pederastic enjoyment of my person excelled all he had ever
experienced in his long practice of the habit, and my delicious
sideways wriggle was superior to the very fine bum-fucking his adorable
wife had the art of giving him: then there was the further excitement
of handling the very finest prick he had ever met with.

"It is no flattery to you, my dear Charles," he said, "but mere justice
to its superb dimensions and admirable power."

Here he stopped, and sucked anew its reeking head, getting a few more
drops out. We then purified ourselves--a basin with water was kept in a
small cupboard purposely for such occasion, for I afterwards learned
the place had been the scene of innumerable contests of the same kind
with aunt and other boys. Having readjusted our disordered habiliments,
we left the grounds, and took a long quiet walk in the fields; the good
doctor inculcating admirable advice to me, whom he considered an
innocent tyro in love's ways. Nevertheless, all he taught me only
strengthened my high opinion of the wisdom of dear Mrs. Benson, and the
adorable Frankland, whole opinion of what was likely to happen to me at
the rectory had been so quickly realised. We returned in time to dress
for dinner. The evening passed as the previous ones. I was conducted to
my room, and left alone to recruit my forces by a quiet night's rest. I
may here incidentally mention that it was a rule of uncle and aunt,
very rarely departed from, to send their favourites to their lonely
couches as a means of restoring their powers, and reinvigorating them
for daylight encounters--both the dear creatures loving to have the
fullest daylight on all the charms of their participants in pleasure,
at the same time yielding an equally undisguised inspection of their
own. This was their principle reason, but they also considered it
advisable as a restorative, and a useful precaution not to overstrain
the energies of the youths they both so much enjoyed. My late
experiences at home had already taught me the advantage and utility of
a quiet night's rest after frequent contests in the fields of Venus and
Juno.

I slept on this occasion with a deep and continuous slumber, until I
was awakened by my uncle, who came to summon me to the arms of his
wife, who, in the splendour of her full-blown charms awaited me in her
own bed, naked as the day she was born. Her arms outstretched, she
invited me to the full enjoyment of her glorious person. The doctor
drew my night-shirt over my head, and in a moment I was locked in the
close embrace of that superb creature. We were both too hot to wait for
further preliminaries, but went at it in furious haste, and rapidly
paid our first tribute to the god of love. The doctor had acted
postillion to both of us, with a finger up each anus. The exquisite
pressures of my aunt's cunt reinvigorated me almost without a pause,
and we proceeded at once to run a second course. Uncle got three
fingers into her divine bottom-hole, as her legs were thrown over my
waist, and her immense buttocks well thrown up enabled him to have full
play between the cheeks of her backside. This double operation made the
dear lascivious creature spend again in a very few movements, and
giving her hardly time to finish her discharge, I fucked on with double
force, and with prick as hard as wood, as fast I could work. This
furious onset, which was the most exciting thing she knew of, rapidly
caused a third discharge. To prevent my own prick from spending too
quickly, I held somewhat back; then again we went at it fast and
furious, and the dear lustful creature, with cries of joy, spent again
with me, and fainted from excess of pleasure; but her glorious cunt
continued to throb on my delighted prick, as if it would nip it off by
the roots. I never met with so lusciously large a cunt, or one with a
greater power of pressure. She could quite hold even an exhausted prick
a complete prisoner in these most delicious and velvety folds. Great as
was the power of Miss Frankland's cunt in that way, aunt beat her. I
may here mention an occurrence that took place some time after this
period. It was during a rare opportunity from an accidental absence of
the doctor, when I was sleeping with my gloriously beautiful aunt. I
had fucked her to her heart's content before we slept, and again on
waking, in full daylight, after which we rose to relieve our natural
wants. I laid myself down on the floor, that I might completely see my
dear aunt piddle from her splendid cunt. It was a glorious sight, which
instantly fired my passions and was at once followed by a fuck on the
floor, my aunt's enormous backside being quite cushion enough, and we
enjoyed the novelty of the thing amazingly. She was loud in her praises
of my indefatigable prick, which, with its vigour and superb
dimensions, was beyond all she had ever seen or felt, and just fitted
her large and luscious cunt, which had never before been so well
filled. This remark reminded me of a desire I had long had to have a
thorough investigation of that immense and splendid object. I expressed
a wish to that effect.

"My darling boy, anything you like, you could not have a better
opportunity, my legs point to the window, so you have the fullest
sight--look, feel, frig, fuck, or bugger, all is at your free
disposition--only give me a pillow from the bed, as the floor is too
hard for me to continue so long as you are likely to be."

I jumped up and gave her two pillows. Then laying her limbs wide open,
with knees bent, the magnificence of that luscious cunt lay in all its
grandeur before me. I have before described what a large, but
splendidly proportioned woman she was--small feet, and clear-run
ankles, large, but admirably turned calves, very small knees, above
which rose the very finest and fleshiest of thighs, worthy supporters
of what I have already described as the largest and finest backside my
eyes ever lighted on. Immense hips, and wonderfully and naturally small
waist, above which were her superb, large, fine, and firm bubbles that
stood out when naked, as hard and firm as those of the youngest of
women; a charming neck, and well-posed head with most pleasing and
beautiful features crowned the whole. Her arms were superb, and equal
in proportion to her other grand and splendid limbs. The flesh was of
the most delicious creamy white, without a spot or a blemish. The hair
of the head, plentiful in the extreme, and so long and thick that when
undone it fell all around her and below her superb buttocks, so that
she could shake it out all round, and completely hide her nakedness.
Often and often has she allowed me to pose her in every way, and shake
it out all over her, and well she might, for no matter how often I
might have fucked her previously, it was sure to produce at least three
more encounters, one of which was always in her backside, a most
favourite way with her and which she declared was by far the most
pleasurable provided the other aperture had been previously well
fucked. With such a taste, of course, her greatest pleasure was to have
two pricks in her at once, the _ne plus ultra_ of erotic satisfaction.
To return to the inspection I was about to describe, which was really
the first at my full disposition, for although I had often gamahuched,
felt and seen the beautiful object, it was when my passions were
excited, and when the gratification of lust alone prompted me, a state
of mind opposed to close observation of natural beauties. Now, repeated
tributes to the god of lust had cooled my ardour for the moment, and
left me to the perfect enjoyment of the sight before me, with the
temper to inspect its full-blown beauties in the minutest way. I have
said before that my aunt had one of the broadest, most prominent, and
most beautiful mounts of Venus that I ever saw. It was thickly covered
with beautiful silky fair curls, which did not hinder you from seeing
her exquisite skin below. The sweep round, to pass between her thighs,
was bold and graceful. In the middle was a well defined semi-circular
depression, from whence the large, thick and beautifully pouting lips
of her cunt commenced, which in her present position lay partially
open. You could just see where the clitoris lay snug. I have already
observed that this was not largely developed, nor were the inner labia
of her cunt at all projecting, indeed, they were not visible, unless
her legs, with bent knees, were stretched apart, as at present. On each
side of these luscious pouting lips, and the long immense pinky gash,
was a triangle of considerable space, such, in fact, as is only to be
seen in a woman of the splendidly large proportions of my aunt; this
was covered as much as her mount with fair silky curls, which ran down
to her beautiful corrugated and rosy bottom-hole. Nothing could be
finer or more beautiful than the sight, as she thus lay fully exposing
every part in the broadest daylight. After handling and admiring all, I
laid the lips well back and apart, and there they kept open. Nothing
could be more charming than the interior of that most enchanting cunt,
of an exquisite salmon-pink in colour, nothing was out of order. The
clitoris, which bulged out in excitement from my touches of all the
parts around, lay first in the upper partition of the pouting lips;
then became below, slightly open, a charming entrance to the urethra,
larger than usual, to allow the mighty rush of waters to pour from it
when piddling; below this was the opening of the vagina, which I parted
with my fingers, and could see even to the corrugated sides of that
exquisite pleasure-giving sheath; then followed some sinuosity of pinky
flesh, whose duty it was to stretch to allow the largest prick to
penetrate. Half-an-inch beyond was the rosy orifice of her bottom. Such
was the exquisite scene before my delighted eyes. I proceeded with my
internal examination. Thrusting in three fingers of each hand, I forced
open by literal pressure the lips, until I could see to a depth of four
or five inches. It was a most beautiful sight. The sheath appeared to
have ribs running round it about half-an-inch apart, and I could see
they were the means of causing the exquisite pressures her cunt could
so ecstatically exercise. Indeed, excited by my _attouchements_, I
could see them contracting and relaxing. It was, doubtless, these ribs
that seemed to exercise a sort of peristaltic motion on the prick, when
reposing at full stand in that glorious cunt. I was able so widely to
open this splendid vagina that I thought I would try to get my hand
altogether in. Projecting my fingers forward, with the first and fourth
drawn under the middle ones and the thumb between, I pushed them
forward, and as the whole cunt was reeking with my last discharge, and
was well lubricated, I glided on; there was a little difficulty at the
knuckles, but I exerted a slight, gentle pressure, and in all went.
Aunt winced a little, and asked what I was doing. I told her.

"It is all in, my darling?"

"Yes, Auntie."

She closed upon it, and squeezed it quite hard.

"Oh, how nice!" she exclaimed, "push it further in."

I advanced, and could feel the end of her womb, which appeared like
three points to fingers and the thumb drawn together, and looked at
endways is something like what it felt--of course, without the nails.
Aunt asked me if I could double my fist where it was. I had no
difficulty, as the part yielded to the greater bulk. Aunt cried out--

"My darling boy, that is delicious; push it further in."

I did so, and began working within her, backwards and forwards. She
wriggled her splendid backside in ecstasy, and before I had made a
dozen movements, poured down upon my hand and arm a torrent of almost
boiling liquid, and went off with a cry of enjoyment. Her arms and legs
relaxed, and she lay quite still in the utmost after-enjoyment, but
with a pressure on my arm and fist quite wonderful. Knowing how she
liked the movement to be continued at such a moment, I worked in and
out slowly. She soon recovered, and again seconded my movements, and
again went off in all the fury of lust, accompanied with shouts of
excitement, urging faster movements, and again went off in all the fury
of her most libidinous nature, and spent most profusely. All this had
now brought me into as furious a state as herself. I wanted to withdraw
and substitute my prick, not only from the state of excitement I was
in, but also to experience the effects of such a well-stretched cunt
upon my lesser-sized weapon. But so tight did my aunt hold my
imprisoned hand that I could not withdraw. I begged her to let it go,
as I wanted to fuck her instantly, but she prayed me to give her one
more of such exquisite manoeuvres, it was a joy beyond anything she had
ever before experienced, so she begged her darling boy to join. On I
went as she desired, and a more exciting picture of furious lust never
met my sight. I helped her final discharge by thrusting two fingers in
her bum-hole. Never shall I forget the grip she gave my arm and fingers
when she spent. It was positively painful, and showed the enormous
force of passionate lust. She went off in such a fury of excitement
that I thought she had fainted outright. But her pressures continued
all the time. It was long before she recovered her senses, and my arm
was aching, and my prick bursting. At last she exclaimed--

"Oh! where am I? I have been in paradise."

"Dear aunt," I cried, "do let me out. I am bursting to fuck you, and I
can't get my arm out, if you don't relax your grip of my wrist."

"I can't help it, my dear boy, it is involuntary, put your other hand
on my mount, and pull steadily, but not with a jerk."

I did so, and really it required considerable force to withdraw it,
notwithstanding I had previously unclenched my hand. I jumped
immediately upon her, and at one bound plunged into that vast cavity,
up to the cods. It immediately closed upon me, and tight as she usually
held me, she really appeared to do so this time tighter than ever, so
wonderfully gifted was that longest, highest, and most luscious cunt I
ever fucked. You may easily imagine the rapid ending of such raging
lust. I spent with cries more like the braying of a donkey than any
other sound, and then lay like one dead on that glorious belly, with
head reposing between the firm and splendid bubbies, aunt clasping me
to her bosom, panting with all it had just granted. We lay long in
ecstatic trance of the delicious after-sensations. Our mutual internal
throbbings gradually re-excited all our passions. With renewed ardour I
quickly made my lascivious and libidinous aunt spend again on my
delighted prick, which kept ramming at her during the swoon-like pause
which spending produced; she had taught me this was exquisite delight
to her. She soon resumed the full swing of her lust, but suddenly
stopping, said--

"Charlie, my darling, withdraw, and shove it in behind." She quickly
turned round, with great agility, prompted by the excess of her
desires. I was behind her in an instant, and as my prick was reeking
with the fuck she had just so plentifully bedewed it with, and the
divine lower orifice had also received its tricklings, I had no
difficulty in pushing firmly but not too forcibly right up to the
meeting of her stupendous buttocks and my belly. She sighed deeply with
delight, when she felt me fully imbedded, and began the delicious side
wriggle, while I remained for some minutes quiet, that I might enjoy
the superb beauty of those mighty orbs, in all their play of passion.
Aunt grew furious with lust. Her hand was actively frigging both
clitoris and cunt. She called out to me to shove on; two or three
thrusts on my part, and the dear, lecherous creature again poured down
her nature. I paused to restrain my own discharge, but made my prick
throb within its most exquisite sheath, which never ceased responding
most deliriously. It was but for a minute or two, when my own fierce
passion drove me to very energetic action. My delighted aunt seconded
my movements, fast and furious grew our sport, until, with cries of the
wildest lust, we both spent deliciously together. I sank on her
glorious bottom and back, and by embracing her superb bubbies with both
hands, until her exquisite pressures again renewed my forces, and drove
me on to another delightful career, in which again the hot lust of my
aunt drew down from her several discharges to my one. At last we sank
both together, in all the joys of fully satiated desire. Again I lay
for some time on that broad and beauteous back, until aunt said I must
withdraw, as she had great natural want. I instantly withdrew, out he
came with a loud plop, followed immediately by a tremendous succession
of farts. Aunt professed to be quite horrified, but I only burst into a
loud fit of laughter and told the dear creature to fart, piss, or shit,
whenever she felt inclined, I should only love her the better. She said
she must at once do the latter, and was running off to the water closet
as soon as she could hurry on some clothes. But I drew out the chamber,
and begged her to sit down there at once. It would give me pleasure and
excite me as well. She was too hard pressed to hesitate, so sitting
down, she had a "hell of a let-fly" as a military friend of mine used
to say. I stooped over her back, caressed her bubbies and when she
turned up her delighted face, our lips were glued together in a loving
kiss, while my nose sniffed the really delicious odour that came from
her. When she had done, she begged me to hand her a towel to wipe
herself.

"No, no, my darling aunt, nothing of the sort; stoop down forward on to
your knees, and I will lick the delicious orifice clean with my tongue."

She laughed, kissed me, and told me I was a darling boy, just after her
own heart, but hardly expected I had already acquired the tastes of my
uncle, the rector, whose letch lay in that practice. She let herself
down on her knees as her sublime arse raised itself from the pot, and
stooping her head low down, presented her immense buttocks before me,
with the chink between well stretched open. I move the pot on one side,
threw myself on hands and knees, and eagerly kissing the exquisite
orifice, greedily licked it clean, and thrusting my tongue well within,
rolled it about, to the great delight of dear aunt, whose passions were
instantly aroused, and her divine backside began to wriggle. I shoved
my thumb up her cunt, and frigged until she spent. Meanwhile my own
unruly member had become distended to his full size, and was throbbing
with desire. So raising my body erect, I brought him again to the rosy
orifice I had just been tongueing, and to my aunt's infinite delight,
again housed him as far as he could go, and again began active
operations, which I continued until aunt's lasciviousness again made
her spend. I paused a little after this, or otherwise I should have
gone off myself. Stooping over the glorious bottom, I replaced her hand
with my own, and began frigging her clitoris, till her passions, again
excited, made her begin ecstatic movements, in which I joined until the
grand crisis seized us both together, ushered in with cries of joy. We
spent, and sank down sideways on the floor in quite a death swoon of
ecstatic and satisfied lust. Here we lay quite exhausted for some time.
At last aunt let me out, and begged me to rise.

"I must purify you, my darling boy, as you did me." And seizing my limp
prick in her mouth she sucked it clean, until she began to feel
symptoms of the resurrection of the flesh. She hastily rose, and said--

"No, Charlie, you have done far too much to-night. I must see you to
your bed, that you may get at least a couple of hours sleep."

She took up my night-shirt, threw it over me, led me to my bedroom,
tenderly embraced me, and thanked me for such a night of pleasure as
she had never in all her life enjoyed the equal. Then locking me in,
she retired to her own bed. It may well be supposed that after such
exertions, I slept the sleep of the just for many hours. My aunt had
frequently come to look at me, but seeing me in so sound a slumber,
would not have me disturbed--a politic proceeding, as it resulted in a
fuller indulgence in the summer house that day than would have happened
if my powers had not been restored by refreshing sleep.

This kind of life had been going on for nearly three weeks. The doctor
became less easy to move. One morning I had fucked my aunt twice; the
doctor's prick at the end of the second had stiffened to about half
stand. I took it into my mouth, which, with handling his ballocks and
postillioning his bottom-hole, brought him up to the-full standard. He
proposed to bugger aunt while I did the same kind office to himself. A
caprice seized me, and I proposed, on the contrary, that we should both
fuck aunt's capacious cunt at once. Aunt, for form's sake, cried out
against it, but the idea tickled the fancy of my uncle, who would not
only enjoy all the beauties of my aunt's glorious backside in motion,
but could postillion her as well. So I lay down on my back, aunt
mounted me, and presented her splendid bum to the attack of her excited
husband. He first thrust his prick up to the hilt in her luscious and
well-bedewed cunt; when well lubricated, he withdrew, to allow me to
make my place in full possession, then bringing his stiff-standing
prick against the root of mine, pressing it well down, he gently shoved
forward, and gradually sheathed himself within the well-stretched and
capacious orbit of my aunt, who winced a little in pretended pain, but
who, by the grip she immediately gave to the double fuck within her,
showed how much gratified she was. After a pause of enjoyment, I gave
the signal for exact joint movements, both pulling out gently, and
sliding slowly in again. Two or three thrusts, aided by the doctor's
finger in her bottom-hole, sufficed to make dear leacherous aunt spend
profusely. We increased our speed, but still not fast, which quickly
re-awakened all aunt's lust. Before we ourselves were ready, the dear
lascivious creature again poured down her nature, boiling hot, on our
delighted pricks. This produced such excitement upon us that we could
no longer restrain our own desire to come to the ecstatic conclusion.
Our movements became more rapid. We each felt the electric-like
sensation of the approaching crisis. Aunt doubly felt the influence of
our increasing speed and hardness, and was as ready as ourselves to
pour down the tribute to the goddess of love or lust, holy Mother
Venus. The novelty, the pressure, and the excess of pleasure declared
itself in the loud cries of the last crisis, as we all died away in the
enrapturing sensations produced by the intense satisfaction our desires
had experienced. We lay long wrapped in the after-ecstasy; aunt's
delicious internal movements began again. The doctor's prick had shrunk
to a merry piece of inanimate dough, and he withdrew, begging us at the
same time to change our position, and let him enjoy seeing me attack my
aunt in rear. This inflamed me at once. Aunt rolled from off me. I took
my place behind, and we ran a most delicious course, rendered much more
excitable to me by the introduction of uncle's two fingers up my
fundament, which kept time with my action in the delicious aperture of
my aunt's most superb and glorious backside, the movements of which
beneath my delighted gaze had not been the least stimulating part of
the enjoyment. The crisis was most ecstatic, and I sank exhausted on
her broad buttocks and beautiful back, to clasp her lovingly in my arms
and sob out bawdy terms of the warmest endearment. The doctor, who had
very much enjoyed the sight, but who pointed out the sadly downcast
state of his prick, which had been in no wise excited by the scene,
said to his wife--

"My darling, we must have recourse to the grand remedy, I will also
initiate dear Charlie into a new mystery of love, of which he can have
no idea."

I guessed at once what he meant, but professing extreme ignorance, I
begged him to tell me what it was. Aunt rose and said--

"My darling, your uncle requires his blood to be excited by flogging
his buttocks with a birch rod."

"How odd," said I, "I never felt anything but the severest pain when I
was flogged, and I took precious good care not to deserve it again. How
then can it excite?"

"You shall see, my dear."

She opened her wardrobe and produced a formidable rod of fine fresh-cut
birch twigs. The doctor begged me to lie down on my back--he got over
me, and we commenced sucking each other's pricks. Mine stood at once,
as the doctor, in addition to sucking, thrust a couple of fingers up my
bottom-hole, and frigged away as fast as he sucked. The doctor's
buttocks were left at the mercy of aunt, who flogged away at them with
no gentle hand. I spent before the doctor could quite get his prick to
standing point, but the copious torrent I poured into his mouth, and
his after-suction on my prick, in addition to the red raw state of his
buttocks, at last brought him up to full stand. He wanted to put it
into me when ready, but aunt said that as flogger she had herself
become greatly excited, and must have it herself.

"While this dear prick," throwing herself on it, and sucking it, "shall
fuck me at the same time."

I was quite ready, and she straddled across me, and guided my now
longing prick into her luscious cunt. She soon stopped, and we tongued
each other while the doctor was mounting to the assault on her
delicious bottom-hole. As soon as he was housed, we began another
charming course, in which aunt, as usual, spent frequently before our
less lecherous natures were ready to join in one general and exquisite
discharge. We went off in furies of delighted lust, and then sank
exhausted in the delicious after-sensation. We long lay in the sweet
inanition and luxury of satiated lust. At last we disconnected
ourselves, rose, and laved each other with cold water, more as a
restorative than as a purification. Aunt and I had two bouts after--one
in front and one behind. The doctor would not allow a fresh application
of the birch, as he said it would only produce so great an exhaustion
as would require days to restore. I retired after this, but ever
afterwards the doctor was regularly birched before he could even
copulate once. Sometimes he required to flog my aunt's glorious bum to
excite his fading powers, declaring that it was almost as exciting as
being flogged. He even gave it me gently, although I hardly ever
required it, but I professed my surprise at its efficiency.



The holidays were at an end, but I was as yet the only boarder. There
were, however, some twenty or thirty youths from the neighbourhood, who
were day scholars at the doctor's school. Among these the doctor had
his pick in the flogging way, but he never allowed them to know
anything of our other proceedings, or to imagine that the birching
which took place was otherwise than as a punishment for faults or
inattention. However, I was generally the chosen companion of these
whippings, in which I acted as horse, or holder of the boy to be
flogged. Of course I took good care to expose as much as possible their
lovely cocks, as well as their plump bottoms, and as this excited me as
well as the doctor, it often ended, after the culprit was dismissed, in
my flogging the doctor, followed by a mutual rack off in each other's
bottoms.

There was one fine, plump, girlish-looking youth, named Dale, who was
here for the first half. He had not as yet been brought up for
punishment, although the doctor had confided to me the letch he had
taken to flog his fine fat bottom. One day, Master Dale brought a
sealed note from his widowed mother, who lived about a mile from the
village, in a charming cottage ornee. The doctor read the note. By
chance I was looking at him, and saw a smile of joy light up his
features.

"Come here, Master Dale," said he in a mild and gentle voice, "your
mother tells me that you have behaved in a most shameful manner to your
pretty young cousin, who is residing with your mamma."

Master Dale blushed scarlet, for he was not aware until now that any
one had been a witness to the scene that had taken place between him
and his pretty cousin.

This was what had passed. The cousin, a lovely girl of fifteen, was in
a secluded spot in the garden, near an arbour, the preceding afternoon.
She was bending down, tying up a flower close to the ground, which made
her stoop to such a degree that she could only reach it with ease by
having her legs wide apart. Her back was towards the walk by which
young Dale was advancing. As he approached unheard by her, he could not
fail to see peeping out between the stretched open expanse of snowy
drawers the inner part of her well-rounded globes of dimpled ivory. Her
shift had somehow worked upwards, and revealed all the charms of her
delicate young bum and plump white thighs. The sight inflamed the youth
beyond measure. He crept up noiselessly quite close to her, and,
stooping down until his head was below the level of her raised
petticoat, he feasted his eyes for some time with the lovely prospect
before him, her little virgin rosebud slit, its pink and pouting lips,
plump little mount already delicately shaded with a curly foliage that
promised soon to be much more dense, together with the swell of her
lovely young thighs and calves. All this was quite unsuspected by the
object of his admiration, who was absorbed in her garden operations. At
length, however, the excited youth could not resist the temptation of
applying his soft warm hand to the parts he was admiring, which made
Miss scream slightly--she thinking it was some insect up her
petticoats-exclaiming--

"Oh, dear! oh, dear!"

But turning her head round, she discovered the delinquent.

"Forgive me, Ellen dear, but really you exposed so very pretty a sight
while stooping that upon my word I could not help it."

Now girls are curious as well as boys, perhaps more so; and if the
truth must be told, Miss had for some time past longed for an
opportunity to become better acquainted with things in general, and,
therefore, thought here was a chance not to be thrown away. So, after
some little show of resistance on her part, for decency's sake, it was
agreed between them that he should have a good look at _hers_, if he
would afterwards show her _his_. Miss Ellen had never seen a male
"diddle," as she and her young playfellows called it, not even that of
a boy, and she was all excitement and expectation to feel with her own
hand the "funny thing," for so a communicative servant-maid had
described it, who at the same time had fully explained the theory of
its use, which made Miss long to obtain some practical knowledge also.
So to the arbour they both adjourned. Miss Ellen first lay back upon
the seat, while the young rogue unfastened her drawers, and pulling
them down, feasted his eyes with a full view of her virgin charms as
long as he pleased, for Miss Ellen was a lecherous little maid, who
really felt a precocious pleasure in being thus exposed to the close
observation and admiration of one of the opposite sex, although for
form's sake she covered her blushing face with her delicate little
hands. He touched _it_, pressed _it_, rubbed _it_ with his finger. Her
thighs trembled and opened. Taught by nature, he imprinted a burning
kiss on the lovely little quim before him. She sighed, and mechanically
put her hand on his head and pressed it closer to her naked skin.
Guided by his feelings, he indulged in movements of his lips and
pressures which speedily excited the amorous little maid to such an
extent as to make her give down with a deep and trembling sigh the
first tribute of her virgin cunt. Feeling the warm liquid oozing from
the pouting orifice on his closely pressed lips, he could not help
tasting it with his tongue. This reawakened very quickly the
sensibilities of the lecherous little thing, and awoke her to the
desire to practise a like pleasure with his cock. So reminding him of
his promise, she made him stand up before her, while she undid his
trousers with her fairy fingers, all trembling with excitement, and
drew out his stiff affair, which already gave promise of a very
respectable future, now swollen to a size it had never before known.
Delighted at the sight of so bewitching a plaything, she made him lie
down as she had done, and kneeling beside him, with cheeks glowing with
excitement, she closely examined every part of the rampant little
member. Strange to say, no hand, hardly even its owner's, had as yet
invaded its virgin precincts, and it had not yet had its ruby head
fully uncovered, although he was upwards of fifteen. The delight caused
by the touch of her warm hand pressing and encircling his stiffened
cock was most exquisite. She was not long, however, before she became
curious to see what could possibly be underneath the skin that covered
its rounded head. In her toying she sought to draw the skin back over
the head, a slight cry of pain from him caused her to stop. But when,
be she young or be she old, is a woman's curiosity to be baulked. She
had managed to draw it back a short way, and now it suddenly occurred
to her that by the help of a little moisture her object might be
accomplished without hurting the dear fellow. By an impulse of passion
she stooped and took the rosy head into her delicious little mouth,
closing her coral lips around it, and lubricating it with her tongue,
to the intense gratification of the youth, who involuntarily wriggled
his body about voluptuously, and could not help raising it up to her
mouth. This movement, combined with the pressure of the lips, perfectly
succeeded, without further pain, in completely unhooding the charming
little cock she was so deliciously embracing in the soft folds of her
lips. She lifted up her head to see the result. The tight foreskin had
closed below the nut, and left the now fiery red head bursting with
excitement, and visibly throbbing with intensity of passion. Her joy
and delight at this full revelation of the "funny thing," as she
continued to call it, now knew no bounds. She drove him nearly frantic
with her ardent caresses--she again drew the covering over the
vermillion head, and still finding that it did not easily return again,
she thrust her head down upon it, and with lips, mouth, and tongue
began again her attempt to unhood it. Poor Dale was brought up to the
wildest state of excitement, his hands involuntarily pressed down her
head, his body rose to meet it, and at that ravishing instant the grand
crisis seized him, and, with a cry of delight, he shot forth his first
tribute to Venus within the delicious mouth in which he was enclosed.
The ecstatic gush poured down the throat of the dear girl, and she
gulped it all down by the mere effort to avoid choking. Poor Dale's
hands fell down insensibly from her head, which she instantly withdrew,
and gazed on the youth. To her great surprise she beheld the so lately
rampant weapon drooping its head and withdrawing within its shell,
while some few drops of a milky white creamy like liquid were slowly
oozing from the small orifice off its head. While she gazed it reduced
itself to a mere shadow of its former state, and the foreskin slowly
covered again the so lately fiery and bursting head. She was lost in
wonder, and was about to express her surprise at the strangeness of the
whole affair, but they now became aware that footsteps were
approaching. Fortunately for them, as they thought, the noise of the
gravel underfoot was distinguishable at such a distance that they had
time to arrange their clothes, and when Dale's mother appeared at the
arbour, she found them, on entering, quietly seated and talking
together; and thanks to the youth's discharge in his cousin's sweet
mouth, without any tell-tale flushings of his face. Little did they
suspect she had already seen all.

This then was Master Dale's misconduct, and this it was that had been
fully and minutely detailed in the note sent by this mother to the
doctor, with a request that he should punish him well in whatever way
he should think proper. The note further begged to know the terms for
his becoming a boarder with the doctor, as she could no longer have him
residing in her house with her orphan niece, whose guardian she was.
You may easily imagine the double delight of the doctor. Another
boarder, a point of some consequence to him after a previous scandal
which, although hushed up, had deprived him of house pupils; and now
with two, he foresaw a quick return to his full number; and then his
delight at having to flog young Dale, and the erotic pleasure of
drawing from him the exciting description of their young loves and
voluptuous actions.

"Now Master Dale," said the doctor, "you and I have an account to
settle, follow me."

And without a word further he led him into his private room, where, as
was generally understood in the school, he birched the worst offenders.
Arrived in the room alone with the young culprit, he locked the door,
and taking a large cutting birch rod from a closet, sat down on a sofa.
He called the youth to him and told him to unbutton and let down his
trousers, and tuck up his shirt well under his waistcoat. This being
done, the doctor said--

"Now, Master Dale, we shall see if this birch will cool your itching
for feeling your pretty cousin's private parts."

Poor Dale had never yet been punished more severely than by the hand of
his mamma, and certainly trembled at the sight of the formidable birch
rod threatening his now bare bottom; yet, notwithstanding his fears,
the allusion to the pretty private parts of his cousin so fired his
imagination that his cock instantly stiffened and stood out, to the
infinite delight of the doctor, who augured therefrom a future further
felicity. Keeping him standing close beside him, and enjoying the sight
of his youthful charms so deliciously exposed immediately before his
eyes, he proceeded--

"So, Master Dale, you have, it seems, been gratifying yourself with
looking and feeling between the legs and thighs of a pretty young girl
of fifteen, your cousin, is she not?"

"Yes, sir," sobbed out the youth.

The doctor's gaze was fixed upon the stiff and rampant member of the
youth, watching the throbbings produced by every allusion to the
luscious scene of the day before.

"Now, come, tell me all about it," said he, putting his arm round the
sobbing boy's waist, and making him stand still closer beside him. "Was
she such a very pretty girl?"

Another throb of the rampant member.

"Yes, sir."

"And you saw all her legs, thighs, plump little bottom, rosy pouting
little _slit_"--(_throb_--_throb_--_throb_)--"moist with the dew of
excitement and amorous play eh?"

The little machine seemed ready to burst at the thought of it.

"And did it have the same effect as I see it now has on _this?_ Dear
me, how naughty it is."

And here the lecherous doctor took the rampant little cock in his hand
and pressed it.

"And what did she do to this, did she touch it so?" squeezing it gently.

"Yes, sir," stammered out the youth, who was getting greatly excited.

"And so?" said the doctor, passing his hand gently and caressingly up
and down the stiffened and throbbing little cock.

"Yes, sir."

"And so, too, I'll be bound," pushing back the foreskin off the head,
and as quickly replacing it, several times.

"Ye--es. Oh! sir; oh! oh!"

The boy's feelings, as the doctor swiftly frigged his cock, began to be
exquisite. The doctor could not resist the temptation of bringing
things to a crisis. Clasping the youth tightly with one arm, he
continued his toying with the plaything in a quick exciting manner,
apparently without reflecting upon what he was about, uttering, at
intervals--

"Dear me," and "how naughty it was of you; but how pretty she must have
been to tempt you to do so, was it not?"

The lovely youth was now in paradise. In the exquisite sensations of
pleasure he felt he was losing all consciousness when the doctor
suddenly stopped short and said--

"This is indeed, a pretty piece of business, seducing your young
cousin; you must be cured of such doings in future by means of a good
flogging with an excellent birch rod, and on this your saucy bottom."

Here he let fall the arm that had clasped the boy's waist, and let his
hand wander over the plump, hard, and lovely orbs. The doctor now took
up the rod which he had previously dropped to occupy his hand with the
charming young prick he had just been so deliciously frigging. Shaking
the rod angrily at the now trembling youth, he exclaimed, in a fierce
voice--

"Now, you young rascal, down, down on your knees, and beg to be
flogged."

The poor boy was forced, trembling, to obey. This over, the doctor
commanded the delinquent to lie down across the sofa. Reluctantly he
complied, but at last he straddled across it with his snow-white plump
backside fully bared to view, and a fair mark to the threatening rod.
He looked like a young Adonis displaying his beauties to a satyr. The
doctor was greatly excited at the lovely prospect, and gloated his eyes
on the beautiful display, and, then and there, there sprang up a
determination to fully enjoy the ravishing of these virgin charms
before many weeks were over. Lifting the rod on high, he cried out--

"Now, you young villain, I'll teach you to look up young ladies'
petticoats again, I warrant."

Clasping him tight round the waist, the rod descended smartly on the
lovely hillocks of the boy's charming backside.

"There! there!" cried the doctor at each blow.

"Oh! sir, oh! Do pray forgive me!" screamed the beautiful youth, as he
felt the stinging strokes descend on his hitherto virgin posteriors.

"Oh sir. Oh! sir. I'll never do so any more. Oh! sir. I won't indeed.
Oh! pray, sir, have mercy."

The doctor, whose erotic passions were fully aroused, was deaf to all
his entreaties, and kept on flogging harder and harder, and faster and
faster while the poor boy's bottom bounded and tossed upon the sofa;
but he was kept in a firm position by the strong arm of the doctor,
who, to hold him the faster, had laid hold of the stiff cock still at
full stand.

"No, no," said he, "you shall not escape my cuts, I assure you,"
cutting at the lovely delicate buttocks with all his might.

"Oh! oh! sir; mercy, mercy; I can't bear it."

"You must bear it, you young rascal you shall have no mercy until I
have made your bottom bleed for your crime."

The poor youth, from the pain he was suffering, bounded up and down on
the sofa as he felt the stinging blows descend upon his bottom. This
action caused his standing cock to rub up and down in the doctor's warm
hand, who seemed to have accidently laid hold of it. The effect was
such that the poor youth hardly knew whether he felt most pleasure or
pain, for while his posteriors were of a burning heat, the warmth flew
to the opposite part, which was so deliciously clasped in the doctor's
caressing hand. He ground his teeth with pleasure and pain, he ceased
to cry out, but sobbed and moaned with the excess of indefinable
feelings. The doctor never ceased lecturing him, dwelling continually
on the beauties of his lovely young cousin and the scene in the arbour.
He thought but of her, of her lovely pink little slit so sweetly shaded
with soft downy short curls; how she had so charmingly caressed his
cock, until he felt a heave and a shudder, another, a sensation as if
he was going to expire, a short cry, a catching of his breath. Wildly
and vigorously he thrust his member down on the doctor's warm hand, he
shut his eyes, he felt not the rod, although the doctor redoubled the
strokes with all the force of his arm, and drew blood at every cut. A
bound, a convulsive start, and he felt as if his lifeblood were coming
from him--out it spurted in large drops on the sofa and on the doctor's
hand. The youth had with difficulty shed another tribute to Venus. For
a moment or two he felt as if in paradise, but a sharp cut from the rod
quickly aroused him. He was soon fully alive again to its tortures.

"Why, you young rascal, what is this you have been doing on my best
sofa, eh, sir?" said the doctor.

Another sharp stroke demanded a reply.

"I, sir. Oh! sir; indeed I--that is--indeed, I don't know."

"No lies or evasions here, sir, for they will not avail you. Your
bottom shall pay for this nastiness. Why, what is it? What can it be? I
never saw the like of this in my life, I declare," and he examined it
with his eyeglass, saying more to the same effect.

Poor Master Dale was, we know, quite in the dark as to what it could
be, or how it came there.

"Has this ever occurred to you before," asked the doctor.

"Yes, sir, yesterday, when my cousin was caressing it in her mouth,"
replied the frightened youth, "but I really don't know how it happened,
and did not mean any harm."

"Oh, indeed!" said the doctor, "your mother did not mention that, did
she see you?"

"No, sir, it happened just as she was coming through the shrubbery, and
was all over before she reached the arbour."

"And so your cousin took it into her mouth, why did she do that?"

"She was curious to see what was under the skin of its head, and
finding it would not go back without hurting me, she put it into her
mouth to wet it and make it go back easier, which it did for the first
time; she pulled it forward again, and again put it into her mouth to
push the skin back with her lips, when I felt funny all over, and
something came out of me into her mouth."

"Indeed! Well, you must tell me all about that another time. This
flogging will be enough for the present, but I shall punish you for
your nastiness some other time. Put up your trousers, in a day or two I
shall want you in this room to pay for your dirty conduct."

The poor boy retired, sobbing hysterically.

The second day after this the doctor sent for Master Dale, who, in the
meantime, had occupied the bedroom next to mine. The doctor was in his
private room in his dressing-gown, long and flowing, so that for the
moment it concealed the fact that he had nothing but his shirt on below
it. He received Master Dale somewhat sternly, saying--

"Now, sir, for your punishment for your last nasty misconduct."

"Oh, sir," said the frightened and trembling youth, "I really could not
help it," and he began to cry. "Oh! pray, sir, don't flog me so hard
again."

"The more trouble that you give me, the harder will be the flogging.
Now take off your jacket and waistcoat."

The youth did so.

"Now come close to me."

The doctor then lowered down Dale's trousers, and raising his shirt,
contemplated with great pleasure the pretty belly of the lovely boy,
and then turning him round, under pretence of seeing if the weals of
the last flogging were still visible, he gazed on his white firm
backside and swelling thighs, examining the marks still left from the
previous punishment. He then turned him round, and inspected the pretty
little cock, which, under the mortal fear he was in, hung down its head
in a limp and pitiable state.

"And so this is the little offender," said he, applying his hand to it,
and squeezing and pressing it gently. "What a naughty little thing it
is!"

The youth could not avoid showing the pleasure these lascivious
caresses gave him, and smiled.

"Oh, don't smile, sir, this is no laughing matter. Look at the marks of
the mess you made on my sofa," pointing to it. "I can't have my
furniture spoiled in this manner, so if your little cock is to be
naughty again, I must flog you upon my knees, but first come here; take
off these trousers, which hanging about the legs are only in the
way--there. Now sit down on my knee, and tell me all about this naughty
little thing."

He drew aside his robe, so that the boy's bare bottom came in naked
contact with his brawny naked thighs, and the youth could feel the
doctor's prick swelling up, although that part was still covered with
his shirt. The doctor, taking hold of the youth's now standing prick,
asked if it had ever behaved so badly before the scene with his pretty
young cousin.

"No sir, never. I never thought of it until I got sight of her bare
bottom and other parts by accident."

The doctor continued his toyings, caressing the young balls, and
feeling all over the plump and firm backside.

"Why, he is going to be naughty again!" said the doctor, as the youth's
prick throbbed under his exciting touches. "I must flog your bottom for
all this, for it is very naughty and improper. Why, you seem to take a
pleasure in it."

"Oh, sir, I never felt anything so delightful," said Master Dale.

"The more reason I should punish you, but remember, you bad boy, if you
are to do that dirty thing again, you must do it on my knee, and not on
the sofa."

The doctor then took the birch in hand, and with his arm round the
boy's waist, drew him to him, but before laying him across his knee, he
slipped the boy's shirt over his head, leaving him stark naked in all
the glorious fairness of skin and beauty of form. The doctor's eyes
gloated over the charming sight, but becoming too excited to pause
longer, he drew up his own shirt, displaying his fine pego at full
stretch. He bent the boy's warm body over his brawny thighs, and with
his arm pressed his glowing form against his own rampant pego--Dale's
young stiffened cock rubbing against the naked thigh he lay on. The
doctor now raised the rod, and said--

"Now, sir, for your punishment, I must flog this round, hard, little
bottom, till it reddens again."

Whack, whack, went the birch rod, but with much less force than on the
previous occasion, but still sufficiently stinging to cause the youth
to move up and down, rubbing his cock against the doctor's thighs, and
causing him such ecstasies as hardly to allow him to feel the blows.
His warm soft flesh, too, rubbing against the doctor's large, stiff
tool, soon put them both in a delirium of delight. The doctor then
changed his position, and drew the boy more over his belly, so that his
great prick could get between the boy's thighs, rubbing under his balls
in the trough between the buttocks, while the boy's cock rubbed against
the doctor's belly.

"Now," said the doctor, "I have got you fast, and must teach you not to
play such naughty tricks in future."

Whack--whack, again went the rod, causing the most delicious movements
of the boy's backside upon the doctor's excited prick, and not less
upon his own, which was rubbing against the doctor's belly, giving
fresh pleasure at each repetition of the blow. But neither of them had
spent yet. The boy's bottom was now red with a glowing heat, and his
cock was in a state of intense excitement, and the doctor's tool was as
stiff and randy as possible. The doctor now ceased his flogging, and
squeezing the boy tight against his person, said--

"Well, you have not done that naughty thing to-day--the flogging has
done you good."

The lovely boy looked up and smiled. He had felt the doctor's large
prick working away between his thighs, and pressing against the cleft
of his buttocks. As the doctor relaxed his hold, the boy turned half
round, thus releasing it from its confinement. Looking down, he beheld
the large stiff monster imbedded in a forest of dark curly hair,
presenting a startling contrast to his own small member, which was as
yet hardly fledged with a silky down around it.

"Ah!" said the doctor, who observed the flush of excitement the sight
of his superior prick gave the boy, "what a shame it is of you to
compel me to flog you in this manner, without my trousers. I must give
you a lecture--so sit on my knee, thus," placing him so that his lovely
bottom should press against the huge prick. Taking the boy's cock in
his hand, he said--

"How stiff it is."

"Yes, sir, I can't help it."

"Well, you must not play such naughty tricks. I can't allow it. You are
too young yet."

The doctor worked the skin of the sweet boy's cock up and down.

"Was that the way your pretty cousin played with it?"

"Yes, sir, and then she took it in her mouth."

"And did you like to have it done to you, you bad boy?"

"Oh! yes, sir, it is such pleasure."

"Does it really give you so much pleasure?"

"Yes indeed, it was most delicious."

"Dear me, I must try if it would do so to me, take hold of my cock and
rub it up and down, as she did, that I may know how it feels."

"The dear boy had already longed to do so, but had been afraid to say
so. He now seized with avidity the noble prick, so stiffly standing
beside him. He could hardly grasp it in his hand, and worked the skin
up and down in the most delicious manner. The doctor was in ecstasies.

"Oh, you naughty boy, to teach your master such bad things."

"Is it not very nice, sir?" said the charming youth, as the doctor's
buttocks responded to every stroke of his hand.

"Well, it is, indeed, very nice, I could not have believed it; but if
ever I catch you at it again, you may be sure I shall flog you."

And the doctor responded to every rub upon his prick with another rub
upon the boy's cock, until almost at the same moment a most delicious
mutual spend was the result of their lascivious toyings.

"Now," said the doctor, "put on your clothes, and remember you must
avoid such naughty tricks in future, or your bottom will pay for it."

The doctor made me aware of this, and arranged for a meeting of us
three, under the pretence of inattention which I was to simulate and
draw young Dale into some fault that would require punishment. It was
also arranged that I was to initiate him still more into the secret
pleasures of mutual satisfaction, so as to prepare him for still
greater gratification to the lecherous doctor, who liked nothing better
than "teaching the young idea how to shoot."

Accordingly, after passing a delicious night with my lovely and
glorious aunt and the doctor, in which we practised every delightful
method of enjoyment, and in which the doctor stimulated himself by
recalling and describing the exciting interview with the innocent
youth, I left them, and entered young Dale's room. He had insensibly
kicked off all the clothes, and lay on his back exposed, with his
promising young cock at full stand, throbbing from time to time; and by
the involuntary movements of his body, and the smile on his face, he
was evidently realising, in his sleep, the scene he had enacted with
his pretty young cousin. He was quite charming to look at, his young
and throbbing prick was deliciously fair, and you could see the blue
veins coursing through it, the top was only partially uncovered, the
point of the head showing its vermillion tip in fine contrast to the
creamy white and crossed blue veins of the stiffened shaft. His balls
were as yet not fully developed, but such as they were, they formed a
closely drawn up little bag, crimped and wrinkled, and felt as hard as
stones. I gently handled them, which made him heave his bottom in
evident ecstasy. It was all so beautiful and enticing, and I could not
resist stooping down, and taking the delicious morsel in my mouth.
Pressing the glorious head with my lips, I thrust, to his infinite
delight, the foreskin back, his buttocks instinctively rose to meet my
voluptuous and lascivious proceeding. He awoke on the instant, but in
that dreamy state that made him think he was only realising the
previous dream. His hands embraced my head, and pressed it down closer
on the delicious prick which already touched the back of my mouth. He
cried out in an ecstasy of delight.

"Oh, my darling Ellen, what a joy you are giving me. Oh! oh! it is
greater than I can bear."

I felt by the electric stiffening of his young cock that the crisis was
close at hand. I tickled his tightened balls with my hand, and pressed
a finger hard against his bottom-hole, but without entering more than
the depth of the nail, at the very instant that he poured his young
tribute into my longing mouth. I immediately swallowed the greater
portion, lubricating the still throbbing shaft with a part. For some
minutes he lay on his back, with closed eyes, in all the
after-enjoyment, heightened by the continued suction of his still
throbbing prick, which I kept up for a short time. At last he opened
his eyes. It was broad daylight, and when I lifted my head, his eyes
seemed almost to start out of their sockets in a sort of incredulous
surprise, at finding it was not his dear young Ellen, but me, his
school companion. For a minute or two he was speechless with
consternation, until taking hold of his fast receding little cock, I
asked if I had not given him quite as much pleasure as his darling
Ellen had previously done.

"Is it you? and Ellen! how do you know anything about my cousin?"

"Your cousin, is she? I did not know that, but when I came in, you were
dreaming of her, and muttering in your sleep the delight she gave you
by sucking your prick; so I thought I would give you the true pleasure
of the thing, and thus realise your dream; besides, I, myself, not only
love to suck a prick, but also to have my own sucked, and I could
neither resist the opportunity, nor fail to be delighted that you
should already have practical knowledge of its enjoyment--did I not
give you the greatest pleasure?"

"Oh, yes; it was most delicious, and then I thought it was my pretty
cousin, even after I awoke, which made it doubly delightful, for I had
no idea it would be so nice with another boy."

"Why not? see this charming little fellow is already raising himself up
again at the mere thought; look how its head is showing its ruby face,
and how it throbs. Ah! I must suck it again--it is so delicious."

I threw myself upon it, and devoured it at once, rapidly moving my head
up and down, and titillating the orifice of the urethra with my tongue.
I quickly drove him half mad with excitement. My mouth was full of
saliva. I slobbered some out on my fingers, and lubricated all about
the aperture of his charming backside, and then, as he became still
more furious in the upward lunges of his bottom, and downward pressures
of his hands on my head, I thrust my middle finger up his fundament,
and worked away, frigging it in unison with the movements of my mouth.
I drove him half frantic with pleasure, the ecstasy again seized him,
and with a cry of agonised delight, and a convulsive shudder, he poured
a still more copious draught of love's essence into my mouth, which, as
before, I greedily swallowed. He lay panting in ecstatic joy for a much
longer period than before, with convulsive upward thrusts of his still
half-stiffened prick within my mouth, which:' still continued its
pressures and suctions to his infinite delight. At last I rose. He held
out his arms. I precipitated myself into them; our lips met in sweet
embrace. I thrust my tongue into his mouth, and solicited him to do the
same, and we had some delicious tongueing, nature having at once
achieved his love education. We were closely entwined in a loving
embrace. I had become terribly excited notwithstanding the hard work I
had undergone during the night, and my prick stood stiff as iron
pressing against his belly. Suddenly the thought occurred to him that
he ought to gratify me in like manner as I had done him. He proposed
it, and begged me to turn from off him, and lie on my back. I
immediately complied, and pulling up my shirt, displayed my immense
splitter in all its glory.

"Good heavens!" he cried, "what an enormous cock! Why, it is bigger
than the doctor's."

"Oh! you have seen the doctor's, have you?" He blushed, and
acknowledged it. I drew from him an account of their proceedings, which
I already knew, but I was at the same time delighted to have surprised
the acknowledgment from himself, in his wonder at seeing my large
proportions. I made him show me all he had done to the doctor, and the
doctor to him; as all this was paving the way for future proceedings
with the doctor--in fact, the innocent youth was already playing into
our hands. His admiration of and handling my prick was meanwhile
exciting me up to the greatest pitch. As I had continued questioning
him regarding his proceedings with the doctor, he could only play with
my prick in his hands. Now that matters were getting too warm for
further discussion, he stooped down, but could only get the head and a
small portion of the upper part of the shaft into his mouth. His lips
closed beneath the gland in the most exquisite manner. I begged him to
grasp the lower part of the shaft with one hand, and to thrust a finger
of the other up my bottom-hole, which I had already lubricated by
spitting on my fingers and conveying the saliva in the desired
direction. He obeyed with the docility of an apt apprentice--and thus
working in unison, quickly brought on the ecstatic crisis. I seized his
head in my hands, and, at the final discharge thrust it down on my
delighted prick, as I poured out a perfect torrent of sperm, nearly
choking the poor youth with the length of prick I thrust into his
mouth. He was obliged to withdraw for an instant to take breath, but I
was pleased to see that he instantly resumed his delicious sucking of
my prick, which he continued to do until it gradually shrunk up to very
diminished proportions. I then drew him upon me, and we had another
sweet embrace of lips and tongues, and then, side by side, we held a
long converse on erotic matters. He told me all the tale of his affair
with his cousin, and, although I was already well acquainted with it, I
was glad to draw all the particulars from himself. I had seen the note
his mother wrote to the doctor. The minuteness and undisguised
description she had therein given struck me as very strange, and I
augured that she herself must be a lewd and lecherous person, to have
done more than merely hint at the affair, instead of dwelling,
doubtless in erotic delight, on such details. So I pumped him as to
what sort of woman his mamma was. His description showed that she was a
fine, full grown woman, old, in his opinion, but in reality in the
prime of life, between thirty-five and forty. He had not scanned her
proportions with any erotic thought and did not seem to attach the idea
of the woman to her--only that of the mother. But I drew out of him
that she was broad in the shoulders, full in the bosom, with a small
waist, small feet, and small hands, a very fine head of hair, and fine
eyes--evidently a desirable woman. Already I had set my imagination in
play, and began to hope I might some day work my way into her favour.
It will be found how well I succeeded, as these true memories will
describe when I arrive at the period of my success with her. For the
present I had advanced the erotic education of the dear youth
considerably, and thus prepared him for further initiation at the hands
of the doctor and his glorious and magnificent _cara sposa_, who had
already determined to enjoy his first fruits in cunny land. We had a
similar enjoyment, carried somewhat further the next morning, in which
we practised more fully the frigging of the bottom, and discussed the
pleasure it produced. I was gradually leading him on. That morning I
purposely arranged that we should be late in entering the school-room.
The doctor sternly reprimanded us, and told us we must attend him in
his private room after twelve o'clock. Poor Dale turned pale as he
heard this, dreading the punishment to come of which his experience was
so recent and so severe.

At twelve we, apparently ruefully, entered the doctor's _sanctum
sanctorum_. He had preceded us by some few minutes, and had already
donned his long dressing-gown, by which I was certain that he had at
the same time doffed his pantaloons.

"Now then, boys, you must prepare for your punishment, I cannot allow
this evidently wilful inattention. Off with your clothes except your
shirts and stockings."

We hesitatingly stripped; poor Harry Dale weeping at the thought of the
dreaded punishment. I deemed it prudent also to draw a long face. The
doctor spread a towel over his sofa, saying we had such naughty cocks
that we were constantly dirtying his sofa. He then desired us to kneel
on it with our heads down, and our tails well up. He then rolled up our
shirts, and tucked them in above the small of our backs, in doing which
he indulged in various lascivious touchings, which excited us as well
as himself, and all our three cocks were at full stand. Harry Dale
turned his head to gaze at mine, and could not resist putting his hand
upon it, and gently pressing its large stiff shaft. Young Dale's
smaller, but very beautiful member, which was daily developing itself
in a striking manner, also excited me, and I reciprocated his caresses.

"This will never do," said the doctor, "I must flog this evil spirit
out of you."

He threw off his dressing-gown to be more at his ease, he said, and
taking rod in hand, applied it gently in turns to each of our
projecting bottoms. It was not for punishment but for excitement that
he operated upon us. He quickly threw our bottoms all in a glow, and
our excitement became intense, and we wriggled our bums in evident
delight. This was the point the doctor wished to attain, that he might
arrive at his desired object, which was the possession of young Dale's
bottom-hole.

"Stop, stop, my dear boys, I see you are at your naughty tricks again,
but there must be no spending yet; get up. We must all strip to the
buff, and I shall show you how they used to flog me when I was at
school. Stand up, Charles."

I did so, and the doctor for an instant handled, in evident delight, my
huge stiff-standing pego, drawing young Dale's attention to its much
larger dimensions than his own.

"Now, lean half forward on the sofa. Dale, put your arms round his
waist, and stow away this charming rampant little fellow between the
cheeks of Charles' buttocks. Charles, do you spit on your hand, and
moisten between the cheeks, and then press with your hand his throbbing
young prick against the cleft."

I did as directed. Young Dale felt so deliciously sheathed that he
thrust his cock well forward.

"Now," said the doctor, "you are properly horsed, as we used to say,
and now, for a little more flogging of these fine hard, rosy mounts,"
and he lasciviously caressed them before applying the rod.

Whack--whack--whack--fell the strokes, sufficiently sharply to make
Master Dale wince and wriggle his bottom to and fro. Quickly the
exciting pleasure overcame all pain, and his lust rising, he thrust
furiously in the artificial channel he was operating in. I now
shortened the grasp of my hand on his shaft, and pressing it somewhat
upwards, raising my buttocks at the same time, I directed it so fairly
upon the aperture that at the next push it entered fully two inches
within; then again favouring his return stroke, he completely sheathed
himself up to the meeting of his belly against my buttocks. I gave him
a pressure which had an instant effect, and he began to thrust fast and
furiously, evidently enjoying it to the utmost. I let him feel the full
enjoyment of his new quarters, only telling him to lay hold of my cock
and frig me; and then I cried out to the doctor--

"Flog him well, sir, he has thrust his cock into my bottom-hole."

This was the very thing the doctor most wished for. So he continued his
flogging only to such an extent as to still more inflame the lust of
the now lecherously excited boy, who shortly brought on the final
crisis and died away in delight as he shot his first tribute within the
divine temple of Priapus. At the moment of the crisis coming on, the
doctor had ceased his flogging and wetting two fingers gradually
introduced them into the bottom-hole of young Dale, and frigged him in
unison with his movements into me, so that the ecstasy was almost more
than the poor boy could bear. He lay almost inanimate on my back, but
his still throbbing half-standing cock responded to the inward
pressures I was exercising upon it. The doctor had ceased his flogging
to admit and caress the well-formed posterior of the charming boy.
Becoming greatly excited, he drew him off me, and closely embraced him,
but professing at the same time to be greatly shocked; his prick,
meanwhile, gloriously stiff, pressed hard against young Dale's belly.
The doctor then relaxing his hold, young Dale gazed, with pleased
enjoyment, on the size and stiffness of the doctor's cock, and, by an
impulse of passion, took it in hand, knelt before him, and put it into
his mouth, and sucked it lasciviously. The doctor placed his hands on
Dale's head, and pressed it down for a minute or two, and then begged
the dear youth to rise, as he did not yet wish to spend--thanking him
for the exquisite pleasure he had given him.

"Now," said he, "it is your turn to flog, so Charlie, you must be
horsed upon me, and Harry Dale shall take a first lesson in the art of
flogging upon your posteriors."

The pose was arranged as before. My formidable weapon was placed
between the cheeks of the doctor's fine fat backside. His hand pressed
my cock as I had done to Dale's. Dale took the rod in hand, and at the
very first cut made me wince, for the young rogue laid on with a will.
The doctor had applied a good quantity of saliva to the end of my
prick, and thrusting out his buttocks, he quickly guided it into the
longing orifice, in which I vigorously sheathed myself to the utmost
extent. I seized his cock and squeezed it gently, but he begged me not
to make him spend, but to enjoy myself to the utmost, crying out, at
the same time to young Dale--

"Flog him well, Harry, for he has thrust his great tool up my
bottom-hole; it is wonderful how it ever could get in."

Indeed so little could young Dale believe in the possibility of such a
thing that he stopped flogging to assure himself of the fact, by both
touch and sight. I drew my prick out and in that he might be perfectly
satisfied of the truth, and the doctor wriggled his backside to and fro
to show what pleasure it gave him. Of course, all this was preliminary
to the grand attack he meant afterwards to make on the virgin aperture
in young Dale's bottom. After Harry had assured himself of the fact, he
pitched into my poor bottom with redoubled vigour, which, though it
greatly excited me at the moment, made my poor bum smart for days
afterwards. I quickly sent a torrent of sperm far into the entrails of
the doctor, to his great delight, but he tenaciously avoided spending
lest his powers should fail to overcome the natural obstacle of a
virgin bottom-hole, especially in one so young as Dale. Consequently,
after retaining me for some few moments in the delightful pressures of
the internal folds, he allowed me to withdraw, all reeking with my own
sperm. It was now the doctor's turn to be flogged by me, while he was
horsed on Harry's loins. As Harry had already found out what pleasure a
bottom-hole gave to the plugger of it, and had also seen how the doctor
seemed to enjoy, and so easily engulphed, the much larger weapon I
possessed, he had no idea there could be any pain accompanying it, and
consequently he lent himself entirely to every direction that was given
him. He placed himself in the easiest position, stuck his bottom well
out, stretching wide the channel between the orbs, and exposing a
charming little rosy aperture most tempting to the sight; indeed, the
doctor instantly knelt to pay his devotions to it, devouring it with
kisses, and thrusting his lecherous tongue within its tight little
folds, taking the opportunity to thoroughly lubricate it with his
spittle. This preliminary, followed by a little frigging with his
middle finger, which produced nothing but pleasurable sensations in the
dear youth, completely captivated him. The doctor wisely informed him
that the first attack was sure to be somewhat painful, but that if he
felt it so, he was not to draw away his body, but simply to complain,
and the doctor would instantly remain quiet without withdrawing, and he
would then find that the strange sensation would rapidly pass off, and
allow a further progress, which would be again arrested if the pain was
renewed. In this way he would eventually find that the pleasure would
become indescribably delicious, as he had seen how both Charlie and
himself had enjoyed it. Poor Dale assured the doctor he might proceed
at once, and he would be perfectly docile. So the doctor first asking
me to suck his cock a little to moisten it well, put the charming youth
in the best position, telling him to strain as if he wished to void
himself, then applying his well-lubricated pego to the rosy orifice, by
gentle pressure, he succeeded, with hardly a twinge of pain to the dear
boy, in housing the head and about two inches of the shaft within the
delicious receptacle. Here the pain became so great that young Dale
would have withdrawn himself away from the doctor had the latter not
taken the precaution to seize him by the two hips, and hold him as if
in a vice, but without attempting a further insertion then.

"Keep still, my dear boy, and I will not move, and you will find in a
minute or two that the strange sensation will pass away."

Turning his head to me, he said--

"Charlie, gently frig the dear boy."

I immediately did so, which rapidly had the effect of exciting him up
to a pitch that made him forget all pain, and he even thrust his bottom
further back, and as I had taken the opportunity of the pause to drop
some more spittle on the lower shaft, a further gentle pressure forced
it in almost up to the hilt. Here, again, young Dale cried out to stop,
it was so painful.

The doctor paused again. I continued caressing his now inflamed and
stiffened prick. His convulsive twitches, caused by my lascivious
caresses, were followed by involuntary wrigglings, which of themselves
completed the entire insertion of the doctor's excited prick. He still
continued quiet, allowing the passions of the youth to become still
more excited. Then gradually and gently withdrawing, and as gently
again thrusting within, he went on until the youth's movements betrayed
the raging lust that possessed him--then the doctor increased his pace.
I frigged on fast and furious, and in a few minutes they both died away
in wild excess of the most ecstatic joy. As to Dale, his gaspings and
wild cries of delight proved that the final joys were almost too great
for him to bear. The doctor had drooped his head upon his chest, and
closed his eyes, in all the gratification of having ravished the first
fruits of this charming youth's beauteous bottom, and I could see by
his momentary convulsive thrusts, and the pressures of his hands on
Dale's hips to draw the bottom more completely against his belly, as
well as by the broken sighs that heaved his bosom, how exquisitely he
was enjoying his triumph. Gradually his cock reduced its dimensions,
but even when quite down and soft, it left the tight sheath it was in
with a "plop" showing how well and close those delicious folds had
embraced it. The doctor would not allow young Dale to rise until he had
embraced and kissed the lovely bottom that had just yielded him such
intense satisfaction. Then, drawing the youth to his bosom, he embraced
him most tenderly, and thanked him for the heroic manner in which he
had borne the attack, and told him he would never suffer so much in
after-attacks as he had done in this first taking of the virginity of
his bottom-hole.

It was thus this dear youth was initiated into our mysteries, and
henceforward he became an apt disciple, and by being introduced into
our interior circle, added much to the variety and enjoyment of our
orgies. For, as may well be supposed, my glorious and most lecherous
aunt thoroughly enjoyed the taking of his first tribute in the
legitimate temple of holy Mother Venus. I was present on the occasion,
which was supposed to be unknown to the doctor. The first coup was on
her belly, the sight of which and her truly magnificent cunt wildly
excited Dale, and his cock stood stiffer and really bigger than ever.
It was quite surprising how rapidly it developed when once he got
thoroughly into hardness. He fucked aunt twice, spending as rapidly as
she herself, lecherous as she was at all times. I acted postillion to
them both. I stopped further combats until I too could enter the field.
So aunt mounted upon him, and falling forward lent her divine backside
to all my fantasies. Twice we ran a course without changing. Then aunt
herself claimed my big prick for the contentment of her randy cunt. We
quickly changed positions. I, on my back, received dear aunt's
delicious cunt on my stiff-and-hard-as-wood-standing pego. She
straddled over me, and sank her luscious orbit down upon me until our
two hairs were crushed between us. Here, by rising and falling, she had
another delicious discharge before bending down to be embraced by my
loving arms. She then presented her most glorious bottom to the wonder
and admiration of dear Harry, who had been caressing and kissing it,
and at the critical moment had thrust a frigging finger in, and turning
his head in front had greatly increased the pleasure of my loved and
lecherous aunt by sucking the large nipple of her wondrously fine
bubby. When once she was fairly down on my belly, Harry scrambled up
behind, and quickly inserted his already fine but still comparatively
small prick, which, of course, found ready entrance where my splitter
had previously opened and greased the way; but he gave a cry, almost of
pain, or at least of surprise, on finding the sudden grip which my
aunt, with her wonderful power of pressure, instantly gave him. At it
we went, fast and furious, until again the grand crisis overtook my
lascivious aunt, who spent deliriously. We boys both paused a second or
two to allow her to enjoy her discharge to the utmost; then
recommencing with increased vigour and speed, we soon both discharged
at one and the same time our freights into the delighted vessels that
were conferring such exquisite enjoyment upon us. Aunt, too, did not
fail to join us at the ecstatic moment. We lay for many minutes panting
in all the after-sensations of the most exquisite joys humanity can
revel in. We kept it up for several hours, aunt sucking young Dale's
toothsome prick while I gamahuched and postillioned her to her infinite
satisfaction. In this way, and with repeated changes from one
receptacle to the other but always both occupied at once, we at last
gained a reprieve, and retired to well-deserved repose. The doctor, who
had kept out of the way on this our first bout with my glorious aunt,
afterwards apparently surprised us together, and, after giving us and
receiving a pretty sharp flogging, he joined in all the ecstasies of
our orgies. He especially delighted in being into my bottom while I
fucked his wife, and he himself had the double pleasure of having young
Dale's fast growing pego into his bottom at the same time. It was some
time longer before I succeeded in completely sheathing my huge prick in
the delicious bottom-hole of the dear youth, but at last I succeeded to
the utmost extent of my wishes, and although I continued to hurt him
for some weeks after the first attack, he could at last entertain me
with perfect ease, and we were thus enabled to play successively into
each other's bottoms, and every one of us enjoyed the exquisite delight
of fucking and being fucked at the same time.

As we grew more lasciviously intimate, I often turned the conversation
on his mother and cousin. At last I told him, I thought from his
description that his mother would be a good fuck, and that if ever I
had the opportunity I might cover his attack on his cousin by fucking
his mother; only we must lead her to believe that she took my
virginity. The idea pleased him. He began to think his mother must be a
desirable woman for me, as I was so largely hung; and then the
opportunity that I would give him to enjoy his longing for his cousin
was an inducement to second my views to the utmost. Towards the close
of the half-year his birthday occurred, and his mother could not do
less than have him home for the day. She felt that her niece would be
in greater security when Harry begged she would allow him to bring with
him the doctor's nephew--myself, to wit--telling her that we had become
very close friends as well as schoolfellows. I had previously told him
I should play the complete innocent, but should take care some time or
the other during the day to put myself in such a position that his
mother should get a glimpse of my prick, so that if not immediately
successful, I might pave the way for future success. His birthday fell
on a Saturday. We were only asked to spend the day, with the intention
of returning in the evening. Accordingly, on the happy day we made our
appearance after breakfast. I have before said that his mother lived in
a very pretty cottage ornee, about a mile and a half from the
parsonage. We were most kindly received by her. She first lovingly
embraced her son, wishing him many happy returns of the day, declaring
that he was much improved, &c. She then turned to me, and gracefully
and kindly bade me welcome. The niece was a charming girl, just budding
into womanhood. She blushed greatly in welcoming her cousin, and
bashfully did the same to me. We spent the earlier hours in
conversation; the mother having much to ask and to hear from her son,
from whom she had never before been separated. I had thus time to scan
her well. She was a fine, broad built, well standing up woman, with
broad shoulders, and hips that gave promise of good form beneath.
Without being beautiful, her face was a well formed oval, with really
fine eyes, to which her son's description had hardly done justice. It
appeared to me that a good deal of suppressed passion lurked in their
expression, and I already began to think she would be a real _bonne
bouche_ if once we could come to close quarters. After luncheon we
strolled in the garden. The leaves had already fallen, but the
afternoon was bright and warm for the end of November. I told young
Dale to keep close to his mother, and not show any wish to stray away
with his cousin--feeling certain that if she became anxious about their
movements I should have no chance to play off my little game. All went
as I could wish, we threw his mother off her guard, and she then began
to show closer attention to me. I acted the ingenuous and innocent
youth to perfection, but at the same time, in thinking of her charms, I
let my prick get up to half-stand, so as to show its large proportions
under my trousers. I very soon perceived that it had struck her notice,
and her attention became concentrated upon me. She questioned me a good
deal, and especially sought to find out if _peculiar_ intimacy existed
between her son and me. I played the innocent, and professed that the
utmost intimacy existed; but when she tried to find out if it had gone
to what she really meant, I gave such an innocent character to our
intimacy that she was quite convinced of my thorough ignorance of all
erotic tendencies, and she became more endearing in her manner of
addressing me.

Harry and I had previously agreed that after I addressed to him some
particular frivolous remark, he should seize the first occasion near a
shrubbery to go on more ahead, and alarm his mamma by turning round a
corner. Our stratagem succeeded. She immediately hastened to follow
them. As soon as she had turned the corner I drew out my tool, now at
full stand, and placed myself so that when she returned she should see
it fully developed, while I would take care not apparently to see her,
but be intent upon piddling. To the utmost of my wish it fell out. She
had told her son to stop and returned to join me. My eyes being turned
downwards did not let her become aware that I was watching for her, but
I could see the bottom of her petticoats as she turned the corner, and
also that she came to a sudden stop, which must have been at the moment
she caught sight of the noble proportions before her. I took care to
pass my hand once or twice backwards or forwards while pissing, and
then shook my prick deliberately, and exposed the whole length and
breadth of it for a minute or two before buttoning it up, during which
I could see she stood perfectly still, rooted to where she had first
stopped. After I had buttoned up, I stooped down, apparently to tie my
shoe, but in fact to give time for it to be supposed I had not seen her
previous approach. So when I rose up she was already at my side. There
was a flush on her cheek and a fire in her eye that showed the bait was
swallowed. My role was to play the perfect innocent, and appear quite
unconscious of her having seen me.

She took my arm, and I could feel that her hand trembled. She led me
along, hastily at first, until we joined her son and niece. After that
she became uncommonly endearing in her manner to me, making such
remarks as she thought would show her that I was not so innocent as I
looked, if my replies had jumped with her expectations. But I was in
reality too experienced not to pay her off in kind, and ended in making
her believe that she had a perfect virgin to deal with. We walked on,
she was evidently much preoccupied, becoming at times quite silent for
a minute or two, and then, gently pressing my arm, she would make some
endearingly flattering remark, at which I would look lovingly but
innocently up to her face to thank her for her kind opinion. On these
occasions her eyes sparkled in a peculiar manner, and her colour went
and came. After a while, her hand left my arm and rested on the
opposite shoulder, in a half embrace, which became warmer and warmer,
her conversation became more affectionate. She was profuse in her
congratulations that her son had found so charming a schoolfellow; and
here she halted, and turning half in front of me, said that she felt
that she could love me as if I were indeed her own dear son; and,
stooping slightly, she sought a kiss of maternal affection. I threw my
arms round her neck, and our lips met in a long and loving kiss--very
warm on her side, but a simple though affectionate kiss on mine.

"Oh!" I said, "how happy I shall be to call you my mamma, and I will
love you as if you were it, it is so good of you to allow me to do so.
This half-year has been the first time in my life that I ever was
separated from my mother--and, although my dear aunt is as kind as
possible to me, still I can't call her mamma. My guardian won't allow
me to go home for the Christmas holidays, but now I shall have a dear,
kind new mamma to make me happy." Here I again raised my lips for an
embrace, which was given with even more than the previous warmth. Her
arm had fallen to my waist, and she pressed me with energy to her
bosom, which I could feel was unexpectedly firm, and even hard. I had
great difficulty in keeping my unruly member down, that she might think
I took her warm embraces as nothing more than affectionate friendship.
I succeeded, however, and this, of course, more than ever convinced her
of my entire ignorance of carnal desires. As I closely embraced her,
and glued my lips to hers, she became greatly agitated, trembled
visibly, sighed convulsively, and then pushed me from her, and seemed
suddenly to recover herself, seized my arm, and hurried on after her
son. For, as may well be supposed she had purposely loitered behind to
allow them to get out of sight, before she indulged her uncontrollable
desire to embrace me. She spoke not a word until we came in sight of
them, apparently sauntering along, innocently enough. But Harry
afterwards told me that having seen how his mother had halted to gaze
at my prick, which he knew beforehand I meant she should see, he had
watched us through the shrubbery, and afterwards had noticed her warmth
of manner to me, and the loitering of her walk. He had turned a corner
some distance ahead of us, and was out of sight when his mother stopped
to embrace me, as described above. He guessed she would be in no hurry
to follow him. So rapidly advancing with his cousin, he got some way
before us, and choosing a place where he could see us through the
bushes when we did follow, he sat down on a garden seat, and drew his
cousin on his lap, asking her if she did not regret their hasty
separation after their last delicious interview, and telling her his
mother had seen them, which was the cause of his being sent as a
boarder to the doctor. She was much surprised to hear this, as her aunt
had never breathed a word of it to her; and she had been greatly
distressed at his being sent away from home. Of course his hands were
not idle; but first unbuttoning his trousers, he put his cock, now much
increased in size, into her hand. She at once observed how much larger
it had become, and began to caress it. He meanwhile was busy frigging
her little clitoris. He found that she was already quite moist, and he
had hardly frigged her a minute, when a sigh and an "Oh! how much more
pleasure you give me than my aunt does." She spent profusely, grasping
his prick with painful tenacity. Her breath was taken away for some
minutes. When she recovered a little, and was gazing lovingly with
half-closed eyes upon him, he at once recurred to her unexpected
confession.

"When does my mother do this to you?"

"Ever since you were sent away; your mother took me to sleep with her,
as she said, she felt so lonely after you left. For some time she used
to embrace me very lovingly, and hold me close pressed to her bosom. As
I always went to bed before her, I was generally sound asleep when she
joined me. I used at first to wonder how when I awoke in the early
morning my chemise was drawn up close to my neck, and your mother's was
in the same state, and our two naked bodies closely united by the
embracing arms of your mother. I even one morning found that my hand
was held by hers against that part which you are now feeling so nicely.
She had fallen asleep in this position, but I could feel that she was
as moist there as you have just made me. I could not help feeling it
was very nice, and gently removing her hand, I began to feel all over
her in that part and, do you know Harry, she is all covered with such
thick and curly hair there. In groping about, I felt the lips pouting
and thick, and on trying I found I could get my fingers in. I pushed
on, I got up to the knuckles, when I felt it give such a convulsive
pressure upon them, and her body was projected towards me with a heave
of her bottom, then drawn back, and pushed forward again, while her
arms pressed me closer to her, and she commenced some loving
expressions in her sleep. I felt something grow hard against my thumb,
it was just what you have been feeling.--'Oh! go on,' she cried."

"I renewed my tickling operations again, and I made her spend," Harry
continued. "As she came to her senses, I gamahuched her; I thrust my
tongue up her sweet little cunt, and licked up all the delicious
spendings. As I rose, with prick erect and standing stiff out of my
trousers, she seized it in her mouth, and, with very little sucking,
made me spend to excess, and the dear girl swallowed it with all the
luxury of the utmost voluptuousness. We had no time for more at that
moment, as I caught sight of mamma's dress through the trees. I
buttoned up hastily, and we strolled along, as if nothing had happened.
It was in our after-walk, when we had allayed mamma's suspicion, that
my dear Ellen continued her confessions."

The stiff thing pressing against her thumb was mamma's clitoris, which,
by her account, is wonderfully developed. She, knowing from her former
experience with me that it was the point of most exquisite enjoyment,
turned her finger upon it, and began awkwardly playing with it. It was
at this moment that the greater excitement awoke mamma, who finding to
her surprise what Ellen was doing, seized her hand, and pressing and
rubbing it with more art against her clitoris, continued its action
with exclamations of delight, declaring that Ellen was her dear
precious loved girl, and then with a positive cry of delight, spent
profusely over Ellen's hand. After panting for some time in perfect
bliss, she turned and took Ellen in her arms, kissing her most warmly,
and thrusting her tongue into Ellen's mouth, and then demanding hers in
return. After much embracing, mamma asked her how she came to do what
she found her doing when she awoke. Ellen described how she found her
hand held against it, and then two naked bodies pressed against each
other--that she was surprised at this, and wondered how it came so;
that on moving her hand she felt mamma give a throb down there, and a
push of her body forward, which made her finger slip easily in, this
still more surprised her, as she had tried often if her fingers could
get into her own, but it hurt her so much that she had given it up as
impossible; and now she had found one where all her fingers, up to the
knuckles, slipped in quite easily; the inside movements, and the
heavings of her aunt's body, showed that it gave her pleasure. In
continuing her movements she had felt a hard body at the upper part
pressing against the side of her hand; she withdrew her fingers to feel
this strange thing, and in doing so aunt awoke.

"And you know the rest, dear auntie, I was so glad that I had given you
so much pleasure."

"Dear, dear girl!" her aunt replied, "I shall love you more dearly than
ever; yes, and you, too, shall have the utmost pleasure. I have long
wished to initiate you into the secrets of womanhood, but thought you
too young to be able to keep secret such intimacy as we may indulge in.
Often in your sleep with your lovely naked charms exposed to me, and
pressed against my own lascivious person, have I enjoyed you, and even
made use of your own hand all unconscious in sleep, to excite me to a
still greater pitch; last night I had enjoyed you to the utmost,
kissing your lovely budding and hidden charms, and must have
unconsciously dropped off to sleep with my hand still pressing yours
against my secret charm. But now I must initiate you into the same
joys, even in a more exquisite way."

"Upon this she begged me to throw off my chemise, while she did the
same. We stood up to do this, and your mother took the opportunity to
pose me in every way, admiring and kissing me all over. I did the same
to her, and I can assure you, dear Harry, your mother is far better
made that I am, both in the bosom and the bottom, and with such firm
thighs and legs, and her affair is so well developed and pouting, and
with such silky curls all around it. I can feel you passing your
fingers through the curls of mine; but though it has more than it had
when last you felt and caressed it, it is nothing to dear auntie's.
When she had much excited me, and was evidently herself greatly so, she
desired me to lie across the bed on my back, and to draw my knees up so
as to let my feet rest on the edge. She then placed a footstool in
front, and kneeling upon it, after first feeling and caressing me down
there, she glued her lips to it, and after sucking a while began to
play with her tongue upon what you have been so deliciously rubbing.
She licked me most exquisitely, and soon made me die away in ecstasy of
delight. She sucked it for some time after, while I lay in a languid
state of joy. When at last she rose, she threw herself on the bed, and
our two naked bodies became closely united in the most loving embrace.
Her lips were wet with the moisture that had escaped from me, its
peculiar aromatic odour _m'enivrait_ and I could not help licking the
creamy juice from off her lips.

"'Oh, my beloved aunt,' I cried, 'you have given me the joy of
paradise, I must try and do as much for you.'

"'My darling Ellen, you will make me positively adore you. I now only
regret that I had not sooner taken you into my confidence, as I at once
perceive I might have done so in perfect safety. Yes, my darling, you
shall indeed try, and I shall instruct you as we advance how to obtain
the greatest amount of pleasure from our libidinous and lascivious
enjoyments, delights that are without risk, and from which we shall
have no anxieties as to fatal results, which are the consequence of
connection with the opposite sex, who only make use of us for their own
sensual enjoyment, and abandon us at the very moment they ought to
console and cherish us the most.'

"Dear aunt, again embracing me tenderly, threw herself in the same
position I had previously lay in. I knelt on the cushion as she had
done. But before proceeding to do as she had done to me, I could not
help pausing to gaze with delight on her natural charms. Oh! dear
Harry, you cannot imagine the beauty of that part of your mamma. Her
stomach is of the purest white, smooth and firm, round and beautiful.
Below a crease commences a large plumped out swelling seen through the
fair and thick silky curls that so much adorn it, then grandly rounded
sinks down between her thighs, and the beautifully pouting lips rise
richly tempting through the thickest of hair, that goes far beyond
between the large rounded orbs that project behind. At the upper part
of the lips, where they form a deep indented half-circle, I could
distinguish a stiff projecting object, as long and thicker than my
thumb. I now know that this is the centre of exquisite joy. Your mother
had since taught me to call it her clitoris, and says that although
seldom so strongly developed as in her case, it exists in every woman
and becomes stiff and excited as the final crisis of joy approaches. I
glued my lips around this charming object, and sucked it, and played
with my tongue around its point. Your mother, in an ecstasy of delight,
wriggled her bottom below me, and with both hands pressing my head down
on the excited point, gave utterance to the most loving and sensual
expressions. She begged me to pass the flat of my hand under my chin,
and introduce my thumb within the lips below, where I was sucking, and
move it backwards and forwards as much as I could. I did so, and
immediately found that it added greatly to your mother's delight.
Faster and faster grew her movements, until, with a cry of delight, a
firm pressure of my hand against her affair, and still firmer pressure
on my thumb, she suddenly ceased all movement, her hands relaxed their
hold of my head, the stiffness left her clitoris, and beyond convulsive
graspings of the interior of her affair upon my thumb, she lay for some
time inanimate. At last she recovered her senses, she seized me under
the arms, and drew me upon her belly, her hands pressed my bottom down
close upon her person, until I found that my affair was nestled in the
rich profusion of curls that so finely adorned hers. She thrust her
tongue into my mouth, and sucked off all the rich creamy substance that
had flowed from her in such abundance. She blessed the happy chance
that had led her to give me her confidence; told me that for long she
had only enjoyed the unsatisfactory delight of lonely
self-gratification, and said that now we should revel in mutual delight
of every sensual indulgence that woman can have with woman. We lay for
some time enjoying such delicious communings, until compelled to rise
by the lateness of the hour. We have since practised every method of
enjoyment given to two of the same sex. Your mother has often
introduced her stiff excited clitoris within the lips of my affair as
far as it would go, but I have always longed, my dear Harry, for you to
penetrate still further with that larger and longer thing you have got,
although what I have seen to-day of its increased size has made me
greatly fear it can never get in."

Thus ended her ingenuous description. Harry, of course, promised that
he would never hurt her, that those parts were made to yield, that,
doubtless, his mother's large clitoris had hurt her at first, but had
given her great pleasure afterwards.

Yes, that was so, and it was that that gave her courage, and if they
could only get the opportunity she would allow him to do anything he
pleased.

It may well be supposed this account of Ellen's intercourse with her
aunt fired my imagination and made me resolve to have her. Indeed, I
began to conceive that there would be no occasion for me to make any
effort, that all would be done by dear mamma herself. We had returned
to the house after this agitated walk. Mamma was evidently greatly
preoccupied, but at length she appeared to have come to a final
determination, for she told Ellen to go up to her room, and begged us
two boys, as she called us, to go out and amuse ourselves for an hour.
It was during this interval that Harry narrated his interesting
conversation with his cousin. Her lively description had set his
imagination on fire, and he now declared his regret that it was not to
be he who would enjoy his lasciviously sensual mother. Neither of us
had any doubt but that she would now find an opportunity of enjoying
me. If we had, our doubts were solved on re-entering the house. Mamma
first, for form's sake, kissing her son, and then far more warmly
kissing me, informed us that she had written to the doctor that we had
been such good boys that she would feel greatly obliged if he would
allow her son to remain with her until Monday, and also leave his
nephew to keep him company and prevent any of his former misbehaviour
which, she was happy to say, he appeared to have forgotten, but still
it would be better he should have the safeguard of so intelligent and
discreet a friend as she was glad to see he had found in the doctor's
nephew. My uncle, without knowing exactly what to make of this note,
had consented. Hence her joy in being able to communicate the pleasing
intelligence--doubly so to me, as I immediately augured the downfall of
my assumed virginity. Dear mamma was all radiant with joy, and conveyed
me at once to where she intended I should sleep. I marked that it was
in an out of the way room, easy of access, but not likely to be
interfered with by passers-by.

"And here, my dear son, for you know in future you are always to call
me mamma, I hope you will find yourself comfortable, and that you will
not be alarmed because you are in an out of the way part of the house,
but in case you should, before I go to bed, I shall come to see that
you are comfortably asleep."

Here she kissed and embraced me warmly. I repaid her most
affectionately, but apparently in all innocence. She sighed, as I
thought with regret, that she could not at that moment go further, and
then led me away.

The afternoon, the dinner, and the evening passed away without anything
worthy of remark, except that mamma was frequently absent and
preoccupied. She sat by me on the sofa while Ellen played to us; her
hand sought mine, and frequently squeezed it affectionately. Harry sat
by Ellen, which enabled me often to raise my head and pout my lips for
a kiss in a boyish way. It was never refused. She dwelt on my mouth
sensuously with half-opened lips, but apparently afraid to tip me the
velvet of her tongue. She frequently gave a shudder and trembled, and
was evidently greatly excited. In the course of the afternoon, Harry
and I had had an opportunity of exchanging ideas. I told him I was
certain his mother would come to me that night, and he might be sure if
she did that she would remain till daylight. I advised him to watch
her, and when he saw her leave her bedroom to come to me, then he could
slip into his cousin's room, and effect his purpose, but to be sure to
retire at the first dawn. I said that if that time his mother wanted to
leave me, I would keep her another quarter of an hour to enable him to
put matters to rights with his cousin, and regain his own room. I
advised him also to put a towel under his cousin's bottom, as he was
sure to make her bleed, and he must take it away in the morning to
prevent any traces of what he had done being perceived by his mother,
and to tell Ellen to feign deep sleep on his mother's return, and to
appear quite unconscious in the morning of her aunt having been absent.
A little before ten o'clock mamma thought it time for her children, as
she called us, to go to bed. Her son and niece both kissed her, and I,
too, claimed a kiss of my new mamma. It was taken and returned in quite
a passionate way, her lips seemed loath to leave mine, and her arms
encircled me in a very loving embrace. "Dear mamma," I said, "I shall
love you ever dearly."

"My darling boy, I already love you as if you were indeed my son."

She sent the others to their bedrooms, but escorted me herself to mine.
I could see that she trembled greatly, and was evidently glad to put
down the candlestick. She turned down the bedclothes for me, hoped I
would sleep well, and, with considerable agitation, again embraced me
most passionately. I could feel that her tongue would fain have thrust
itself between my lips. I had great difficulty in restraining myself,
but somehow I managed to do so. She at last left me, saying she would
give a look in to see that I was comfortable before she herself went to
bed. I told her it was very kind of her, but that there was no
necessity for her doing so, as I always went to sleep like a top the
moment I lay down.

"I am glad of that, my dear child, but nevertheless I will look in,
lest the strange bed should prevent your sleeping."

And again she hugged me passionately against her firm and well-formed
bosom, kissing me with a long, long kiss. Quitting me with a deep sigh,
at last she said good night, and shut the door, apparently going away.
But I fancied that she stopped short, and that I could hear her gently
stealing back, probably in the hope of seeing me undress, and of
catching a view of my huge pego. So I determined she should have her
curiosity indulged. I hurried off my clothes, and before putting on one
of Harry's night-shirts, which had been laid on the bed for me, I took
up the chamber pot, and turned fronting the key hole, stark naked, and
cock in hand. It was at half-cock, but when I had piddled I made it
throb and raise its head, and gave it a rub or two, and a shake very
deliberately, so that she might be still more bent on possessing it. I
took up the night-shirt, and turning to the light, was very awkward in
getting it on, so as to give time for a good sight of my prick at full
stand against my belly. I then blew out the light, and tumbled into bed
very quickly. I listened attentively, and could hear a deep
half-suppressed sigh, and then footsteps stealing quietly away. I lay
awake cogitating as to how I should receive her, whether to feign
profound sleep, and so let her take all the initiative, or whether to
pretend that the novelty of the bed, and thinking over her affectionate
kindness to me had kept me awake. I decided upon pretending to be sound
asleep, chiefly that I might see how she would carry out her designs,
and also as allowing me to play the surprised one.

In little more than half an hour after all had retired to rest I saw
the glimmer of light through the key hole. I had studied a pose that
would facilitate matters. I lay on my back, the clothes partially
thrown off my breast, and the hand next to the side on which she must
approach, placed above my head. Of course my cock was at full stand and
as I had thrown off the heavy counterpane, it easily lifted up, and
bulged out the sheet and light blanket. I closed my eyes, and breathed
heavily. The door was gently opened, and she entered. She turned to
close it, and I gave a peep through a half-opened eye, and saw that she
had only on a loose _robe de chambre_, which was thrown open in
turning, so that I could see there was nothing but her shift below. I
even caught sight of her beautiful bosom, which at once caused my prick
to throb almost to bursting, so that when she came to my side, it stood
up most manfully. She paused, evidently intent on the sight. She then
held the light towards me, and spoke in an undertone, asking me if I
was awake. Of course I only breathed the heavier, and lay with my mouth
half open, as if in the very deepest first slumber. She then turned her
attention to the bulging-out substance, and ventured to touch it
gently; then, growing bolder, she still more gently grasped it from
above the clothes, and then turned the light on my face, but I gave not
a sign. She then put the candle down, and, taking a chair, sat down
close to the bed. Here she again spoke to me in a subdued tone. Finding
no cessation of the deep breathing, she gently insinuated her hand
below the already favourably turned-down bedclothes, and with great
care slipped it down to my prick, which she grasped softly. I could now
feel her whole body tremble, her breath came fast and short. She passed
her hand gently up from the root to the head, its size evidently
greatly exciting her. When she grasped the head, it gave a powerful
throb. She eased her hand, and, I felt certain, turned to see if it had
disturbed me. But I slept on profoundly. She seemed to gain more
confidence, for both hands were now applied, and it was evident she had
assumed a kneeling posture, the better to favour her designs. I could
feel her pass one hand over the other, until she found the head was
still partially above the third grasp. I heard her give an involuntary
exclamation of surprise at its size. Her curiosity growing by what it
fed on, she now commenced with the utmost caution gently to remove the
bed-clothes, that she might see, as well as feel. When this was
accomplished, she rose and brought the light, again passed it before my
eyes, and then moved it down towards my prick. Being sure she was now
far too deeply engaged to turn her eyes towards mine, I half opened
them, and beheld her bending close over the great object of attraction.
I heard her exclaim half aloud--

"How wonderful! I never could have imagined such a thing, and in such
an innocent boy, too. Oh! I must possess-yes--I must possess it."

Here she grasped it more forcibly than before. Then, rising, she put
the candle on the pot stand, which she removed to the foot of the bed.
Then taking my prick in both hands, she gently rubbed it up and down,
and even stooped and fondly kissed the nut. It throbbed more violently
than ever at this, and I thought it time to start, and appear to awake.
She instantly quitted her hold of it, and stood up, but was too
agitated to think of covering me. I opened my eyes in apparent great
surprise, but recognising mamma, I said--

"Oh! is that you, dear mamma? I was dreaming such a nice dream about
you. Oh, do kiss me," purposely not seeming to know that my person was
all naked.

She stooped and kissed me tenderly, saying--

"My dear, darling boy. I came to see if you were comfortable, and found
you lying uncovered, and with this extraordinary thing sticking up."

She had seized it with her left hand, as she stooped to kiss me. On the
instant, I determined to play off the same game that had succeeded so
well with my aunt.

"My dear mamma, I should not have dared to speak to you about _that_,
but it does give me much pain, by becoming so hard that it throbs, as
you may feel, at the least touch. I don't know what to do; and it makes
me feel so queer too, especially at the gentle pressures you have just
given it; dear mamma, can you tell me how I can cure it, and I will
love you so dearly."

Here she stooped and kissed me very luxuriously, actually thrusting her
tongue into my mouth. I sucked it, and told her how sweet it was. But
my prick becoming perfectly outrageous, I implored her to tell me what
I could do to relieve it. She looked at me long and intently, blushing
and turning pale by turns.

"Yes, my dear boy, I could relieve you, but it is a secret that I
hardly dare confide in one so young."

"Oh! you may trust me, my dear mamma, you know I am becoming a young
man, and men must know how to keep secrets, or they would be despised,
besides, so dear and loving a mamma as you are to me would doubly make
me keep secret anything you confide to me on those terms."

"I will trust you, my darling boy, but you will at once see by what I
shall do, how completely I sacrifice myself to do you good."

Upon this, she threw off her robe, and sprang into bed by my side.

"Oh! how nice of you, dear mamma," said I, as I took her in my arms,
and kissed her lovingly. "Feel, mamma, how much harder it is, so tell
me at once how I am to relieve it."

"Well, my dear child, we women are made to relieve such stiffnesses as
this; we possess a sheath to put it in, and then it gradually softens."

"Oh! where--where--dearest mamma, do tell me?"

She took my hand and put it down on her cunt, already quite wet with
the excitement she had been in.

"There, feel that, do you not find an opening?"

"Oh, yes, but how am I to get in there--won't it hurt you?"

"I will show you."

She turned on her back, opened her legs, and desired me to mount on her
belly, with my legs between hers, then guiding my rampant pego, and
rubbing its great head up and down the lips to moisten it, she told me
to push gently downwards, for it was so large that I would otherwise
hurt her. Playing the novice to perfection, I awkwardly but gently soon
thrust it in, up to the codpiece. She uttered an "Oh! oh!" when it was
fairly hilted; then throwing her legs over my loins, and her arms round
my waist, she begged me to move my bottom backwards and forwards,
always thrusting it in as far as I could. Three or four pushes finished
me off, in the great excitement I was under. She, too, died away with a
great convulsive sigh. I took care to cry out--

"Oh! my dear mamma--oh! stop. I am dying--I--I--am dy--dy--ing."

Her convulsive internal pressures were delicious, and quickly roused my
prick up again. She also had come to, and had glued her lips to
mine--giving her own, and then asking in return for my tongue to suck.

"Oh! what heavenly joys, my dear mamma, you did, indeed, reduce its
hardness, but just feel--it has got hard again, you must reduce it once
more."

"My beloved boy, I shall always be ready to do so, but it must be the
most sacred secret between us, or I should never be able to do it
again."

You may well suppose my protestations were of the strongest. At it we
went again, and again, and again. Mamma declared that I was a most apt
scholar. Four times did I pour into her foaming and fiery cunt torrents
of sperm. At last she insisted upon my withdrawing, saying it would
injure my health to indulge any more. So I withdrew, and we embraced
each other most lovingly. I now expressed a wish to see the wonderful
place that had given me the ecstasies of paradise. She lent herself
with admirable grace and ease to my boyish curiosity, and even threw
off her shift, making me do the same, that she too might admire the
undisguised beauties of my form. There was no pretence in the great
admiration I expressed for her really superb form, but I expressed it
in a naive and innocent way, that made her laugh heartily, and
confirmed her idea that she was not only the first naked woman I had
seen, but that she was the first I ever knew, or who had taught me what
sensual pleasure meant, and great was her delight in thinking she had
taken my virginity, and been the first to initiate me in love's
delightful mysteries. Of course, I did everything I could in order to
carry on the deception she was so much pleased with, and I may add this
was the last time I ever did so, for daily becoming more of a man, I
took _things_ by the forelock at once, and rarely failed to succeed. We
got up, and she turned herself round in every way for me to see the
rare beauties of her person--herself explaining to me where she was
well made-bosom, buttocks, belly so white and smooth, without a
wrinkle, although she had had a son. She was, indeed, one of those rare
cases where nothing remains to tell of such an event. Her bosom,
without being so large as aunt's, was gloriously white and firm, with
such pink nipples, larger than in a maid, but sticking out hard and
inviting a suck. Then her cunt--for she laid herself on her back,
opened her legs, and allowed me the closest inspection. I have already
alluded to her clitoris, as described by Ellen to Harry; it was
charmingly developed, about half the length of Miss Frankland's, and
not so thick. As I felt her cunt and introduced my fingers to hold it
open, she got excited, and Master Clitoris raised his head, and came
out of his corner in full stand. I professed great surprise to find she
had a little doodle of her own. I purposely used the boyish expression.
I began to play with it.

"Oh!" I said, "I must kiss it."

I did so, and began to suck it. She got dreadfully lewd, and seizing
upon my now-again-standing prick, drew me upon her, and introduced once
more my master weapon. With greater slowness until the final crisis
drew near, we had another delicious fuck. She was a woman of very warm
passions, and the long pent-up seclusion she had kept herself in with
regard to our sex being once broken, now that the flood-gates were
opened, there was no resisting the torrent of her lascivious passions.
Twice again did we fuck without withdrawing. Then, after hugging and
thanking me for the ecstasies I threw her into, she rose for a natural
purpose, and advised me to do the same, and we would then both lave
ourselves with cold water to restore our nerves. She laved me and I
her. She then insisted on my lying down on my back, while she admired
what she called the masterpiece of Nature. From seeing and feeling, she
soon came to sucking. Up he got in a moment. Playing the ignoramus, I
asked if it was not possible that we could both enjoy that pleasure at
once.

"Oh, yes, my dear boy. I am so delighted to find that this pleases you!
Lie on your back, I shall get over you in the reverse way, and while I
suck this enormous jewel, whose head I can hardly get into my mouth,
you shall do as you like with my notch."

"Is that what you call it, dear mamma?"

"That is one name, and it has many others, but you men generally call
it cunt, as we call yours prick, it is just as well you should know
their ordinary names, as children only call them Fanny and Doodle."

"Prick and cunt--oh! I shan't forget, so let me have that beautiful
cunt to suck."

We had a mutual gamahuche, and both greedily swallowed the double
result, and continued our caresses of both parts, until they were again
in full vigour, and inspired with a desire for more solid enjoyments.

"My darling boy, you are so apt and excellent a scholar that I must
show you there are several ways of allaying the stiffness of this dear
fellow, who seems as desirous as ever to have his hardness taken out of
him. I shall show you how my husband liked best to enjoy me."

She scrambled up on her knees, and presented her very fine bottom, told
me to kneel behind and give her my prick in her hand, which she thrust
out backwards between her thighs. I did so. She told me it would appear
to get further in this way, and, in fact, it did. After it was all in
until thighs and buttocks met, she told me to admire, praise, and
handle the splendid cheeks of her bottom, and said that such praise
greatly excited her. Of course I did so, admiring not only their size
and fairness, but also the beautiful curly silk meshes that ran between
the cheeks, covered her beautifully pink bottom-hole, charmingly
puckered as it was, and ran up to the flat of her back. After I had so
excited her, she begged me to lean forward, and to handle one bubby
while I should play with her clitoris with the other hand. I did all
this tolerably well, but with somewhat of awkwardness. She said I would
soon be perfect. We ran again two courses before she fell forward
dragging me down without withdrawing, and then turning on our sides,
still intertwined we fell off into a deep slumber, and did not awaken
till daylight. Mamma jumped out of bed, unseating me by the act. She
was alarmed lest the hour should be late enough for the household to be
up. I tried hard to persuade her to reduce once more the hardness which
had again seized me as she might see and feel for herself.

"No, my dear boy, we must not be imprudent, my niece may have awakened
and grown anxious at my absence, and she may rise to seek me; so
good-bye, my darling, go to sleep again."

She embraced me tenderly, but I could not prevail upon her to go
further, although she promised to seek an opportunity during the day,
and to give me as much as I liked the next night. She left me, and I
pondered over the lucky chance that had put so desirable and fine a
woman into my arms, and also congratulated myself on the stratagem by
which I had fully convinced her that she was my first instructress in
the art of love, a circumstance ever dear to the ardent imagination of
the darling sex. I easily fell asleep again, wondering how Harry in the
meantime had got on with his cousin. My dear mamma would not allow me
to be disturbed. She had entered my room once or twice, and found me
sleeping soundly.

At last she again entered, just as I had satisfied a natural want for
which I had risen. To rush to her, to embrace her tenderly, to fasten
the door, and compel her, not much against her will, to come towards
the bed, to beg her to lie on her belly on the bedside, to cant her
petticoats up, to kneel and gamahuche her cunt from behind until she
begged me to rise and fuck her, was but the work of a minute or two.
And then my stiff-standing pego, aided by the mouthful of thick saliva
occasioned by the gamahuche, was directed at her cunt, and driven home
as far as the buttocks or her fine backside would allow. My prick being
fairly sheathed, I paused for a moment to handle and praise the beauty
of her posterior orbs. Then, stooping, I nibbled at her bubbles with
one hand, and frigged her clitoris with the other. Sharp set, with my
long rest and refreshing sleep, I rapidly ran a first course, but not
quicker than the lascivious nature of dear mamma, who joined me in a
copious discharge with the most ecstatic joy, and the most delicious
inward pressures. For she was a perfect and most accomplished actor in
the combats of love, and in her own way was worthy of my glorious aunt
and my loved Miss Frankland, and as thoroughly accomplished as they in
all the abandon of lust and lubricity, although at the moment I had
only proved things in an ordinary way. Her exquisite internal suctions
almost prevented the slightest relaxation in my delighted pego, and
after a minute or two of indulgence in the after joy, I began again
almost before dear mamma had recovered her senses, when she tried to
tear herself away. But before she knew where she was I had succeeded in
again firing her ardent and lascivious nature, and she became as eager
for a second course as myself. This was naturally longer than the first
fiery one. I raised myself upright on my knees, contemplated with the
utmost delight the uncommon active play of her loins, and the exquisite
side wriggling of her very fine backside. I loudly praised her
delicious manoeuvres, and seconded them to the utmost, until getting
more and more excited, fast and furious grew our movements. I bent down
to second her by frigging her clitoris, and the final crisis seized us
both with its agony of joy, and I sank almost insensible on her back.
We lay for a short time lost to every thing, until mamma, remembering
the risk we ran of discovery, begged me to withdraw, and let her go
away. She rose and threw herself into my arms, glueing her lips to mine
with a most loving kiss. Then stooping, she gave my now pendant prick a
most delicious suck, making her tongue play into and around the mouth
of the urethra. This was so delicious that the delighted member
instantly showed its appreciation of the pleasure by starting up in
full swing. Mamma gave it a pat, and said he was a most charming and
delicious boy, who did not know how to behave himself. Again she kissed
me, and tore herself away, but I could easily see the regret was as
great on her side as mine. She told me her son had been as lazy as I
was, and said that breakfast was waiting for us both. I quickly
finished my toilet and found them all at the breakfast table.

Ellen blushed deeply when she saw me. A glance from Harry assured me he
had succeeded, and that Ellen not only knew what I had been about, but
also that I knew what she had been doing. Hence her high colour when
she saw me. I smiled, and nodded to her knowingly, and as she had
observed the intelligent glance that passed between Harry and me, it
did not tend to put her at her ease.

Mamma, of course, knew nothing of what had passed in her bed while she
was with me, and was all affectionate attention to the whole party, but
with a marked tendency to pay me more particular attention. Our
breakfast was late, so we had to hurry ourselves for church. Mamma
drove Ellen in a small pony phaeton, while Harry and I took a short cut
across the fields.

Harry told me how he had watched his mother and had quietly approached
my door, and as the bed was exactly opposite the key hole, had seen and
enjoyed her proceedings, especially as he knew that I only pretended
sleep.

"By Jove," he said, "what a fine woman mother is! I could not tear
myself away, and remained until you both went at it again, stark naked.
My mother's beautiful hairy cunt, fine bubbies and backside, nearly
drove me mad with desire. I could have violated her if she had been
alone. And, then, her energy in fucking was superb. I could hold out no
longer, but rushed to dear Ellen's side. She was asleep. I took her in
my arms, and awoke her by feeling her delicious young cunt. She opened
her eyes, and thinking it was mamma she turned round to repay the
compliment, and started on having hold of my pego."

"'Why! Harry dear, how came you here? We shall be caught by mamma.'

"'Oh, no, my love, mamma is better engaged, and has slipped away to
Charlie's room to get done to her what I am going to do to you.'

"She was too much alarmed to believe me, and I was obliged to bring her
to your door. I first peeped, and saw you were still at it. Mamma's
legs and arms thrown around you allowed me to see your great big thing
rushing in and out, and driving home with immense vigour. I whispered
to Ellen to peep. While she did so, stooping, I sat down on the floor
and gamahuched her. She spent almost immediately, and was so excited
that it quite filled my mouth. I rose on my legs, and bringing my prick
against her cunt, made an entrance as far as over the nut, but was
myself so excited with all I was doing, and all I had previously seen,
that I went off in an agony of delight and with a suppressed cry, which
must have been heard by you and mamma if you had not been so busily
engaged. Ellen had been so excited and so intent on the to her new
scene enacting before her eyes, that she had never ceased gazing on it,
and left me to do whatever I pleased, but my cry alarmed her,
especially as in my last forward push I had sent her head with some
noise against the door. She rose, and so unseated me from the slight
hold I had got of her cunt. She turned round to embrace me most
excitedly, and whispered that we must go elsewhere. I took her round
the waist, and we quickly regained mamma's bed. The light enabled me to
find a towel. I told Ellen it was to prevent any moisture betraying our
acts. She was far too excited and wishful for the article to make the
slightest resistance, or even pretence of refusal. I begged her to
throw off her shift, as she had seen both Charlie and mamma were quite
naked. She at once complied, being now as eager for the fray as myself.
I, too, threw off my night-shirt. For a moment we embraced each other's
naked bodies. My cock was as stiff as iron. She lewdly laid hold of it,
while I handled her charming young cunt. I helped her onto the bed, she
at once lay down on her back, and threw open her legs as she had seen
mamma do. I stopped and gave her cunt, all oozing with her own and my
spunk, a warm kiss, and with a lick or two on her budding clitoris, I
fired her even to greater excess than she had yet been in.

"'Oh, come to my arms, my dear Harry, and let us do as they were so
delightedly doing.'

"She had noted with what rapture mamma was enjoying you, and she had
noted, too, what a much larger cock yours was than mine; so she had
naturally reasoned that if one so big gave her aunt so much delight, my
smaller one could not possibly hurt her, hence her eagerness to have me
at once. I did not baulk her, but throwing myself between her
widespread thighs, I soon brought the point of my prick to the longing
lips of her little virgin cunt. I rubbed it up and down in between the
pouting and self-opened lips, partly to moisten it, and partly to still
more excite her lust. I then gently pressed it forward, and introduced
just its head, and drawing it in and out, made her beg me to go
further. I did so, slowly, until I found there was an impediment. I
knew that I must burst through this and that it would hurt her, so I
continued withdrawing and re-entering without going further until she
became so voraciously lewd as to throw her legs around my loins and
heave her bottom up to meet my thrusts. I seized the fortunate moment
and with one downright violent thrust burst through every barrier and
buried my prick in her up to the very hilt. The attack and its result
was so unexpected by Ellen that when she felt the knife-like thrust of
agony she gave a shriek of pain, and made an immediate effort to throw
me off. I was too firmly seated for any other result of her struggles
than the still more complete rupture of her maidenhead, which my
forward thrust had partially effected. I lay for some time quite
tranquil, and when her immediate pain wore off I commenced a gentle in
and out movement, which, without exactly exciting her, produced a
pleasing sensation. I then went on faster and faster until the crisis
came upon me, and I shot into her a torrent of boiling sperm that by
its balmy nature mollified the previous smarting; so that when I had
recovered from the delicious ecstasies of my first success, and my
prick gradually resumed its former vigour, I found by the somewhat
increased pressure upon it that her passions were re-awakening. Three
times did I fuck her before I withdrew, the last one appeared to give
her more pleasure, but still she complained of a smarting pain as I
passed over and over the shattered hymen. I advised her to rise and
lave herself as a relief, and to wash away the stains of blood from her
thighs. The towel was a fortunate thought on your part, but, in fact, I
had followed in all my movements the sage counsels you had given me
from the experience you had had in taking the virginities of Mrs.
Vincent and your two sisters, or I should otherwise probably have
bungled the matter, although my experience with your magnificent aunt
had naturally put me up to all the art of fucking. I had some
difficulty in persuading Ellen to let me put it in again, as she
declared she had endured perfect agony when I broke through her
maidenhead. However, I gamahuched her well, got her passions up,
moistened the shaft well, and was very gentle in entering and in my
first movements. I spent without making her do so. But the well-greased
sheath now allowing more easy movements, she gave down her nature with
considerable pleasure as I spent the second time. Still there was fear
and restraint--fear lest mamma might come back--so I thought it
advisable to retire to my own room, being quite certain that now the
road is open her lascivious nature will not be long in enabling her to
enjoy the sport to the utmost. By the way, she could not help wondering
how mamma could take in your immense pego; why, she said, it was as
thick as her wrist and much longer than her hand, and yet it seemed to
slip into mamma with ease and pleasure, 'while yours, dear Harry, which
is not thicker than my two forefingers, and hardly much longer, has
given me such pain.' I assured her it was only for the first night, and
that if she would bathe it with warm water two or three times during
the day, and put up a little glycerine as far as where it hurt, which
her finger could easily reach, she would find that to-morrow night
there would no longer be any pain felt, and she would enjoy it as much
as she had seen mamma do. With this advice I left her to her repose,
and gained my own room unobserved."

After this we concerted together as to what we should say to the
doctor, who was sure to question us. Mrs. Dale's cottage was not in our
parish, but she had driven over to our church, partly to throw off all
suspicion from the doctor's mind, and also to thank him for allowing us
to stay with her.

We, therefore, knew that we should have to go to the rectory and stay
for luncheon. We agreed that we should not on this occasion take the
doctor into our confidence, but that we should tell him we had
purposely been very quiet and discreet, so as to throw Harry's mother
off her guard. That Ellen slept with her, so that it became doubly
necessary to gain her confidence. This being arranged before we reached
church, we entered. After service we all adjourned to the rectory. The
doctor escorted Mrs. Dale, Harry, Ellen, and I my aunt. Aunt, pressing
my arm, asked me if I had had Mrs. D., as she seemed a fine woman worth
having.

"Oh, dear no. I have had no opportunity, even if she would have
consented. I have been playing the ingenuous youth to help Harry with
his cousin. I thought we had somewhat thrown her off her guard, but she
was still jealous and watched him closely. Ellen slept with her, which
rendered things more difficult for Harry. She has closely examined me
as to the sort of intimacy existing between us. I threw such an air of
candour and innocence over my replies that she was quite delighted
Harry had met with such a companion. I fully expect she will break out
in praises of my _modest_ and discreet conduct."

Indeed, so it turned out, and Mrs. Dale did it with such an air of
candour that aunt was quite convinced nothing as yet had occurred
between us. While the ladies discussed the dresses and bonnets of all
who had appeared in church, uncle took Harry and me for a walk in the
garden until luncheon was ready. Here he began, as aunt had done, to
question us as to our proceedings, and the reason for Mrs. D. asking
permission for us to stay. The same replies that had satisfied aunt
satisfied him that nothing as yet had taken place beyond my gaining the
confidence of Mrs. D.

"My dear Charlie," said uncle, "you have only now to manage somehow or
other to let her see your great big cock without apparently your being
aware of it, and I will warrant, from my knowledge of woman's nature,
that she will find a way to have you, only mind you play the innocent,
and be very awkward, and let her appear to teach you, which will give
double pleasure and prevent any questioning as to how you have gained
your instruction, if she thought you instructed."

I smiled inwardly at these sage directions, and thought how completely
all persons knowing in the ways of the world gave the same advice. But
little did uncle then think that I had acted up to the very letter what
he was advising for my future conduct. We re-entered the house on
luncheon bell ringing. Mrs. Dale complimented the doctor on the advance
her son had made both in manners and instruction, and quite naturally
congratulated herself on his finding so very modest and gentlemanly a
companion in the doctor's nephew--myself to wit.

Returning home, Ellen begged she might be allowed to walk, doubtless
calculating on having Harry for a companion. But mamma, while agreeing
to her request, was still sufficiently on her guard to take Harry in
the phaeton, and leave me to escort Ellen. Here was a chance! Ellen
blushed, but took my arm as we left the rectory. Uncle gave me a
knowing look, and a glance at Ellen, as we parted, as much as to say, I
guess what will happen. We walked away steadily enough until the first
hedge hid us. I stopped, and embraced Ellen tenderly, saying how glad I
was to be able to congratulate her on the happy chance her aunt had
given her, by coming to me for the night. She was a good deal confused
at thinking that I should know how she passed the night. I rallied her
upon this, told her that no secret existed between Harry and me, and
that, in fact, if I had not lent myself to the game, she would not have
had the opportunity for the great pleasure she must have had in Harry's
arms. I knew she had not had much, but I wished to draw her on, and to
make her open out as to her feelings, being determined to make the most
of any confidence on her part. She replied that, indeed, she had done
nothing but suffer, and would not have allowed Harry to do what he did
if she had known the pain it would give her, she had been deceived by
seeing how much aunt had seemed to enjoy what was so greatly superior
in size to what Harry had. I smiled at her allusion to the size of my
pego, and knowing that her curiosity must be creating in her a desire
to see it, I told her it was well for her, in the first instance, to
have had the smaller weapon to penetrate her, and that now she would
never again suffer, even by the introduction of so large a one as mine.

"Oh, but when I think of the immense size of yours, I could never dare
to allow you to try, although aunt did seem to enjoy it, when you
pushed it in with such force."

"My dear Ellen, it was the size alone that tempted mamma, and if I had
not been larger than Harry, I doubt if ever she would have come to me
at night."

"But how could she dare to do so?"

"Curiosity to enjoy an unusually large cock, my dear."

"Did you know she was coming?"

"Yes, and no. I saw that her passions were excited, when I had once
_accidentally_ allowed her to see my large proportions."

"Yes, Harry told me what you were about, but I hardly expected aunt
would have dared to come to you--how did it happen?"

"Well, if you will promise _never_ to let your aunt know that I have
told, I shall tell you. She came and found me _apparently_ asleep,
first felt me, and seeing I did not awake, carefully uncovered me,
looked at, handled and kissed it, upon which, as my cock was nearly
bursting, and I could stand it no longer, I awoke, and innocently
complained of the stiffness I suffered from in that part, and begged
her to tell me if there was any means of relieving it. She told me
there was, but it was a great secret she hardly dared trust me
with--and even if she could do so, she was afraid of a great long thing
like _that_, three of her hands long below the head! but that if I
promised secrecy, she would try. Then she lay down and taught me how to
put it in, and I know you afterwards enjoyed the sight of our being in
full action, quite naked--did you not enjoy it, dear Ellen?"

"Well, dear Charlie, it was very exciting, and made me feel queer all
over; but is it really three hands and a head long?"

I was delighted at the question, as it showed me she was ready for what
I intended should be done. Curiosity once excited was sure to go to the
utmost length, if it had the opportunity. I had purposely been hurrying
on to gain a dense copse through which our path lay, and I knew there
was a snug glade, where we would be in perfect security. It was the
dinner hour of the peasantry, and no one else was likely to come that
way. Just as we entered the copse, she had put her last question. I
told her I would show her, if she would step a few yards beyond the
foot path. She objected, for form's sake saying--

"What would Harry say?"

"There is no occasion for him to know anything about it, but even if he
did, has he not himself shown you mamma and me in full enjoyment of her
sweet charms; but, unless you tell him you may be sure I never shall,
it will not take a minute, and as we have already walked very fast, we
have plenty of time, and our absence will not be observed."

With professed reluctance she allowed me to lead her where I wished.
Having arrived at the favourable spot, I sat down on a gentle slope,
and begged her to sit down beside me. As you may well suppose, my prick
was rampant, and almost bursting open my trousers, so that as soon as I
unbuttoned, out it flew in all its splendour. She gave a half scream of
surprise as she gazed upon its large proportions, and declared it
looked larger than when she had seen it with aunt. Her face flushed,
and her eyes sparkled as she gazed, but she seemed half frightened to
touch it. I took her hand and placed it on it. She immediately grasped
it convulsively, but sighed deeply. I had lain back on the grass that
it might stand out boldly before her and I told her to try if it was
not three hands and a head long. She immediately passed one hand over
the other from the root, and said it was really monstrous, and she
wondered how aunt could have got it into her.

"Oh, my darling, I hope some day you will find that you can take it all
in with the utmost delight, but I should not think of trying until you
have had some more practice with Harry."

Meanwhile she was handling it with great excitement, and while saying
she was sure I could never succeed with her, she was evidently longing
to be able to take it in. I saw I must work her up more--so I said--

"Dear Ellen, you know what pleasure it gave you and Harry to play with
each other with your mouths, it is now your turn to let me see your
dear little thing--and then you must lie over me reversed, so that we
may enjoy ourselves with tongues and mouths."

She let me at once pull up her petticoats, but said she feared that
even for that she was still too sore from Harry's work last night. I
asked if she had bathed it in warm water and put glycerine up. "Oh,
yes."

At first it smarted, but before going to church, she had done it three
times, and no longer felt any pain, but still was afraid of my finger
going up. I was introducing it at the moment. It passed in its full
length without hurting her.

"Now, pull up your petticoats well, and lie down on me, while I do the
same with this charming little cunt; my tongue can only give it the
utmost pleasure."

She herself was now so much excited that she was ready enough to comply
with my desires. She got upon me, her petticoats well canted over her
back. She glued her lips to my prick, and sucked and frigged it with an
energy that proved how highly her passions were fired. Her cunt was
already in a foam of spendings, which I first licked up. Then sucking
her tiny clitoris, stiffly projecting slightly out, I thrust my middle
finger up her cunt, and by the wriggling of her backside, saw how much
she enjoyed it. Introducing a second finger to moisten it, I withdrew
both, and, turning my hand sideways, made each finger enter a separate
aperture. She was already nearly in the grand crisis; it came upon her
before I was ready. She poured a greater discharge into my mouth than I
thought the young thing could have spent. It took her breath away, and
she released her suction of my prick for a minute. But on my begging
her to continue sucking, she did so with increased energy, and I poured
out a torrent of sperm that shot down her throat and nearly choked her,
but the dear girl never let go for all that, and sucked away until not
only was there not a drop left, but by her delicious titillations she
had brought my prick up to its utmost vigour again. I, too, had
reawakened her passions. She wanted to renew the sport in this way
again, but I begged her to allow me to rub the head of my prick up and
down between the well-moistened lips of her cunt, and then to spend
with the point, or at most the head, within it. She asked if she could
trust me to stop if it hurt her.

"Of course, my darling," I said, "nothing shall be done, or rather
everything shall cease the moment you tell me to stop."

Half afraid, yet wishing to try, she changed her position to a kneeling
one. I canted her petticoats well over her back, and first kissing and
handling her hard and plump buttocks, which promised a future
perfection, I stooped and again licked her charming pouting cunt with
all its budding fair young curls. Then applying my surcharged mouthful
of saliva to my already well-moistened prick, I lubricated it
completely from point to root, and then applied it to the half-opened
lips. Rubbing it up and down here, and over the clitoris, I excited her
to the greatest pitch.

"Oh! Charlie dear," she cried, "try if its head will go in now, and I
will try to bear it."

I was only too glad of the permission, and very rapidly got it in over
the nut, but it was very tight. I drew it half out again, and then, on
repeating this five or six times, found I was imperceptibly gaining
ground.

"Oh! dear Charles, it is delicious! Try on, gently."

I did so, and had got rather more than half way in when she went off in
an agony of delight, deliciously pouring her warm liquid over my
enchanted prick, giving, at the same time, such a push backwards,
which, meeting a firm, though gentle forward movement on my part,
joined with the natural relaxation following her discharge, drove me up
to the hilt in the very tightest little cunt it has ever been my good
fortune to sheath myself in. I seemed to fill every cranny, and to have
stretched every part to its utmost distention. My aunt with her great
cunt had a power of pressure that seemed almost to nip off your prick,
Miss Frankland, too, was great in that way. But this was more like a
very well made first-rate kid glove, two sizes too small for your
fingers, yet giving way without bursting, and fitting every
irregularity of the nail or finger; just so her little cunt fitted my
prick exactly like a glove, and it was truly most ecstatic. A gentle
withdrawing, and then as gentle resheathing, so excited me that I shot
a torrent of sperm up into her very womb. She gave quite a cry of
ecstasy, and I could feel the tight sheath exercising a running
movement along the whole length of my prick, and still more tightly
closing all round it--if that were possible. It was so exquisitely
delicious that both of us were almost instantly in readiness for
another course.

She asked if I was all in.

"Oh, yes, my dear, do you think you could have taken any more?"

"Oh, no, it appears to fill me to bursting, and to be up to my very
heart. I could not have supported more, but could hardly believe I had
it all, as I did not think it possible, and was afraid there was more
to come."

"Did it give you any pleasure?"

"Oh, yes; and does so still--push on, dear Charlie, and don't spare me,
it is heavenly."

She wriggled and heaved her backside. I seized her by each hip and
favoured her side movements by, as it were, drawing her off and on;
faster and faster we moved, until at last the crisis seized us both
together. Her head sank with a deep sigh, or rather cry of ecstasy. She
would have fallen forward on her belly, but that my grip of her hips
held her bottom close up to my belly, with my prick thrust into the
innermost end of her cunt, until I felt the three points of the opening
of her womb, like the nailless ends of three fingers grasping, as it
were, the very point of my prick, and opening themselves to receive the
whole discharge of my sperm within its innermost recesses. Nothing
could be more delicious, and as I held her fast, I was myself in a
state of perfect ecstasy. At last addressing some endearing
expressions, and getting no reply, I found that the dear girl had quite
fainted away, and was insensible in every respect except in the
continued convulsive throbs of her delicious tight cunt. However,
finding that she did not recover her senses, I gently withdrew my still
stiff prick. Very little sperm followed the withdrawal. I wiped her
cunt dry with my handkerchief, and was glad to see there was no blood
stains. I laid her gently down on her back, ran to a little stream, and
taking two handfuls of water, came back, threw some on the still
throbbing cunt, and sprinkled her face with the drops that still
adhered to my palms. This had the desired effect; she opened her eyes,
raised herself on her bottom, and threw her arms round my neck as I
knelt by her side. Telling me I had made her taste of the joys of
heaven, she kissed me, and then burst into a hysterical flood of tears.
I comforted her as best I could and asked why she wept.

"I don't know, dear Charles, but the last time made me feel both sick
and faint just after you had given me such ecstasy as I never dreamt
was possible. I believe I then fainted, and even now, I don't know why
but I feel quite hysterical."

I kissed her tenderly, begged her to rise and come to the spring, where
she could drink and said if she sat down on her feet I would bathe and
cool her dear little cunt, which would probably put all to rights. She
did so, and was quickly quite restored to herself again. She said she
supposed it was my enormous size.

"But it did not hurt me, dear Charles, it only gave me too much
pleasure; but you will do it to me another time whenever we have any
opportunity, will you not, dear Charlie?"

I assured her I should always be too glad to do so, but that we must
neither let her aunt nor Harry know of our proceedings. This being
arranged, and she having quite recovered from the pallor her fainting
fit had caused, we resumed our course homeward, and so hurried on that
Harry, who had come to meet us found us getting over the stile of the
last field, and was even disappointed that we had got so far, for we
were now in sight of the cottage. He had hoped to find us much further
back, and that I might have favoured his having a go at his cousin
before reaching home. Ellen squeezed my arm. I said it was just as well
as it was, for any imprudence might have awakened his mother's
suspicions, and prevented a night of pleasure, which would be far
better than any uncomfortable field affair.

When we arrived at home, mamma thought that Ellen looked fatigued, and
advised her to go and lie down on her bed, and take an hour's siesta.
She told us boys we had better do the same, as she had some private
matters to attend to. Harry and I saw immediately what was meant, and
we betook ourselves to our respective rooms, I to expect mamma, who did
not fail to come, and Harry to watch her, and then made the most of the
opportunity with his cousin. I quickly undressed, and when mamma came I
found she had divested herself of stays and undergarments; so when she
undid her gown, and let fall her shift, she stood in all the naked
glory of her beautiful form. I flew to embrace her most lovingly. Both
our hands wandered and being both in full heat, we were at it in a
moment fast and furious. I drove on, admirably seconded by dear mamma,
and we quickly both gave down at the same instant a most delicious
libation on the altar of Venus, and then died away in all the
after-enjoyment. We lay for nearly a quarter of an hour soaking in the
delicious bliss of satisfied desire. Mamma, on coming to her senses,
kissed me most tenderly, and declared she had never believed it
possible that she could have had such exquisite delight.

"But then, my dear Charles, I never dreamt that any man, let alone a
boy like you, could be so magnificently hung. Oh, it is also such joy
to me to think I have first taught you the real joys of coition, and
tasted the first sweets of that most glorious weapon. My dear Charlie,
I must contemplate its beauties in this full light; withdraw the dear
fellow and turn on your back."

I did so. She rose, and turning in the reverse position, brought her
lovely foaming cunt right down on my mouth. I sucked up all the
delicious foam oozing from the aperture. Then drawing into my mouth her
half-stiffened clitoris, which was then pendant like a little boy's
cock, I soon sucked it into its utmost rigidity, frigging her rich
pouting cunt with two fingers, the while. She, on her part, was not
idle, first playing with my prick, covering and uncovering its head,
which soon made it stand up in all of its glory. She was profuse and
loud in its praises. Then getting too excited for mere admiration, she
took it in her mouth and sucked it, and manipulated it with one hand,
fingering my codpiece with the other. I then found her fingers were
feeling and tickling my bottom-hole. She took her mouth from off my
prick, and paused a moment; then again applied her finger to my
fundament, and made it gently penetrate as far as it would go. The
previous pause had evidently been for the purpose of moistening her
finger with her saliva that it might slip in easily. I was delighted to
find that she had come to this, but pretending ignorance, I stopped my
proceedings to ask her what she was doing to my bottom, which could
give me such exquisite delight.

"It is my finger, my dear Charles, my late husband was always delighted
with my doing this, and used also to add greatly to my pleasure by
doing the same to me."

"Shall I do so to you, dear mamma?"

"Oh, yes, my darling boy; moisten your finger first and then do it in
my bottom-hole, as you have been doing it in my cunt."

"But I think I can do both at the same time, they are so close
together."

"You are a delightful darling; do so, and it will be double pleasure to
me."

So I immediately commenced to postillion her to her and my extreme
gratification. We soon spent with the utmost delight, and both
swallowed all we could get, continuing our suctions until the passions
of both were again excited. I now declared I must fuck her again in the
kneeling position, in which she had before given me such exquisite
pleasure. As she drew a little higher up, I flung my arms round her
fine backside, and glued my lips to her bottom-hole, and thrust my
tongue in and out.

"Oh, Charles, dear, what are you doing? Oh! how delightful."

And she wriggled her backside over my mouth in a most voluptuous and
lascivious way.

"Oh, rise my darling, and fuck me; you have made me so very lewd."

I drew myself up on my knees behind her, and was into her with wild
ferocity that made her cry out with joy as she felt the mighty
instrument rush within her. I stooped and frigged her clitoris at her
desire, but wishing to contemplate the glorious movement of her
backside I begged her to frig herself that I might be able to do so.
Seizing hold of her lips, I drew her splendid bottom off and on my
stiff and glowing prick with such immense delight to her that she went
off and spent profusely, the hot stream bathing my delighted prick. But
having already fucked Ellen so shortly before, and having spent twice
at the present time, I remained for a while quiet, with mamma's
exquisite cunt deliriously throbbing round it to the infinite enjoyment
of my cock. I stooped and nibbled with my fingers at one of her
nipples. I played with and frigged her very fine clitoris, which was
soon in stiff-standing excitement again. Being cool myself, I soon
worked her up into the wildest state of excitement by my frigging and
the throbbings of my prick, aided with occasional long slowly drawn-out
movements, and then as slowly regaining ground until within the last
three inches, when it was thrust vigourously forward, and kept there
for her convulsive pressures on it. I kept this up until she was almost
wild with lust, and cried out for more vigorous movements. I did not
immediately comply, but continued my exciting proceedings until she bit
the pillow in the madness of her lust. Then I drove on fast and
furious, amid cries of delight and ecstasy on her part, until the grand
crisis overtook us both at the same instant in a perfect fury and agony
of delight. I had previously left the frigging to herself, and had
seized her lips and enjoyed the glorious sight of the furious
contortions of her bottom under the excessive lubricity of her wildly
excited lasciviousness. She died away in such excess of ecstasy that
she would have fallen on her belly but for the grip I had upon her
hips, and the pressure with which I drew back her glorious bottom
against my belly. I threw back my head in the agony of delight, and
brayed like a donkey as I had done once before when fucking the
luscious Frankland, and felt the three pointed entrance to her womb
close upon and nibble at the point of my prick so delightfully, just as
dear Ellen's had done in the wood. As I came to my senses I spoke to
dear mamma, and found that she too had fainted away, and was quite
insensible to everything but the convulsive inner movements of her
delicious cunt. I withdrew and laid her gently down on her side,
bringing a tumbler of water, a sponge, and towel, I opened her splendid
thighs, sponged and bathed her cunt, which showed but little of the
torrent of sperm I had just poured into it. I then sprinkled her face,
and she came to with a deep sigh. Her first utterance was to bless me
for the joy I had given her, which was in fact too much, and then she
burst into tears and became quite hysterical. I thought it odd that I
should have produced the same effect upon her more accustomed and more
developed organs as I had done on dear Ellen. I comforted her in my
boyish way, and asked how it was that the effect should have been
different from anything she had previously experienced with me.

"Ah! my dear boy," she said, with a deep sigh, "you have caused me such
extreme sensations that I fear you must have got me with child, you
seemed to penetrate my very womb, and to excite me far beyond anything
I ever previously remember."

"My loved mamma, can I possibly get a child?"

"Get a child, indeed!" she replied. "Yes, a dozen, with such a great
monster of a cock, that so excites us poor women."

I embraced her most tenderly, and said I was so happy to think I should
be the father of a child of hers.

"Alas! my dear boy, it may be joy to you, but what a sorrow it will be
to me if such should be the case; think how I should lose position in
the world if it should be known, and even if by going abroad I could
hide my shame from the public, still what shifts and contrivances I
should be put to to ensure secrecy; but never mind, my darling, I would
run twice such risk to enjoy your person, and secure your affection;
you must ever cherish and love me, my Charlie, for I risk good name and
fame for you; but now I must be gone, or we shall be sought for; try
and sleep a little, my dear boy, for I am sure you need it after your
exertions, and remember you must gain strength to renew them this
night."

She kissed me lovingly, rose, put on her things and left me to repose.
But I could not help thinking of what she had said about fearing that
that peculiar fuck in which she had fainted portended fructification.
If so, I thought dear Ellen will probably be in the same predicament,
for the result was precisely the same with her. I may here observe that
mamma's fears became certainties, both in her case and Ellen's.
Eventually they both left the country together, when staying would have
brought on discovery. And, curiously enough, they were both delivered
of daughters on the same day. Of both I was the happy father, although
Harry had the credit of Ellen's child, but she herself always asserted
to me that it was the delicious fuck in the wood that did the mischief.
And from the peculiar effect produced on both mothers on that day, I
never had any doubt of the real paternity, besides, the child grew up
my very image. Mamma's daughter was superbly developed when she became
a young woman. She had even a larger clitoris than Miss Frankland, with
which she absolutely deflowered her sister's cousin at the age of
fourteen. I may also incidentally observe that at the age of fifteen I
had both their maidenheads, as far as the male sex was concerned. And
Harry and I often fucked them together in every way; and my darling
daughter with her long and large clitoris has often fucked my bottom,
while I was doing the same to her sister, with Harry below fucking her
whom he believed to be his daughter. But this belongs to my latter
experiences, and has nothing to do with the present period of my life,
though, perhaps, I may be tempted hereafter to enter into all the
details of my middle age and later experiences.

Dear reader, pardon me this digression. To resume, I slept soundly for
an hour, then rose, and strolled in the garden with Harry, who related
to me how he had taken advantage of mamma's occupation to steal into
Ellen's room. She had been much afraid, the sly pussey, to allow him to
enter again, but when once he got within, and she found it did not hurt
her, but the contrary, she got extremely lewd, and they had two
splendid fucks. Then stealing along to my door to peep as to how we
were getting on, we so excited them again that he had another from
behind, while she stooped and peeped all the time, for it was when I
was fucking mamma from behind, on my knees, and they concluded it would
be our last for the present. When they had brought matters to a finish
they separated, and mamma had found Ellen fast asleep.

"But, by Jove, Charlie," said Harry, "how splendid mother fucks, I
quite envied you, and I shall never rest until I get into her myself;
how gloriously she wriggles her backside, and how lusciously she enjoys
fucking; to be sure such a mighty prick as yours is enough to stir up
every passion; it astonished, and I think made Ellen more lewd,
although she is sure she could never take in such a monster."

I smiled at thinking how easily the very youngest of the fair sex
deceives us, but I took care not to let Harry know my opinion.

We re-entered for dinner, and spent a pleasant evening, which was the
forerunner to the delights of the night. Mamma came as soon as she
thought Ellen fast asleep, which Ellen took very good care should soon
be the case. In a moment, she was quite naked, and clasped to my
equally naked body. I had been expecting her, and thinking over the
delights of our last fuck, so that I was rampant before her arrival.
She was equally eager for the fray, and at it we went hammer and tongs,
and soon brought the first bout to a close, in mutual "ah's!" and
"oh's!" of delight. We soaked for some time in the delicious enjoyment.
Then mamma scolded both herself and me for our precipitation, saying
that we threw away all the luxury and abandon of fucking when we went
at it in such haste; it was in that way mere animal instinct, and
wanted all the lascivious delight of lubricity and skill in fucking.
She said, now that the edge was taken off our appetites, we must begin
again with a mutual gamahuche. She rose first to piddle, and allowed me
to see the rush of water from her delicious cunt. Then lighting two
more candles, she placed two at the foot of the bed, and two at the
head, by which we should both have the advantage of seeing all we were
caressing. Then I lay down on my back, and she mounted on me, in
reverse, thus bringing her bottom down over my face. I thrust my tongue
up her cunt, and licked up the delicious spunk oozing down from the
inside. Her piddle had washed all away from the pouting lips. Then
taking her charming clitoris in my mouth, I sucked it up to its
greatest stiffness. I had thrust three fingers into her cunt, and when
I found she had thrust hers into my bottom, I transferred them all into
her beautiful pink bum-hole. They were very greasy from my sperm coming
down upon them when in her cunt, and as she favoured their entrance by
pushing out her bottom, all three slipped in, without, apparently, her
thinking it was more than one. I was delighted to see how easily it
stretched out, for this gave me great ground to hope that I should be
able to manage to get my large pego within, which I was fully resolved
upon doing, but it required a little artfulness to do so without
raising her suspicions that it was no new road to me. She brought
matters to a conclusion much as before, and when re-excited, mamma
proposed to teach me a new way, which was by her mounting on me, and
staking herself on my standing pego. Like others before her, she did
not stoop down upon me until she had made herself spend where she was,
while I saved myself for further fucking.

When she died off, she sank on my bosom. I clasped her waist with one
arm, sucked the bubby nearest my mouth, and reaching round my other
arm, I brought my hand over her bottom to the delightful orifice, first
moistening my finger with her spending which was oozing out between the
lips of her cunt and my standing prick. I thrust my finger into her
bottom-hole, and worked it in and out, to her infinite satisfaction.
She cried out in the excess of her lewdness--

"Oh! my dear boy, that is just as my dear husband used to do, and it
gave me great pleasure, but not near so much as you do, for your dear
prick is twice as large as his was, and fills me with an excess of
pleasure which was never approached with him."

All this led up to a superb and lascivious fuck, in which we both died
away in mutual ecstasy, with cries of voluptuousness, and then lay
soaking in delight until her weight forced me to beg her to turn on her
side. We then had a long sweet chat of love. Turning the talk on her
suspicions of having got with child at the morning prayers, I remarked
that she had had only one child by her husband, and as he had lived
many years after Harry's birth, and from what she said, she had
continued to be enjoyed by him, it was, therefore, not probable she
would now be got in the family-way.

"That appears probable, my dear boy, but then he took precaution not to
get any more children."

"But what precautions could he take, and how did he do so?"

"You are a curious boy, but I shall tell you. He used to continue long
at it, making me spend two or three times before he did, and then when
he felt it coming he used to withdraw, and his prick being all moist,
he would slip it into my bottom, and spend there as soon as ever he got
the head of it inside."

"And did that give you any pleasure, mamma?"

"He had excited me, and made me spend several times before he did so;
and beyond slight irritation I did not feel much pleasure, as he was
generally so near the crisis that he could scarce do more than get its
head in when off he went.

"Did he ever get it in altogether--and then did it give you pleasure?"

"Sometimes he did when he had drawn it out of my cunt too soon; in such
cases he used to pause until by rubbing my clitoris he got me into a
renewed state of lewdness, and then the pleasure was peculiar and
great."

"Oh, my dear, mamma, you must let me too fuck you in that way, and then
you know we shall get no children."

"My darling Charlie, it is impossible that this great big thing could
ever get into that orifice, my late husband's was not half your size,
and he had great difficulty unless I had already spent three or four
times and relaxed all those parts. I should not dare to let you attempt
it."

"Oh, yes my darling mamma, you will let me just get its point in and
spend there. I should so like to try. We will fuck two or three times
first, and then after the third time I shall frig you till you spend
first, and so I shall be ready just to put in the point for you to try
how it feels."

"But, my dear boy, the least throb on my part will push it out, unless
it is in over the nut, and only look what a size it is. I can hardly
grasp it, and although it is so velvety it is quite hard. Oh, the dear
fellow, let me kiss it, and then do you fuck me again, my darling."

She bent her body, gave me a delicious suck, then throwing herself on
her back, and opening her beautiful thighs, invited me to mount her.
Before doing so I also bent and sucked her charming and well-developed
clitoris, until she squealed again with pleasure, and begged me to put
it to her. I threw myself on her belly, and with one vigorous shove
drove my rampant prick up to the hilt, making her all shake again. She
was so hotly wound up that she spent with the single shove, and poured
a flood of hot liquid over my delighted prick. I, too, would have gone
off in two more thrusts had she not thrown her arms and legs around me,
and slipping her hands over my buttocks, held me tight pressed against
the pouting and greedy lips of her salacious cunt as if she would shove
in ballocks, buttocks and all, if it were possible. So keeping it
tightly thrust in up to the lowest hair, which lay all crushed between
us, I let her indulge in all the delight of perfect conjunction,
responding to her delicious throbbing cunt with powerful throbs of my
own highly excited prick. For more than a quarter of an hour did she
lie panting and convulsively sobbing in the perfect ecstasy of
enjoyment. At last she drew my mouth down to hers, and thrust her sweet
tongue into my mouth; I sucked it, and her hands relaxing the pressure
of my buttocks, against her cunt, I began a slow in and out movement
that soon renewed her utmost lubricity. Most actively and divinely did
she second me with an art quite her own. Fast and furious grew our
movements, until, like all things human, they came to an end in a
death-like agony of delight, in which my very soul seemed to take
flight, and we lay all unconscious, for I don't know how long, enjoying
all those exquisite after-delights which a prick soaking in the cunt of
a beautiful and lewd woman so enchantingly confers. When we recovered,
we rolled over sideways, and still intertwined and conjoined in the
sweet priapic bonds, we lay billing and cooing with all those soft
loving murmurings and bitings so befitting such moments. At last both
were again ready, and longing for the fight. I proposed the delicious
kneeling position. She saw at once my object, and said I was a little
traitor, who wanted to surprise her bottom-hole.

"But, my darling boy, it is really impossible."

I embraced, flattered, cajoled, and implored her until at last she
promised that if I would engage on honour not to go further, she would
try and support the entrance of my prick as far as over the nut, but
that I must really withdraw it if it was too painful for her. So these
preliminaries being arranged, she got into position. First stooping to
lick out her delicious cunt, and give a suck or two at her charming
clitoris, I brought my eager prick to the pouting and longing lips of
her delicious cunt, and after two or three rubs, thrust it in with a
rush that made my belly smack against her glorious backside. We then
lay quiet, throbbing mutually in the luxury of voluptuousness. I passed
a hand under her belly, and frigging her clitoris quickly, made her
come in an ecstasy of delight. I only gave her time for one or two
throbs of my prick, and knowing that nothing so much delights a
lecherous woman as quick movements almost immediately after spending, I
commenced rapid series of thrusts, shoving my prick well up to the hilt
every time, and talking grossly all the while, such as--

"Does not that shove make you quiver? There you have it to the ballocks
in your lascivious and delicious cunt," &c.

She grew madly lewd, called me her own dear delightful fucker.

"Yes, yes; I feel it is up to the root. I have it well in, my dear boy.
Your dear, great big prick, it kills me--kills--kills me-with-joy. Oh!
oh! oh!"

She squealed again with all the lewdness of the most delicious spend.
She had hardly gone off, and was yet in all the throes of delight when
I, too, feeling I could hold out no longer, suddenly withdrew the
reeking shaft, and bringing it to bear against the corrugated and
beautiful orifice of her bottom, attempted to introduce it.
Notwithstanding the fury of my excitement, I was sufficiently gentle to
push in without force, and sheathed it over the nut without difficulty
or drawing a murmur from dear mamma, who fulfilled her promise, and did
her utmost to help me by pushing out her big bum, and offering no
resistance with her sphincter muscles. I was so highly wound up that
even if I had promised to be content with the insertion of the head, I
could not have gone on further, as the access seized me with such
killing sweetness that I melted away, shooting a torrent of sperm far
up into her entrails, and then losing all power of even the slightest
further thrusts. I suppose it was the long holding back to let mamma
spend two or three times that had wrought me up to such a high pitch of
nervous excitement that when I spent I seemed to lose all power of
further advance. This was the first time I ever felt this momentary
impuissance, but it was by no means the last; it generally follows the
holding back your spending powers in the fuck that leads to it. The
delicious throbbings of dear mamma's luscious cunt, which were repeated
in her arms, soon reawakened my momentarily dormant powers. My prick
had gone down more than usual, so that it was only a soft half
stiffness that ensued, but enough to enable me to give it a forward
movement, and it slipped almost imperceptibly in quite as far as he
could go before dear mamma had recovered from the ecstasy of her last
discharge. As she came to, I continued convulsively catching my breath,
as if I were still in that exquisite sensation of half consciousness. I
felt her pass her hand between her thighs, and heard her murmur--

"Why, I declare he is up to the hilt!"

Her gentle touch on my cods, which she took in her hand and fondly
caressed, made my prick stiffen sensibly. She felt this, and caressed
them more until she made it stand as stiff as ever, still imbedded to
the utmost in that delicious bottom, which by its increased throbbings,
seemed rather to welcome the stranger than repulse him. I pretended now
to recover my full consciousness, and cried out--

"Oh, where am I? I have never known such heavenly joy."

She raised her face up from the pillow--

"Why, you naughty boy, you have actually gone in up to the hilt; ah,
you have broken your promise; but I forgive you, only don't move yet."

I assured her I did not know how it got there, as I had spent and lost
consciousness as soon as ever his head was within.

Here I throbbed, and was met by as delicious a pressure. I passed my
hand round her belly, and found her clitoris stiff and excited. I
rubbed with the fingers of the other hand at one of her hard projecting
nipples. She soon grew madly lewd, and began a side wriggle on my
rampant prick. I lay still, determined to let her passions demand
movement of my part. I had not to wait long. She begged me to try a
gentle movement, I obeyed, and slowly withdrew but a short way, and as
slowly returned. Soon her lubricity got beyond all bounds. She begged
me to draw out further and somewhat quicker--then quicker and quicker,
until we both were in an excess of furious lust, which knew no bounds.
We rushed on to the final crisis with mutual cries of agonised delight;
indeed, mamma squealed so loud that I afterwards thought she must have
been heard. Her pleasure was of the wildest, and when I poured a flood
of sperm up her entrails at the very moment she herself was spending,
we both fell forward and fainted away. I was too much lost in ecstatic
joy myself to observe this, but lay long a tightly held prisoner
engulphed in that most exquisite joygiving aperture. At last I became
aware that mamma had really fainted. So drawing my prick out with
somewhat of a good pull, for he was most tightly held, and came out
with a flop, I rose and brought some water to mamma. I sprinkled her
face, and she opened her eyes, which beamed the intensest love upon me.
Her lips murmured something, I put the tumbler to her mouth, she drank
with avidity. Then looking at me again with the most loving expression,
she said--

"My darling boy, you will kill me with delight. Never--oh, never--have
I known such joy. It was too much for me, and I fear I am also injuring
you. We must be more moderate in future. Help me up, for I must rise.
Your last coup requires me to absent myself for a few minutes."

She rose, threw her robe over her shoulders, and left the room to go to
the water closet. I hoped that she would not go into her own room and
discover how matters were going on there. Fortunately she was afraid of
awakening Ellen, and so prevent our continuing bedfellows for the rest
of the night. She returned. I had purified myself in the meantime, and
now acted as her _femme de chambre_, and laved all the parts.

"My dear boy, we must not do this again for some time, do you know I
have passed blood, and was very sore when relieving myself."

We got again into bed. She would not allow of any further fuckings, but
tenderly embracing me, and putting my head on her bosom, we soon fell
asleep. She awoke me at dawn with kissing me and feeling my
stiff-standing pego. She laid herself on her back, and we had two most
delicious fucks without withdrawing. I knew that if I did withdraw she
would take herself off. Nevertheless, she took most kindly to the
second, as it would be our last until we had another opportunity of
meeting. She exerted all her wonderful skill and her movements were of
astounding agility. She twined herself round me almost serpent-like.
Our mouths and tongues were equally engaged, and the final crisis was
beyond description exquisite. I tried hard for a third course, but we
had already prolonged our sports to so dangerous an hour, for we could
hear them opening the lower window shutters, that she gave me a sweet
kiss of thanks and tore herself away. I lay thinking over the joys of
that ecstatic night, and then rose and dressed quickly, as we were to
breakfast and then walk home, where we were expected at nine o'clock.
However, after breakfast, mamma drew me into her sanctum, a house
store-room, to give me some directions. Of course, no sooner was she
there, than pushing her towards the table, I canted up her petticoats
over back, and gave her a good fuck, getting in from behind. She
yielded with a good grace, notwithstanding her protestations that it
was not for that she had come, as if it had been for anything else! Oh!
woman, woman! how thou seekest to deceive, even when gaining the very
object thou hast in view.

Harry told me they had peeped in and seen what we were at but he was
not so ready as me, and had not been able to go and do likewise.

We loitered all too long, and did not get back to school until after
ten o'clock. The doctor sternly ordered us to attend him in his sanctum
at twelve o'clock. We knew what that meant--a good flogging, and then
the doctor enjoying the account of our successes. At twelve o'clock we
entered the doctor's room, who followed us immediately after. He
scolded us sternly for being late, and said he meant to flog us both
well for our idleness and, he had no doubt, debauchery. We knew
immediately that he meant to lay on. From time to time he was fond of
really seriously flogging some one and we now saw that such was his
present intention, although we also knew it would end in an orgie,
after we had excited him sufficiently by recounting the details of the
fucking which he no doubt felt certain had taken place. He made us all
strip, and choosing to take Harry first he made me the horse to flog
him on. When all was ready, he began by some real sharp cuts on Harry's
backside, and then commenced his remarks.

"So, young gentleman, you have been seducing your cousin, have
you?"--whack--whack--whack--"and then making that the excuse for
neglecting your school." Whack, whack, whack. "I thought I had formerly
whipped out all idea about fucking your cousin." Whack, whack, whack.

Poor Harry writhed in real pain.

"Oh, sir, I'll never do it again without your leave."

"My leave indeed!" Whack, whack, whack.

The doctor now laid on for some time most unmercifully until the
revolution of pain turned to lubricity, and Harry's cock began to
stand, rapping fiercely at my bottom as he writhed under the sharp
infliction of the rod. Upon seeing the expected effect, the doctor
relaxed his severity, and changing the rod to his other hand,
afterwards only tickled the bottom to keep up the excitement. Taking
hold of the standing prick, he said--

"So this is the article that has been doing all the mischief."

He frigged it a little, stooped and gave it a suck.

"Ah, yes, I find it still tastes of cunt, and smells the true odour of
it; so you have been at it this morning again. Let me hear how it
happened."

Here Harry was let go. The doctor seated himself, Harry stood before
him, while the doctor in delight, handled his stiff-standing pego.

"Now, let me hear."

"Well, sir, when Charlie occupied mamma--"

"Oh, that is it, is it?" cried the doctor, "we shall have all that out
of him, by and by, go on."

"I slipped into Ellen. She made some difficulty for fear mamma should
catch us; but I took her and showed her through the key hole, how she
was having Charlie into her. Ellen was astonished at Charlie's immense
size, and seeing how easily and delightedly mamma accommodated him, she
thought that my smaller size could not hurt her, and she let me do it.
But I made her scream and bleed when I got in far enough to reach her
maidenhead. She tried to shake me off, but I was too firmly seated for
that, and I fucked her then, and again before I withdrew. I laved her
cunt and applied some glycerine, and this morning did it again without
hurting her any more. And she liked it so much that afterwards she
would kiss and suck it, and made me spend in her mouth, and then got me
up again for a final go."

"Upon my honour, a very pretty affair," cried the doctor. "Now suck my
prick, as she sucked yours."

This Harry did, till the doctor was rampant. He then made him cease,
but ordered me to mount on Harry's back. I knew I should catch it
sharp, as the doctor was just excited enough to wish to be more so. And
preciously he gave it me--interpolating questions as to how I had
accomplished my wicked ends. I told him it was his own advice to me to
let her see my prick, which I did, and the bait took.
Whack--whack--whack.

"And did you act this innocent sin?"

"Oh, yes! do spare me, sir, and don't lay on so hard."

Whack--whack--whack.

"Spare you, indeed! and how did she fuck?"

"Oh, most splendidly, sir."

Whack--whack--whack.

"How often did you do it?"

"I hardly know, sir; we were at it all night, and again this morning."

"Did she suck your prick?"

"Oh, yes, sir."

Whack--whack--whack.

"What did she think of it?"

"She said it was the finest she had ever seen, and that I must keep it
for her only."

"Well, that will do, now suck my prick, as she did yours."

He was soon excited up to the top of his bent. He made Harry take the
rod, and belabour his backside, and I had to stoop over the table,
while he fucked and frigged me, repeating all the time the account we
had given him of our fucking. After he spent, he dismissed us, having
gained his object. Shortly before our Christmas holidays commenced,
dear Mrs. Dale informed me, while sleeping with her one Saturday night,
that she found from the stoppage of certain things, she was in the
family-way by this sad rogue of a fellow, taking my large though at the
moment soft and inert instrument into her caressing hand.

"Oh, my darling mamma, is it so indeed?"

My prick rose to bursting point at the very idea, and in an instant I
was on her, and we ran a most delicious course, in which both died away
in rapturous insensibility. Being thus cooled, mamma began to discuss
the probabilities, and what ought to be done, if it should turn out as
she feared. She explained to me that as yet she could not speak with
certainty, but remembering the fainting on the first night, and the
cessation of her monthlies, the nature of which she explained to me,
little dreaming that I was perfectly _au fait_ of the whole matter, she
had every reason to dread that her fears where too well founded. This
would make it necessary for her to go abroad, when she would be so far
advanced as to be likely to draw observation. But she said it would not
do to distress ourselves about that until we were more certain of the
event. However, the very idea nerved me to renewed efforts, and again,
and again, we rushed into all the ecstasies of passion in every form
and way, especially did I gamahuche and suck up her precious balm, and
in like manner she, too, sucked me until exhausted nature laid us both
in the lap of Morpheus. We renewed our delightful pastimes when morning
light awoke us after our refreshing slumbers. Several times during the
Sunday we adjourned to mamma's bedroom for the same purpose, and again
had a glorious night of it before separating on the Monday morning. The
following Sunday, after another Saturday night of bliss, we all went
over to church, which heavy rain had prevented on the previous week,
and after service went to the rectory for luncheon. Here, in course of
conversation, Mrs. Dale mentioned that business would require her
presence in London for some days, and that she proposed starting on the
following Thursday, which was the day after our breaking up for the
holidays. She said also that she would take her son with her to London.
The doctor here observed that he, too, must go to London, to see a
gentleman who had some idea of sending his son to the rectory, and if
Mrs. Dale could defer the departure until Saturday, it would be very
agreeable to him to be her companion on the journey. This was readily
acceded to, and my dear aunt, who guessed to what this tended, and who
had herself taken a great fancy to Ellen, and longed to embrace her
young charms and gamahuche her, chimed in with a proposal that as the
dear girl would thus be left quite alone, she would be most happy if
she would accept her invitation to occupy the bedroom that opened out
of her own room during Mrs. Dale's absence. The latter, who little
dreamt of my connection with her dear niece, and thought that the
protection of my aunt would be a safeguard to her, jumped at the
invitation, and expressed her gratification and thanks for so kind a
consideration on my aunt's part. I have not alluded to Harry all this
time, but of course, whenever his mother and I were occupied in amorous
alliance, he was equally engaged in the same delicious pastime with
Ellen. And, I may add, that once or twice I had seized a favourable
opportunity of gratifying the little lecherous creature with what she
called a feast of my noble prick. She, of course, was delighted at my
aunt's proposition as she at once foresaw how she would have me all to
herself for more than a week. A single glance from her explained all
this; and when, on leaving, she found an opportunity of taking my hand,
her pressure of it was most eloquent. So all parties were delighted,
for Harry, when we got together alone said--"By Jove, Charlie, I am so
jolly glad; I'll bet you anything I'll fuck my mother before I come
back. You know how I long to be in the delicious cunt that bore me; the
moment I heard she meant to take me with her, my cock stood ready to
burst."

My uncle, too, who also longed to fuck Mrs. Dale, had his intentions in
that direction favoured by the arrangement concluded. The following
night, when I was in bed with aunt and him, in the interval of a
charming little orgie, and after fucking me while I was in aunt's
bottom, and for the moment he could do no more, the conversation turned
on the coming journey. He expressed the pleasure he felt at the
opportunity it gave him of indulging in a long desired object. The
lecherous old fellow also alluded to a future opportunity it would give
him of enjoying the younger charms of the niece.

"Of course, you and my dear wife between you will break her in to allow
of any action on my part; and, by the way, my dear, I would suggest
that you should surprise Charlie in the act, and tear them asunder in
pretended rage--that Charlie should seize you, and say he would make
you by force a participator in the act, on the pretence of shutting you
up for finding fault: you must break from his arms, and fly to your own
bed, he must catch you as you try to enter it, and push his great big
cock into you, on which you must cry for help, and call upon Ellen to
come to your succour; she will come, but I do not judge her right, if
she will not rather assist Charlie, by holding you, than otherwise. You
must afterwards appear much offended; but it may be safely left to the
influence of Charlie's great prick to reconcile you to the incest, then
relaxing, as if gained over by it, you can join in their sports."

Thus this admirable man, with his great knowledge of the world and sex,
gave us excellent advice, which, as I shall state in the sequel, we
followed pretty exactly. Meanwhile aunt, excited by expectation, had
taken my prick in her mouth, and sucked it into firmness, then mounting
upon me, she began such an exciting action, wriggling her magnificent
backside, that it fired my uncle anew. Finding his prick stood
sufficiently stiff, he knelt between my legs, and greatly to the
satisfaction of my darling aunt, gave her the double pleasure of two
pricks fucking her at the same time, one before and the other behind.

My guardian had desired that I should continue with my uncle during the
holidays, and I was to leave him altogether at the end of the next
half. I did not know his object at the time, but I found that he
himself went down to my mother, and stayed for a fortnight, paying
great attention to Miss Frankland. He announced his wish that my
sisters should go to a first-rate finishing school in London in the
summer, and seeing Miss Frankland look somewhat disappointed, he sought
an interview with her, and laid himself and his fortune at her feet;
expressing a wish that if she accepted him, their marriage should take
place on her separation from her pupils. This was too good an offer to
be refused, and after the usual grimace of being perfectly unprepared
for such a proposal, and desiring to have a day or two to consider it,
she accepted the offer. I at once anticipated immense gratification
from this connection. I should naturally, when in London, have every
opportunity of enjoying that adorable creature, and it will be seen in
the fourth volume of these memoirs, to what delicious orgies this
connection led. You may be sure that my loved mistress, the adorable
Benson, and the no less lascivious Egerton, would welcome so glorious a
creature as Miss Frankland, at that time become Mrs. Nixon, and how
the Count's eyes glistened, when he beheld her in all the majesty of
her superb and hairy form; how the two women gamahuched her splendid
clitoris, and how the Count and I strove which should most fully
satisfy her lascivious and lustful passions. But all this will be seen
in its proper place in the sequel.

Meanwhile the day arrived for the departure of uncle and Mrs. Dale,
with Harry. As the coach passed through our village, Mrs. Dale drove
over bringing Ellen with her, to leave her at the rectory, as arranged.
All the proprieties were duly observed. They departed, Harry going
outside, with only the doctor and Mrs. Dale in the interior, I squeezed
my uncle's hand, and gave him a knowing look, which he returned, with a
meaning wink--and off they went. When we returned to the house, and
aunt took Ellen up to the room adjoining her own, with which there was
a door of communication, and which, I have before observed, had been
made use of by uncle on more than one occasion. When they came
downstairs, with kind consideration, for she could see by the
protrusion in my trousers the state I was in, aunt said--

"My dear, I have some household duties to arrange, so you must excuse
me; meanwhile Charlie will show you our grounds, and amuse you for an
hour or two. When luncheon is ready I shall order the large bell to be
rung for you."

Ellen had not yet removed her bonnet, and taking up her shawl, we
sallied out. You may be sure we lost no time in reaching the summer
house, already known to you as arranged for and dedicated to the
service of Venus. A fire was always kept laid, which I immediately
lighted, but as it was a bright sunny day, and the place looked south,
it was not at all cold. While I was occupied at the fire, Ellen threw
off her bonnet and shawl, and undid her belt--she wore no stays. I
seized her in my arms, and gently laid her on the couch--her petticoats
were freely canted up, showing her beautiful belly and now more fully
fledged cunt. I stooped and gamahuched her at once. She was so excited
that in two minutes she sighed deeply, pressed my head down to the lips
of her cunt, and gave down her sweet and balmy sperm. I myself was
already so rampant that not waiting to lick it up, I brought my huge
pego to the charming orifice, and plunged in one effort up to the hilt,
quite taking away her breath. But she recovered herself in an instant,
and with all the energy of her younger lubricity, quickly brought us
both to the grand final ecstasy in which soul and body seem to die away
in a joy too great for poor humanity to bear. We remained locked in
each other's embrace, and lost to all around for some time. On coming
to our senses I rose, and said we must go to work more lasciviously the
next time. The fire having burnt up, and the room being small, it was
already of a pleasant temperature. So begging Ellen to strip, I threw
off my own clothes, and we quickly stood in all the beauty of nature,
admiring each other. Some delicious preliminaries preceded our next
encounter, which we procrastinated till passion could no longer be
restrained, and again we died away in all the raptures of satisfied
lust, and sank once more into the soft languor of the after-enjoyment.
Next we had a mutual gamahuche, and then a final fuck for the present,
as it was time to dress and be ready when called to luncheon. As soon
as our toilets were finished, I took her on my knee, and told her how I
should steal along to her bedroom at night, so that she must not lock
her door. I told her also that we must be as quiet as possible, as aunt
slept in the next room. She was delighted with the prospect of having
me all to herself for the whole night, naively telling me that I gave
her so much more pleasure than Harry did, that I seemed to fill her
whole body with a joy almost too intense, and now that she was to have
me every night, she hoped her aunt would stay away for a month. Here
the dear creature threw her arms round my neck, and kissing me, thrust
her sweet little tongue into my mouth. You may be sure I reciprocated,
and putting a hand up her petticoats, and a finger up her charming
little cunt, was just about to turn her on the sofa, when my aunt
opened the door, and stopped further proceedings. She pretended not to
see Ellen's confusion, hoped I had amused her, and told us to return to
the house, as luncheon was ready. We, of course, obeyed. With sharpened
appetites, produced by our late warm exercise, we indulged in a
plenteous meal, aunt taking care to ply me with Champagne, for which,
as may well be imagined, she had her object. She afterwards ordered me
to my room, to do the daily task the doctor had set for me and which,
as she said, she was to see to the doing of--giving me a sly wink.

"Ellen, my dear," she added, "you must keep up your practice at the
piano daily, for an hour and a half at least."

She thus separated us. I went to my room, lay down, and fell fast
asleep, but in about half an hour, was awakened by the warm embrace of
my glorious and wantonly lustful aunt. She stooped down, and taking my
limp prick in her mouth, rapidly sucked it into its accustomed
firmness. As soon as that was accomplished, she begged me to rise and
undress. She herself had come only in a loose morning dressing-gown,
which she instantly threw off, and jumped on my bed, where she lay
stark naked, in all the splendid development of her superb form. I was
naked in a jiffey, but knowing she would want some extensive fucking, I
threw myself upon her cunt, and gamahuched her until she spent twice
before I mounted upon her, and introduced my large tool into her
longing cunt. Here, also, I played with her, and did not spend myself
until she had twice given down her own contribution. This encounter was
on her belly, with her magnificent legs twisted above my loins for a
fulcrum to her splendid action, for few women could equal her in the
delicious wriggle of her glorious backside. After we had soaked for
some time in all the ecstasies of the after-languour. I withdrew, to
place her on her hands and knees for the next bout, but took advantage
of her position to gamahuche her again into spending twice before I
withdrew my insidious tongue. Then turning round, and gazing in rapture
on that most noble and massive bottom, which, as I have before
remarked, I never saw equalled by any woman, I stooped, and closely
embraced and kissed its divine orifice, tickling her into wild
excitement by thrusting my tongue therein, so much so that she begged
me to fuck her at once. I mounted behind, her hand passed under her
belly and guided me into her throbbing hot and longing cunt. I gave one
violent lunge, and sent my prick at the first thrust up to the hilt.
This so excited the dear creature that in one or two delicious wriggles
on my stationary prick, and with a pressure that seemed as if it would
nip it off, she spent profusely, squealing all the time like a rabbit.
I was very glad to give her so many discharges, without myself being
forced to spend, for I wished to be able to do my duty by Ellen at
night. Aunt lay for several minutes panting and throbbing on my prick
most deliciously, until I could no longer bear to be inactive, although
the pleasure of looking down on the glorious and palpitating orbs below
me had given me the greatest satisfaction. But now stooping down upon
her, I passed one hand under to excite her clitoris, and with the other
took hold of one of her beautiful large and hard bubbies, and began
manipulating its nipples--a proceeding most powerfully exciting to dear
auntie. It awoke all her lust and the dear lascivious creature again
spent before I was ready to follow suit. The pause that followed
allowed my excitement to subside a little, and enabled me to hold out
until her lust recovered its wonted energy. She again, with her
pressures and movements, soon compelled me to more rapid action, but
this time I determined to enjoy the exquisite delights of her delicious
bottom-hole. So when she became very hot, I suddenly withdrew, and,
happily, hitting at once on the delicious orifice, plunged at the first
thrust up to the cods, taking dear aunt's breath away, but she
instantly recovered, and loving sodomy to her heart's core, I could not
have done anything better suited to her libidinous passions. It was
glorious to see the energy with which she met and responded to my
thrusts, her superb buttocks working with surprising energy, and giving
me, at each stroke, when I buried my prick to the hilt, the most
exciting pressures. Both being so lustfully excited, matters were not
long in coming to the final ecstasy. I felt as if my whole soul was
poured into her, when with loud cries of the liveliest enjoyment, I
spent with fury, in the very heart of her entrails. She was perfectly
overcome with delight, and sank senseless on her belly, dragging me
down with her, for her grip by the sphincter was too strong to let
anything out that was within. We both became insensible to everything
but the delicious death-like languor of the after-enjoyment. We lay
long in this trance of joy, and when dear auntie came to her senses,
she begged me to rise, as she must go downstairs. I did so, and when
she rose from the bed, she took me in her loving arms, and kissing me
tenderly, thanked me for the enormous pleasure I had given her, and
said no one in the world was my equal, and that I ought to thank her
much, that she allowed any one else to participate in my exquisite
power of fuck. She gathered up her gown, and left me to dress. I soon
was downstairs, and found Ellen, who looked as if she expected me to
find an opportunity to fuck her at once. But after the encounters I had
already had, both with-her and with aunt, though I had kept myself from
excess with the latter, I felt no inclination to press matters again to
a conclusion, especially seeing that I intended passing the night with
her. So assuring her we should be likely to be caught if imprudent and
so lose all chance of night work, she was satisfied to be quiet and
reasonable. Aunt coming in, we spent the afternoon in pleasant
conversation, and a walk together in the garden. After dinner I fell
sound asleep on the sofa. The two women, each with the same object,
left me to my deep repose, and only awoke me when it was time for all
to retire. Thus refreshed, I was all ready for the night's work before
me. I allowed half an hour to elapse, that all the house might to be in
their bedrooms, and then, with merely a loose dressing-gown on, I stole
along to dear Ellen's room, opened the door and entered. She was
already in bed, impatient for my arrival; she had left both lights
burning, as well as a cheerful blaze from a good fire. I dropped my
robe, and was in an instant stark naked, and in her longing arms. Under
our mutual impatience, our first was a rapid course. Then followed a
long enjoyment of the after-languor, and then a more prolonged and
rapturous embrace. After soaking in bliss for some time, we rose, and I
posed her before the fire, gazing delightedly on all her young charms.
The hair on her cunt had become much more developed than before, her
bosom too was filled out, even her hips and bottom seemed enlarged,
doubtless owing to the fucking she had had since I first knew her,
which naturally hastened her ripening into womanhood. I grew very
excited by this inspection of her increasing charms, and determined to
have a fuck on the rug before the fire. In order to enjoy it the more,
I drew forward a cheval glass, projected it forward, and lying down,
directed her to move it until I was satisfied I could see all the play
of her bottom in the position I meant to fuck her. So lying down on my
back, I made her stride across my head and settle down on her knees,
and bringing forward her delicious little cunt over my mouth, I
gamahuched her until she had twice given down her balmy essence. Then
she shifted her position lower down, until just above my prick, which
by this time was rampant with desire. I guided its point to the
rosy-lipped orbit, and bringing her own weight to bear upon it, she
sank delightfully impaled upon the upright stake. I made her rise and
fall a few times, that I might enjoy the sight of its entrance and
exit. Then gently drawing her down upon me, I folded one arm round her
slender waist, and turning my head, found that the cheval glass,
inclined forward, reflected as it were from above her beautiful bottom
and back, and of course her cunt stretched to the utmost with my huge
prick, and above it the sweet little corrugated pink aperture of her
bottom. With my free arm I embraced one hip, and bringing my hand
round, moistened it with the plenteous spunk of her cunt, and
insinuated a finger into the smaller abode of bliss. Her excitement
grew furious, and knew no bounds. The action of her backside was
glorious to see reflected in its active risings and fallings. I let her
do all the work, which enabled me to hold back my own, until she
approached a second discharge, when the heat of her cunt seemed to fire
me with additional powers, and the action of both our backsides became
fast and furious, and soon brought down the ecstatic discharge, which
instantly laid us low, panting with all the wild passions we had just
allayed. We lay long locked in each other's arms in the ecstasy of
blissful enjoyment. Then rising, we embraced tenderly, and retook us to
bed. I would have excited her and myself to another effort, but she
begged off, saying that she felt quite exhausted and overcome with the
day and night's work we had already enjoyed. Indeed, I did not wonder
at it, for I had made her spend seven or eight times more than myself.
Nor did I regret her resolution, as I knew the morning would bring my
aunt into the field, and then the two would try my powers to the utmost.

We slept profoundly, and morning was already advanced before we awoke.
From a displaced chair I saw that aunt had been in to look at us, so I
knew she was on the watch. I threw the clothes off dear Ellen that I
might gaze on all her young charms. The want of covering awoke her. She
lovingly looked up at me, and throwing her arms round my neck as I bent
over her, drew my head down to hers, and impressed a loving kiss on my
lips. Our tongues interlaced--a hand slipped down and encircled my
rampant and throbbing prick. I turned, and placing my knees between her
legs, was about to penetrate love's bower when the door leading to my
aunt's room flew open. My aunt entered, gave a scream of surprise--well
acted--and cried out--

"Good gracious! What do I see? Who would have thought it-"

And, apparently to save Ellen, she rushed forward, seized me by the
arm, and with a certain degree of willingness on my part, drew me out
of bed, saying--

"I am horrified beyond measure. How dare you commit such a sin and
crime as to seduce a young girl under my care? Cover yourself up, sir,
directly, and go to your own room."

I boldly declared I would do no such thing; on the contrary, as she had
spoiled my sport with Ellen, I was determined she should pay for it
herself.

"How dare you talk to me, you dreadful boy?"

"Not dreadful at all, dear aunt, look at this poor dumb thing, and see
how he longs to be into you."

Upon this I seized her in my arms as if to throw her on the bed. She
made a pretended struggle, during which she gave a tender squeeze to my
rampant prick. Then, breaking from me, she fled to her own room,
pretending to endeavour to shut the door in my face but taking care to
give way and hasten towards her bed. I caught hold of her as she bent
forward as if to get into it, and canting up her chemise, the only
article of dress she wore, I was into her longing and luscious cunt
from behind up to the hilt in one thrust. She gave a subdued scream,
and called to Ellen to come and prevent me from violating her. Ellen
came, but wisely would only look on while I worked away manfully.

"Ellen, why don't you pull him away--he is ravishing me--and oh,
horror!--committing incest."

She pretended to struggle greatly, but cleverly did so to her own
profit, by wriggling her backside so as to send me further up into her
cunt.

"Oh, Ellen, Ellen, do help me."

"Ah, no," said Ellen, "I shall let him do it, and then you cannot tell
upon me."

My aunt seemed greatly distressed at this, and actually managed to shed
tears, then buried her face in the bed as if in despair, but all the
time most actively seconding me. As the crisis drew near, she raised
her head, and said--

"Heaven pardon me, this mere simple schoolboy is exciting me to such
pleasure as I never before felt."

She then gave way to all her lubricity, and we brought matters to a
crisis in the utmost ecstasy of enjoyment. Aunt's head sank on the bed,
while the rapturous inward pressures of her cunt soon began to raise my
prick to its pristine vigour. She felt its throbs and responded to
them, but no doubt thinking that an immediate repetition would betray
our previous intimacy, she turned her face and body suddenly round, and
completely unseated me, my prick coming out with a plop. She began
again to weep, women can do so at pleasure, and to scold me for the
dreadful crime I had committed; to do so to her was incest--here
followed sob upon sob. I threw my arms round her neck, and kissing her
tears away, laid all the blame on that rampant fellow--taking her hand
and placing it on my still stiff prick. She drew her hand away quickly,
but not before she had given it a gentle squeeze. She told me I was a
dreadful boy, and that I must go away and leave her and Ellen to think
over what could be done in such an awful dilemma.

Here Ellen came forward, and tenderly kissing her begged her not to
send me away.

"I do so love him, dear madam, and I do so long to have him now--it was
so exciting to see him having you, that I shall die if you don't let me
have him now."

"Dreadful! dreadful!" said aunt. "Why, I thought I was just in time to
save you."

"Oh, no, he had slept with me all night, and has often had me before,
but he was not the first who had me, so that there was no violation nor
seduction."

"Then you must have seduced him, you wicked minx, for a more innocent
boy never was known."

Poor Ellen, confounded at the accusation, repelled it as untrue, and
said she knew well enough who seduced me.

Aunt for the moment felt this as a home thrust, for be it remembered,
she fancied she had had my maidenhead.

"What do you mean by that? I insist upon you speaking out."

Ellen gave way and said it was Mrs. Dale who first had me.

"She had accidentally seen how powerfully Charlie was armed, and then
could not resist teaching him how to use his weapon. I saw them doing
it, and hence I longed for it myself. Look, dear madam, what a noble
one it is. I am sure, if you had known of it, you could not yourself
have resisted having it, try it, try it once more, and I am sure you
will forgive us, and share our joys."

I seconded this good advice. Aunt seemed to be afraid of me, and jumped
into bed. While she was on her hands and knees I also jumped up, and
catching her round the waist, held her fast until I could also kneel
behind her and bring my prick into play. With all her apparent attempt
at resistance everything was done in such a way as to facilitate rather
than prevent matters going forward. Of course I was in her in a moment,
and then remained quiet for a few minutes to let her enjoy her inward
pressures for which she was so famous. She had buried her head in the
pillow, crying out--

"It is dreadful!-it is dreadful!"

Ellen came and leant over the bed embracing her, and telling her not to
resist, but to take it in freely, and then she was sure it would give
her the utmost pleasure.

"It is that which horrifies me, my dear, I never felt anything so
exquisite in my life before, but then think of the sin--with my own
nephew! it is quite an incestuous connection."

"What does that matter, dear aunt? for I shall call you aunt too, you
are so loveable and so beautiful. Oh, it was such a pleasure to see him
doing it to you and you are so gloriously fine a woman, I longed to be
a man to have you."

She had embraced aunt's splendid bubbies, than which nothing could more
please her, and now she begged to be allowed to suck one. Aunt gave
way, and was delighted. She slipped the hand next to Ellen down to her
charming cunt-Ellen opened her legs--Aunt's fingers began frigging her.

"Ah, my dear, how I loved to embrace my own sex at your age, our
tongues acted instead of men, and I could still delight in a fine fresh
one like this, it would almost reconcile me to what this bad wicked boy
is doing."

"Oh, that would be charming!--do let us do it at once. Charlie can
withdraw for a moment while I get under you, and while you lick me I
can excite you and see the glorious work above me."

"You tempt me much, my dear girl, but what would your aunt say if she
knew?"

"But she never will know," said Ellen, who was all the time arranging
herself on the bed.

Aunt moved aside to allow Ellen to get under her, who then begged aunt
to throw off her chemise that both their bodies might be in close
contact. Aunt was longing to do so, yet made some grimaces about it.
She at length complied, and striding across Ellen, threw herself with
avidity on the delicious young cunt below, and began to gamahuche her a
mart. I instantly resumed my position. Ellen guided my prick into
aunt's burning cunt, then frigged aunt's clitoris, and worked a finger
in my fundament, while aunt was so delightfully gamahuching her. We all
rapidly came to the grand finale, with an excess of lubricity rarely
equalled. We were all somewhat exhausted by this bout, and, as it was
getting late, we rose. Aunt pretended to forgive my violating her for
the pleasure I afterwards afforded her. She embraced Ellen tenderly,
and said she had so enjoyed her person she hoped to renew such a
delight. Then taking hold of my prick she kissed it and sucked it until
it stood upright, and said--

"I don't wonder, my dear, at your having it when once you had seen it,
and I envy Mrs. Dale the pleasure of having first enjoyed such a
monstrous thing. If I had known he was so wondrously provided, I doubt
if I could have resisted the temptation to teach him how to make use of
it myself--my only wonder is how such a little thing as you have got
could ever take it in."

Ellen laughed, and said that her cousin Harry had opened the way, or
she doubted if ever she could have admitted it, but I was so gentle
while getting in, and when once in, it filled up every crevice so
deliciously, that she should grieve much if she were refused access to
it in future.

"So, dear aunt, I hope you will let him do it to us both. I can do to
you what you have just done to me, because before we had him and Harry,
aunt and I used to amuse ourselves in that way. Aunt is immense in that
particular, she could put it a little way into me, and gave me great
pleasure, and she said that I sucked it better than either her late
husband or any of half-a-dozen schoolfellows who used to amuse each
other; so, dear aunt, you must let me do it to you while Charlie is in
me, and then you will do it to me while he is in you. Only fancy how
nice it will be."

"Oh, you dear little coaxer, you are enough to seduce an angel."

So all was arranged that Ellen should come from her room and I from
mine, and meet in aunt's bed at night. We did so meet, and a most
glorious eight days we spent. I showed aunt that I could get into
Ellen's bottom-hole, and thereby gave her immense pleasure, and with
more reason the same result would occur with her. She gave an
apparently reluctant consent, and, that done, there was no bridle to
the utmost lubricity that the most wanton lust could devise. Aunt took
immensely to Ellen, and gamahuched her _à mort_, while the other repaid
her in kind. I did not regret this for it relieved me from too
excessive work. Thus we passed a most delightful eight days before the
absent ones joined us. Both uncle and Harry had succeeded in their
desires. From each I had the fullest details, but as their stories
would in some particulars repeat themselves, I shall relate the events
in a connected narrative.

Uncle and Mrs. Dale had the inside of the coach to themselves, Harry
riding outside. Uncle began by praising Harry; and then reverting to
the time he was first sent to the rectory, and the note Mrs. Dale sent
with him; he asked, not without a knowing smile, if the intimacy she
had formerly feared had been at all renewed, because he had observed
that Harry appeared worn and pale on his return on the Mondays, and was
dull and stupid that day. Mrs. Dale seemed somewhat alarmed at hearing
of this, probably she began to think that something might have occurred
between the cousins while she was busied with me, uncle observed her
uneasiness, and, guessing the cause, said--

"My dear Mrs. Dale, if anything has taken place, and anything comes of
it, I am a man of the world, and you may rely upon my assistance and
discretion to take such steps as may tend to keep it from the knowledge
of the world."

She thanked him, and said she would be glad to accept his aid if any
unfortunate event should have happened--but she hoped not.

Uncle saw that her fears were excited, so he held onto the subject, so
at last she avowed the she feared there might have occurred some
passages between the two cousins, for she had foolishly trusted that
all thought of that had gone out of their heads, and she might not have
taken such precautions as she ought to have done.

"Well, my dear madame, my services are at your disposal in case of any
necessity, I am not in reality strait-laced, although, in my position,
I am obliged to appear so. I feel certain that my experience would be
able to suggest the best way of hushing up the scandal if such should
be likely to occur."

Mrs. Dale was profuse in thanks, and the doctor became warmer in his
discourse, saying that for such a woman as herself, whom he had long
admired and coveted, he would do anything.

"For, my dear madam, though I am in the church, something of the old
Adam still adheres to me, and the sight and touch of one who has so
charmed me as you have done makes a young man of me again."

Here his arm glided round her charming little waist. He drew her to
him, and with some coyness and words of refusal, she yielded her lips
to his embrace. His other hand, lifting up her petticoats, sought to
feel her beauteous cunt. Again resistance of hand and tongue, but a
yielding for all that, and the doctor soon got possession of her lovely
cunt. Finding her large and fine clitoris in a state of stiffness, he
knew that her passions were excited. So opening her legs, he got
between them down on his knees, and as he previously unbuttoned his
trousers in readiness and the fresh cunt stimulating his powers, he
pulled out his prick fully erected, and quickly established himself up
to the hilt within, the lady up to the last declaring she could not
allow him, but wriggling her bottom to perfection as soon as she felt
the doctor's very fine prick working within her. She then hugged and
seconded him, kissing and tongueing to his heart's desire. They soon
brought things to the ecstatic conclusion, to the great satisfaction of
both parties.

Of course, after this there was no difficulty in arranging for a
comfortable meeting in London. Indeed, it was resolved that they should
lodge in the same house and have contiguous apartments. On their
arrival in town they put up at one of those large lodging houses in
Norfolk Street, Strand, and were fortunate in finding the first-floor
bedrooms vacant. The house was a double one, or rather two houses
opening into each other. The doctor's bedroom was in the front, and a
former door of communication with the back room was locked on one side
and bolted on the other. Mrs. Dale took the back room, from whence
opened a small room with a bed in it, where Harry was lodged. The
doctor had thus easy access when the lady chose to withdraw the bolt on
her side. After consultation it was thought more advisable that she
should go into the doctor's room, so that Harry might not by any
possibility, hear any love exclamations that might happen to escape
them in the excess of their amorous amusements. Of course, the doctor,
who knew all about Harry's great desire to fuck his mother, and that he
meant to do so by one way or another in London, communicated his
intention of having Mrs. Dale into sleep with him that night, and,
therefore, begged Harry to defer his attempt until after the first
night, and then the doctor would aid him in his efforts.

The wily doctor fully intended, after Harry had perfectly succeeded, to
become the future companion of their incestuous intercourse. Harry's
bedroom door had one of those old-fashioned brass locks that were
screwed onto the inside of the door, with a brass covering for the bolt
at the side--not morticed as is now usual. Mrs. Dale locked her son in
after he retired to bed. Harry noticed the circumstance and smiled to
think how easily he could foil her but as he had promised the doctor to
make no attempt on his mother that night, he went to bed and slept
soundly. Next day he provided himself with a turn-screw and a small
phial of sweet oil. When mamma was busy at cards, he slipped upstairs
and easily unscrewed the brass receiver of the bolt, he oiled the
screws and worked them in and out until they went freely and then
screwed the covering on again, and felt secure of entering mamma's room
whenever he pleased. It had been combined between the doctor and him
that by means of gamahuching and frigging, mamma should be put into a
state of great excitement without allowing her to be satisfied, so that
her passions might be in favour of being fucked, no matter by what
prick. For this purpose the doctor was to keep her with him till dawn.
At night Harry watched through the key hole, and when he saw his mother
pass into the doctor's room, he at once unscrewed the covering, shot
back the bolt, and screwed the cover on again. He was thus all ready
for any event, and if his mother was astonished at his entrance, he
could say he found the door open, and she must have forgotten to lock
it. Thus prepared he went to bed and slept soundly. He was awake before
seven o'clock, and gently opening the door a little, he could see by
the opposite open door, and the light in the doctor's room, that mamma
had not yet left him. He drew on his woollen socks, and sitting where
the light flashed through the key hole, awaited his mamma's return,
which occurred very shortly after. The shutting off the light by
closing the door of communication told him that she had returned to her
own room. He heard her sit down on the pot, and the force of the flow
of water proved how healthy she was. He heard her rustle into bed. Then
throwing off his dressing-gown and socks he opened the door and
approached his mother's bed. Being awake, she instantly saw him in the
half-daylight that came from the unshuttered window.

"Harry! What on earth brings you here, and how did you open the door?"

"I heard you moving, dear mamma, I could not sleep for the cold. I got
up and tried the door, it was not locked, you must have omitted to turn
the bolt, but I should have rapped and called to you, if it had not
been open. I want you to let me get warm in your nice warm bed, and you
will cuddle your poor Harry--will you not, dear mamma?"

"If you will be quiet, and speak lower, for the doctor may hear you,
you may come in, and if you turn your back, I will warm you."

Harry lost no time in lying down by her side, and being really very
cold, and even shivering, he was glad enough to do as she bid him, and
turn his back, and cuddle his bottom into his mother's belly. She said--

"Poor boy, he is indeed cold, now go to sleep in mamma's arms."

Of course, he had no such intentions. Speedily getting warm, he turned
his face to mamma, and whispered, in the same tone she used--

"Oh, how I love my beautiful mamma."

Pressing his belly against hers, and letting her feel his prick
standing against her mons Veneris.

"Harry! What do you mean by embracing me in that way--don't you know I
am your mother, sir?"

He had seized with one hand her beautiful firm bubbies, and was
evidently in full amorous excitement, as she could feel by the stiff
pego pushing against her mount of Venus.

"My darling mamma, if you knew how much I love you and how I have
longed to embrace your beautiful body."

"Go along, you impudent boy, do you not know it would be sinful to
indulge in such sentiments with your mother-leave me directly."

"Oh, no, mamma, I can't, indeed, my own mamma. I mean to possess you,
what harm can there be in returning to whence I came."

Here he transferred his hand from her bubby to her splendid mons
Veneris, and showed what his words meant. She pretended to be very
angry, and endeavoured to push him away, but he held her round the
waist with his other arm too well.

"Desist this instant, or I shall cry out."

She really appeared very angry but, nevertheless, did not excite a
whisper during all the colloquy before or after. Harry now thought of
his best argument.

"Why do you attempt to repulse me in this way, dear mamma? Why should
you not let me enjoy your person as much as you like Charlie to do it?"

She gave a start at this home thrust.

"What do you say, you naughty boy? and where did you hear such a
falsehood as that? is that one of your friend Charlie's inventions,
after all the kindness I have shown him?"

"My darling mamma, Charlie never opened his lips to me on the subject.
I speak from what I saw with my own eyes."

"What do you mean? Tell me directly."

"Well, my loved mamma, do you remember the first Saturday night that
Charlie and I slept at home: after retiring to my room, I was obliged
to go downstairs to the water closet, where I went in my stockings, and
without a light, not to disturb you. I was coming up again, when a
sudden flash of light shone out in the upper passage. Mounting the
stairs, and when my head was on a level with the upper floor, I saw you
going towards Charlie's room. I went into my own, but left the door
open to see when you would return; finding you did not come back, I
crept softly along the passage, until I came to the turning that led to
Charlie's room. The light shone through the key hole. I quietly
approached. You know the bed exactly faces the door--and there, my
darling mamma, I saw you initiate Charlie into what was to him a
previously unknown pleasure. Oh! my beloved mother, the sight of your
naked charms, of the delicious way in which you were giving him his
first lesson in love, maddened me with desire. I was almost tempted to
come in upon you and violate you, if you would not consent. It was in
that state I remembered that Ellen was asleep in your bed. I ran there,
and throwing off the little I had on, I lay down beside her, and began
feeling her private parts. She awoke and said--

"'Dear aunt, do you wish me to do the same to you?'

"Her hand passed down to my erect member, she gave a cry of
astonishment. I whispered it was only me.

"'Oh! you must leave me directly. Aunt can only have gone to the water
closet, and will be back directly.'

"She was not to be pacified until I convinced her that there was no
chance of your speedy return, so I was obliged to bring her along to
Charles's door; we saw you quite naked, rising and falling on the
enormous weapon that Charles has. I never before saw it erect and could
scarcely believe my eyes; nor was it less wonderful the way in which
you so charmingly took it in. It greatly excited Ellen, as well as me.
We returned to your room--the fire still burned. I laid her down on the
rug before it, and took her maidenhead. She had seen how Charlie's
monstrous affair went easily into you, and felt how much less mine was,
so she never dreamt of it hurting her, and she let me get fairly within
the lips; then, while making her spend, I suddenly thrust it through
all impediments, and the affair was done; she gave a scream, as it hurt
her, but I had shut the door and none of you heard it. I let her sleep
after this, and did not do it again till morning. The next night we
again watched your delicious proceeding. Ellen was less sore, and we
repeated your example several times. She continues to this day to
wonder at the enormous size of Charlie's tool, and is surprised at your
taking it in so easily. But, oh, my mother, how my passions have been
excited by your glorious charms. What is Ellen compared with you? She
did very well to relieve my agony of desire to possess you, when I knew
you were better occupied, and that I could not do so--but that is all.
It is you, and you alone, my beloved mother, whom I adore, and I wildly
long to' possess this dear and magnificent cunt beneath my hand." Mrs.
Dale was perfectly flabbergasted at this recital. "You abominable boy,
how dared you to follow me, and be a spy upon your mother, and to make
it known to Ellen, too; doubtless you have been boasting of it, and
telling others."

"No, indeed, mamma, Ellen and I were on oath that we would never reveal
to any mortal the delicious sight we had seen--so you see, darling
mamma, that you can fully trust your own boy. Oh, do let me do it; feel
how my poor thing throbs."

Here I must give you Harry's own account of what took place.

"I took her hand with very little resistance, and I could feel her
fingers gently clasped my prick, before she withdrew her hand.

"'But no--it cannot be--it would be incest."

"She twisted her body round, so that her magnificent bottom came
against my belly. As she turned, I slipped my hand down, and laid hold
of her shift, so that in turning, it left her bottom bare, and sticking
out against me. I lost not an instant, and before she had quite settled
down, I brought my stiff-standing pego against her delicious cunt from
behind, and as it was reeking from her previous spendings produced by
the rector's gamahuching, I plunged it at one shove as far as her
buttocks against my belly would allow, at the same time dropping my
hand from her waist to her cunt, so that when she sprang forward, as if
to turn me out, I met her clitoris, it was quite stiff, showing her to
be really in a state of amorous excitement. This attack on the clitoris
made her as quickly move back, which double movement thoroughly
engulphed me. I lost no time in proceeding to the most active movements
in and out. This was too much for her, she could not resist entering
into the encounter with all the force of her passions, and we ran a
very rapid course, ending in the most ecstatic delight, and with sighs
of joy we lay clasped together in all the delicious after-languor. I
could feel by her exquisite internal pressures that her lust was not
yet alleviated, and this nerved me to fresh efforts. After a feigned
resistance, dear mamma passed her hand behind her, and putting it on my
buttocks, assisted in sending me further in at each home thrust. We
were longer this bout, and enjoyed it more. After the usual indulgence
in the after-joy, she turned, and embracing me tenderly said--

"'Oh, my dear child, this is very wrong, but very delicious. You must
be very discreet, my dear Harry, for if it were known it would disgrace
us both for ever.'

"'My sweet mamma, do not fear; have you ever seen anything like
indiscretion in the last six weeks, although I was madly longing for
you? Oh, kiss me, my beloved mother.'

"The sweetest of kisses followed, our tongues met, her hand wandered;
already she found my pego standing.

"'My darling, I must kiss it, it is so much more developed than I could
have expected, and as hard as iron.'

"'Not as large as Charlie's, mamma.'

"'That is true, my dear; but it is the stiffness, and not the size,
that gives the real pleasure. Of course, when both are combined, as
with Charlie, they are irresistible.'

"Meanwhile I was feeling her cunt: her clitoris, which you know is
largely developed, stood stiff.

"'Mamma, darling, what a size this is. Ellen told me you could put it
into her.'

"'Oh! the bad girl, to tell tales out of school.'

"'Never mind, mamma, I must suck it while you play with mine.'

"I turned on my back with my heels up--mamma lay down upon my belly
reversed. I sucked her clitty while frigging her cunt, and she sucked
my prick until we both spent, and each licked or sucked all the balmy
sperm that issued from the other. We continued our caresses until my
prick showed its readiness for another encounter. Mamma took me on her
belly this time, and as soon as I was engulphed, threw her legs over my
loins, and, by the most lascivious actions, contributed to our
enjoyment. Her glorious bottom heaved in unison with mine, our tongues
were interlaced, and at last with sweet murmurs of delight, we died
away in each other's arms in the most luxurious ecstasy of thoroughly
gratified desire. We lay long insensible of all around, throbbing in
pressures of lascivious delight, which would have soon led to another
love bout, but that mamma whispered it would be imprudent to continue,
for the sun was up, and breakfast time had arrived. I withdrew from the
sweet cunt with great regret, and in slipping out of bed brought my
mouth down to it, and gave it a loving kiss and suck, played with the
magnificent covering of bushy ringlets, and then tore myself away with
difficulty. Thus ended my first possession of my adored and glorious
mother, which was followed by night upon night of the most lascivious
enjoyment. I returned to my room, and was dressed and downstairs before
her. The doctor took an opportunity to inform me that she had excused
herself from joining him the next night on the pretence of not feeling
well, but in reality it was to have me all to herself for the whole
night; and a most delicious night it was. She displayed and exercised
her libidinous passions to the utmost. Never before had I such a treat.
It was, perhaps, the closeness of the relationship that added to the
excitement, but it appeared to me that she beat even the doctor's
splendid wife. Oh, she was so loving, too. The way she fondled me in
her arms and caressed me was irresistible. I can't tell how often we
did it--we were at it all night. The next night, under pretence of
fearing to exhaust me, she forced me to retire to my room after two
fucks, and locked me in. I had previously been informed by the doctor
that he had bespoken her for that night, and he begged me to fuck her
first, that the pleasure of gamahuching her might be enhanced. I,
therefore, did not do more than make a feigned resistance to her when
she told me I must go to my own bed. She said she would let me have one
embrace before she rose in the morning but that one was converted into
two exquisite spends. The next night the doctor wished to repose, as he
purposed surprising me in the morning. I laid myself out for this, and
when mamma was asleep I rose as if to piddle. I unbolted the door and
shook up the doctor, and then returned to bed. I had agreed with him to
make more noise than usual in the final ecstasy; he was to wait long
enough to allow of the after-enjoyment, as if he was taking time to
clothe himself a little, and was then to come in with a light. My
mother still slept. It was about four o'clock in the morning. I began
feeling her glorious buttocks, and, sliding under the clothes, turned
her legs apart--she insensibly slipped upon her back, I took her
charming clitoris between my lips, and soon sucked it into stiffness.
The excitement awoke her--she had dreamed I was fucking her--and so was
hot and randy. She drew me upon her bosom, threw the clothes off, and
her glorious limbs clasped my loins--her two hands pressed on my
buttocks, as if to drive me further home, and we ran a most delicious
course, I feigned to be even still more excited than I really was, and
almost brayed at the ecstatic moment of ejection. Mamma herself was too
far gone in delight to notice the loudness of my braying. She lay
panting and throbbing on my prick, almost in a state of insensibility
to aught else beside. Her eyes were closed, so that she did not observe
the entrance of the light carried by the doctor. It was not until he
was standing by the bedside, and made an exclamation of surprise, that
she was aware of his presence.

"She gave a scream--though not very loud--and covered her eyes with her
hand. I scrambled off her. The doctor, with great politeness, begged
her pardon for his intrusion, but hearing what appeared to him an
unearthly noise, he had feared she was taken ill.

"Here the usual resource of woman--tears--fell plentifully from mamma.
The doctor most affectionately begged her to calm herself.

"'My dear madam,' said he. 'I do not in any way blame you for this. I
am a man of the world, and I know that incest is practised to a far
greater extent than is at all imagined, and to prove that it in no way
offends me, I may at once tell you that it was my own mother who
initiated me into these delightful mysteries. I see that this dear boy
looks terribly frightened at my being a witness to the delight he must
have had; but to put him at his ease, we may as well inform him that
we, too, have indulged in that delicious game. I may add that this is
not the first time I have joined in orgies with more than one man or
woman, and nothing gives me more pleasure than to embrace one reeking
from the arms of another, especially if I have been a witness to the
previous encounter. See, my dear madam, how this dear instrument stands
stiff in proof of what I say, and to insure my silence dear Harry must
not object to my enjoying you after and before him.'

"So saying he dropt off his trousers and jumped into bed. He was met
with feeble remonstrances from my mother at doing it before her son:
but I assured her that I rather preferred to see her at work, as she
knew, than otherwise, especially as she evidently enjoyed it so much.
So the doctor forthwith mounted her. There could be no doubt that she
enjoyed it equally with him. My cock stood at the sight. I put it into
her hand, and she squeezed it lovingly--then stooping I sucked one
nipple, and you know how this excites her, and slipped a hand behind
the doctor, and after gently tickling his ballocks, acted postillion to
his bottom-hole. They ran a most exciting course and died away in
mutual raptures. No sooner did he turn off than I jumped up into his
place, and in one moment was up to the cods in that overflowing cunt.
Mamma feebly expostulated, but the doctor begged her to let him have
the pleasure of witnessing the vigour of the youth. I knew that in
heart mamma was delighted, for all women especially enjoy having a
fresh prick into them immediately after a previous one has been
withdrawn."

This is quite true--witness my own dear Benson in our early days; her
greatest delight was to have me the instant B. retired, and she avowed
that nothing could give her greater pleasure. I knew a lady in
after-life whom I and three others used to have together, and no sooner
was one off than another was on and sometimes two at once. She used to
tell us how she deceived her husband. When at Florence she had eight
lovers, and she had had them all on the same night without any of them
knowing of the others. She managed it in this way. She made them
come--two at ten o'clock, two at half-past ten, two at eleven, and two
a half-past eleven. They were put in four different rooms with
convenient sofas. She ran to No. 1 in a merely loose robe, which was
instantly thrown off. She was a magnificently made creature, the sight
of whose charms would inflame any one. She rapidly got two goes from
the first without withdrawing. Then saying that her husband would be
seeking her if she did not leave him, she rang for her German valet,
who used to fuck her himself, and who afterwards confirmed her story to
me, who showed my gentleman out of the room. Off she ran to No. 2, told
him she had only got away by letting her husband have a go, and that he
thought she had only gone to the water closet so he must do one good
and leave her. Of course the cunt full of fuck only excited him the
more, and he very soon racked off to her great satisfaction, and was
dismissed, leaving the rooms vacant for the two at eleven. As there was
not five minutes to spare she ran to No. 3, where another lover was
waiting. The same pretence was made as to the last, but as he was
largely hung, she got two coups from him and then packed him off, and
in the same way ran to the others, always with the same story, getting
two coups out of three running, who were the best fuckers, and waiting
with the last until he could do no more.

The same lady told me that once while living at Dieppe her husband ran
over to England for a few days. During his absence she had four young
men to supper every night, and made them all fuck her on the sofa
squabs laid on the floor, accommodating one in her bottom at the same
time. During the day her landlord, a married man, used to come in and
rack her off besides. At one time she was left alone at Mannheim, where
she made acquaintance with an officer, who introduced a second, and a
third, until she knew eight in all. She had the whole lot once to
supper, and they all fucked her three times each. She was a wonderfully
fine woman, and could take no end of fucking. Her father had initiated
her at twelve years of age. She was of Greek origin, and actually was
hairy and menstruated at that early age. But all women are rakes in
their hearts, and numbers never encumber them.

During Harry's encounter with his mother, the doctor stood beside them,
and handled Harry's ballocks and acted postillion to him. Mamma took to
it most kindly. The sight again inflamed the doctor, the incestuous
idea enhancing the excitement. As Harry withdrew, he begged Mrs. Dale
to get on her hands and knees, to let him put it in from behind. He
would rather have gone in behind but did not think she was as yet quite
prepared to allow that. He only said that the movement below his eyes
of such a fine bottom as hers added to the excitement. He further
proposed that she should kneel over Harry's body reversed, so that she
might gamahuche him, and he frig her beautiful clitoris.

"You mean to kill me between you," she said, but all the same complied.
She sucked Harry's prick and he spent in her mouth, which she swallowed
with great gusto, spending herself at the same moment in advance of the
doctor. Harry kept frigging her clitoris with one hand, while the other
was frigging the doctor's bottom-hole. It was a long bout, she made
Harry spend twice in her mouth, while she spent thrice to the doctor's
once, all dying away together in the final fuck. They lay long lost to
everything, and when they recovered, they separated and retired to
their own rooms.

The ice being thus broken, the remaining days were passed in the most
refined lasciviousness. The doctor had his way with her bottom, and
asked her leave to have Harry's after Harry had had his mother's
bottom-hole, while the doctor was fucking her, and had fucked the
doctor upon another occasion, the doctor crying out--"Hi, hi, hi!" as
if it hurt him, and he was losing his maidenhead. He professed immense
satisfaction, when she let him have Harry, declaring that he could not
tell whether having her both ways, having Harry, or being had himself,
was the greatest pleasure. Mamma declared that to have both apertures
filled at the same moment was the most delicious. It was then the
doctor said he would try. So fucking mamma in a kneeling position he
presented his great backside to Harry and was well fucked. It was after
this complete initiation that they returned home, and after such
proceedings, the transition to a general entry into our orgies was
easily arranged. As they were to arrive to a late dinner, it was
resolved that Mrs. Dale should stay the night, and we would see what
that would bring forth. They arrived accordingly. Mrs. Dale went to
Ellen's room, taking Ellen with her to help her at her toilet. Here
ensued an explanation between them. Mrs. Dale felt that there must be
an explicit avowal on both sides. She admitted to Ellen that Harry had
come to her bed, and only succeeded in his horrible purpose by telling
her how he and Ellen had seen her operations with Charlie, and had
followed her example.

"And now, my dear Ellen, as there must be no secrets between us, tell
me if you and Charlie have got together."

"Well, yes, we have. You know I had seen how immense he was, and yet
with what pleasure you took him in. So curiosity made me give way one
day that we were in the summer house, and he slept with me afterwards."

"Does the doctor's wife suspect?"

"Oh, yes, she knows all about it. I forgot to bolt the door one night;
in the morning Charlie made too much noise. She came in, merely in her
chemise, ran up and pulled him off me, without imagining she ran any
risk herself. Charlie seized her in his arms, and swore he would do as
much to her, to prevent her telling. She was horrified, and fled to her
own room, but had not time to shut him out; he forced the door open,
she ran to her bed, intending to ring for the servant, he caught her as
she had one knee up on the bed, and was into her from behind before she
could accomplish her purpose. She cried out to me, to come and pull him
away. I went, but told her Charlie was right, as it would prevent her
splitting upon us. I rather think that Charlie's large proportions gave
her much pleasure, for she soon ceased to struggle, indeed she had her
back to him, and his strong arms round her waist prevented her using
her hands. She cried much afterwards, and talked about the greatness of
the crime. She had then got into bed. Charlie followed, to coax and
console her, and, of course, got into her again. I thought she enjoyed
the second, for her bottom heaved to meet him. She afterwards accused
him of the crime of seducing a young lady, her guest, but I stopped
that, by avowing that my cousin had had me previously. Then she accused
me of seducing Charlie, and here, I must implore your pardon, for I let
out inadvertently that you had initiated him, for I had seen you having
him."

"Oh, you bad girl, how could you be so cruel and imprudent?"

"Well, dear aunt, there is no great harm done. Charlie's aunt was soon
quite appeased and regularly joined us after this. She is as fond, if
not fonder, of gamahuching me as you used to be; she has grown greedy
for Charlie's immense cock, envies your having had the first of him,
and says that if she had known of his wonderful proportions, she could
not have resisted initiating him herself. She hopes that, through my
means, she will become more intimate with you. I have told her of your
beautiful clitoris. She dotes on the gamahuche, and vows that she will
never be happy till she has done it to you."

This explanation was a great relief to the widow, who knew she was all
right with the doctor, and now foresaw that it would be all right with
his wife also and they would have complete freedom to indulge in the
wildest lubricity. So having dressed, they descended to dinner. The
doctor had explained all their London doings to his wife, so that after
dinner the three ladies exchanged confidence. Aunt was so eager to see
and suck Mrs. Dale's large clitoris that they adjourned to aunt's
bedroom, where the doctor discovered them in the midst of their
operations. Mrs. Dale was stretched on her back, with extended
thighs--aunt, with her head pressed by Mrs. Dale's hands down on her
cunt, was sucking at the splendid clitoris, and working some fingers in
and out her cunt. They were too intent on their pleasure to notice his
entrance. Aunt's petticoats were above her hips, as she knelt. The old
boy's cock stood, he advanced, knelt down, got between her legs, and
fucked her as she was, begging her to continue her lascivious
operations on Mrs. Dale. When he had finished, he congratulated both
ladies on the intimate friendship established between them, said it was
the best wish of his heart. He assured Mrs. Dale that his wife was the
best woman in the world, and never grudged him a little variety.

"So I have acknowledged my infidelity with you, and it appears my
nephew has been taking my place, in my absence. She tells me you
instructed Charlie, and that he is monstrous when in erection, as big
again as me, or as a certain Grenadier Captain, once a favourite of my
wife's. I am curious to see it. She tells me also that he has been
sleeping with your charming niece Ellen, who, I must confess, has
raised in me a great desire to possess her. Now, my dear madam, if you
will consent to invite Charlie to sleep with you and Ellen, I could
come in, after you have each had a turn or two out of Charlie, and take
Ellen, while you would have Charlie all to yourself. My wife won't
object, and I hope you will give your consent."

"Well, my dear doctor, after what has occurred between us, I can refuse
you nothing, but I think dear Harry should have some comfort. I
suppose, my dear madam, that the doctor has told you of my son
surprising and violating me. Your husband reconciled me to his
caresses, and I can assure you that without the enormous size of
Charlie, he has a charming way that may please any woman. From what the
doctor says, you are free from prejudices, why should you be left out
in the cold, while we are all enjoying ourselves, why should you not go
to his bedroom, and see what he is made of. I, his mother, can strongly
recommend him to your favour."

So it was arranged.

During the evening, Mrs. Dale whispered to me to come to them after the
domestics had gone to bed. I went and fucked them both three times,
twice in front and once behind, the one who was being fucked always
gamahuching the other. When I began to tail off, Mrs. Dale arose,
unbolted the door of communication with uncle's room, and invited him
to Ellen's arms, who was very glad to have a little further experience
of another man's prick. Uncle gallantly gamahuched her before fucking
her, then begged to see my wonderful prick, pretended to be perfectly
astonished at its monstrous dimensions, and wondered how Ellen's little
cunt could ever have taken it in. It was a tight fit certainly, but the
dear creature liked it none the worse for that. Before fucking Ellen,
he begged Mrs. Dale to let him guide my large prick into her. After
enjoying our first movements, and being excited into sufficient
consistency, he proceeded to fuck dear Ellen; even he had some
difficulty in entering, notwithstanding the libations I had previously
poured into her, but being once fairly hilted, he declared it was one
of the tightest little cunts it had ever been his good fortune to fuck.
After this, we proceeded each our way, and with a longer interval,
brought matters to the exquisite conclusion, panting and throbbing for
some time afterwards.

The doctor now retired, and we arranged ourselves for repose. We were
awakened in the morning by the entrance of aunt and Harry. He flew to
his mamma's arms, who lay down on Ellen to gamahuche her while Harry
was fucking her. Aunt and I coupled in the old-fashioned way. Uncle
entered while we were in full operation, and seeing the tempting
backside of Harry, scrambled up behind and fucked his bottom. After we
had done, aunt pretended to be shocked at his attack on a boy's
bottom--a woman's was a different thing.

"Well, then, my dear, get upon Charlie the next time, and I shall fuck
your truly magnificent bottom."

And he drew Mrs. Dale's attention to the glorious proportions, not only
of aunt's bottom, but of her body, and all her limbs.

"Oh, it is indeed glorious," said she. "I must, my dear madam,
gamahuche you. I have not forgotten the exquisite pleasure you gave me
in that way."

"Willingly," cried my aunt, "provided you give me your clitoris to
occupy me."

"Certainly, that will suit me admirably; but you must lie upon me, that
I may have the pleasure of gazing on that magnificent bottom, and
caressing the immense rotundities of your buttocks."

Oh, it was a glorious sight to see these two wanton lascivious women in
the full enjoyment of each other. It set us all on fire, and the moment
they had done I slaked the fire within me in the capacious but tight
cunt of my aunt, while uncle fucked her bottom-hole. Mrs. Dale lay
under Ellen, while Harry fucked Ellen from behind, and Ellen gamahuched
her aunt, who herself guided her son's prick into Ellen's cunt, and
tickled her clitoris, at the same time acting postillion to her son's
bottom-hole.

Oh! it was a splendid bout--we were all so excited and it was also the
first meeting of us all in one orgie. We all died away in a perfect
heaven of ecstasy, and lay long in the after-enjoyment. Our previous
night's work made this the last for the time, and we all separated to
seek some welcome repose before breakfast time.

Mrs. Dale remained our visitor for three days, during which we met in
the doctor's bedroom every night, and renewed our delicious orgies.
Mrs. Dale carried off her son and niece, and I promised to come over to
her cottage on the following Saturday, when Harry and I took turn and
turn about with the two dear creatures, sometimes fucking one between
us two at once. When the school resumed its work, Mrs. Dale and Ellen
always dined at the rectory on Sunday and slept there, when we made a
general orgie in the old style.

This continued until our midsummer holidays, when I was to leave the
rectory for King's College. Mrs. Dale's and Ellen's pregnancies, daily
becoming nearer to the period of parturition, were getting more
difficult to conceal. We had long discussions with uncle as to what was
best to be done. It was at last arranged that they should leave the
cottage as if for a tour on the continent, but in reality should only
go to Paris, and take apartments in the house of a good _accoucheuse_
in the environs, and remain quiet there till the period of delivery. It
was not necessary for them to go before we broke up, and the doctor and
Harry and I could accompany them, and after I had seen my guardian on
my return to London, I had no doubt of getting his leave, and the
necessary means to visit the continent up to the middle of October,
when the classes would begin. It all fell out as arranged. Nothing of
the pregnancy was visible, thanks to the full robes worn.

We accomplished our journey, found a capital _accoucheuse_ in a
beautiful neighbourhood, with a large garden. Harry, uncle, and aunt
remained with them, while I returned to London. I saw my guardian, who,
after putting me through an examination, expressed himself much pleased
with my progress, said the visit to the continent would expand my mind,
and that he would furnish me with the means. He recommended that I
should visit my mother first for a fortnight, and announced that at
about the end of that time the girls would come up to London to enter a
first-rate finishing school. He further told me he had proposed to and
had been accepted by Miss Frankland, and they were to be married at the
same time; my sisters were to be bridesmaids, and I could be present at
the marriage before going abroad. All this being arranged, I ran down
home. My mother was delighted to see me, and thought me grown and much
improved. It is needless to say how glad my sisters and Miss Frankland
were to see me. They had had no fucking except by tongue or dildo, so
you may imagine the fury with which they set upon me the first two or
three nights. We resumed all our lascivious operations of former days.
My sisters had developed into splendid women, the youngest still the
most libidinous. Dear Miss Frankland, on my congratulating her on her
intended marriage, lovingly told me that it was the prospect of being
near me that had reconciled her to it. We spent a most delicious
fortnight, which passed like a day.

I found an opportunity of fucking my old governess, Mrs. Vincent that
was. My son was a fine little fellow, toddling about and talking
already. His mother loved me as much as ever, and was become a finer
developed woman, more amorous and lecherous than she used to be. She
said no one could be kinder or more loving than her husband, and she
had never been unfaithful to him but with me, whom, as her own
formation, she must always love, and would never refuse me anything I
asked when it could be safely done. At the sole opportunity I had I
fucked her three times without drawing, and finished with a
bottom-fuck. I may here mention that a little girl followed for nine
months from that period, which she always assured me was mine.

My mother, the girls, and Miss Frankland all came up with me to London.
The marriage went off with _eclat_. My guardian made very handsome
presents to my sisters, and gave me a gold watch, chain, and seals,
together with a handsome cheque for my travelling expenses. He and his
bride, whom I fucked just before she went to church, departed for
Scotland, to return by the English lakes, for their honeymoon trip. A
few days afterwards, having had two or three nights excellent fucking
with my sisters, mamma and I conducted them to their school, and left
them with tearful adieux. My mother was to remain in town for a week
until uncle and aunt's return, when she intended to accompany her
sister to the rectory and remain there until I returned from the
continent. I was quickly again in Paris. We took rooms near the two
darlings, where uncle and aunt remained for the week they had yet to
stay. We took mamma and Ellen several times to the play, and they slept
with us every night. Uncle and aunt left at the end of the week, but we
kept on the apartments for the dear women to come to us, fucking them
as much as we could. It seemed as if their pregnancy stimulated their
lubricity, for we could hardly satisfy them. We had at least always to
take them on hands and knees, although neither of them ever showed much
in front--their babes lying just between--but, by Jove, their hips
expanded splendidly. Dear mamma measured a yard across, and her
backside projected almost as much as my aunt's. She loved to be fucked
in her bottom-hole to the last. We actually had them both up to the
night before the day they were each confined. Nothing could be more
favourable than their time. As I formerly stated, each had a little
daughter.

On the ninth day afterwards they were both able to rise, but as it
would have been very prejudicial to renew our intercourse before
another three weeks had elapsed, Harry and I went off for a walking
excursion in Switzerland, which we traversed in all directions, with
continual delight at the glorious scenery. We did not touch a single
woman. When very sharp set we fucked each other, but very little even
of that, so that we renovated our constitutions and returned in robust
health, ready to do justice to the charms of the two darlings, who had
impatiently awaited our arrival.

It is needless to repeat the description of the delicious fucking with
which they welcomed us. They appeared more lovely than ever, especially
Ellen, who had developed into womanhood. We made arrangements to leave
the two darling children in the hands of a healthy wet nurse, and set
out on an expedition down the Loire to Tours, Bordeaux, and the
Pyrenees, returned at the end of September by Montpellier, Nismes,
Avignon, and Lyons.

The two babes were in excellent health. Arrangements were made for
their remaining with their foster mother for a year, and we all
returned to London together.

We had three nights' delicious fucking before they returned to the
country, and promises were made that they would come to town from time
to time to renew our orgies. My mother and aunt came up to see me
settled in my lodgings, which were taken in Norfolk Street, and I was
entered at King's College.

I passed a delicious night with aunt before she left; and ran down with
my mother to see her safe home. On my return I found my guardian had
returned. I called to pay my respects to his wife. I found her alone,
and we managed her first piece of adultery, which, as you may suppose,
was not the last. But as this third volume is already a long 'one, I
shall here close it.

The fourth will introduce us to London, and renew the delicious
intercourse with Mrs. Benson, as well as with my guardian's wife, and
our dear friend MacCallum, as well as many other friends.

END OF VOLUME III.



VOLUME IV.



CONTENTS



Jane--Ann--Mrs. Nichols--The Benson, the Egerton, and the Count--Ann,
the Nichols, and MacCallum--Aunt, Uncle, Harry, the Frankland and the
De Grandvits--Carl--The Count--The Frankland



I concluded my last volume by saying that I had taken lodgings in
Norfolk Street, Strand, for the convenience of being near King's
College. It was at the house of a Mrs. Nichols, tall, powerfully built,
masculine, but a kind and motherly looking widow of fifty-two--an
attentive and bustling landlady, looking herself to the better cooking,
and having a plain cook, who was also a general servant, to help her
downstairs, and two nieces to do the waiting and attendance on her
lodgers upstairs. The younger was there alone when I entered the
lodgings; her elder sister had had what they called a "misfortune," and
was then in the country until she could be unburthened of it. She was
expected back in about six weeks. Meanwhile, as the winter was not the
season, I was the only lodger, and the younger had only me to attend
to; her name was Jane; she was but a little thing, but very well made,
good bubbies and bottom, which I soon discovered were firm and hard,
projecting fully on both sides. She was fairly good looking, but with a
singular innocent manner of freedom about her that made me imagine she
had as yet had no chance of a "misfortune." In a week we became
intimate, and after often praising her pretty face and figure, I
snatched a kiss now and then, which at first she resented with an
attractive yet innocent sort of sauciness. It was in her struggles on
these occasions that I became aware of the firm and hard bosom and
bottom.

Up to this time my flirtations were without ulterior object, but the
reality of the attractions of these hidden charms raised my lustful
passions. I gradually increased my flatteries and caresses, squeezed
her bubbies, when I sometimes drew her on my knee and was kissing her,
and as at first she resisted my drawing her to my knee, I took occasion
to lay hold of her buttocks, which I found more developed than I could
have supposed. Gradually her resistance to these little liberties
ceased and she would quietly sit on my knee and return the kiss I gave.
Her dress was a little open in front, so from feeling her bubbies
outside, I gradually got to feeling their naked beauties inside. I now
thought I could attempt greater familiarities, so one day when seated
on my knee with one arm round her waist, I pressed her to my lips, and
while so engaged, whipt my free arm up her petticoats, and before she
had become aware of the movement, had got my hand upon her mount, a
very nicely haired one. She started up to a standing position, but as I
held her close clasped round the waist she could not get away, and her
new position enabled me the easier to get my hand between her thighs
and thus to feel her charming pouting little cunt. I began attempting
to frig her clitoris, but stooping she drew her cunt away, and looking
at me with a droll innocent expression of alarm, and with a perfect
unconsciousness of the import of her words, cried,--"Oh! take care
what you are at. You don't know how a lodger this last summer suffered
for seizing me in that way and hurting me very much. I screamed out,
aunt came up, and, do you know, he had £50 to pay for his impudence."

I could not but smile at the extraordinary innocence of the girl.

"But I do not hurt you, dear Jane," said I, "and don't mean to do so."

"That was what he said, but he went on in a most horrible way, and not
only hurt me very much, but made me bleed."

"It would not be with his hand, you see I only gently press this soft
hairy little thing. I am sure that don't hurt you."

"Oh, no! if that was all I should not mind it, it was when he pushed me
on the sofa, and pressed upon me, that he hurt me terribly, and you
must take care what you are about, or you, too, will have to pay £50."

There was a curious air of innocence in all this; it was evident to me
the fellow had got into her, and broken her hymen with violence, and
then her screams had prevented his finishing his work. Her manner
convinced me that she was really not aware of the consequences, or
rather had not as yet really had her sexual passions aroused.

"Well, my dear Jane, I neither intend to hurt you or make myself liable
to pay £50, but you will not refuse me the pleasure of feeling this
nice little hairy nest, you see how gentle I am."

"Well, if you will do me no more hurt than that I shan't refuse you,
because you are a nice kind young gentleman, and very different from
the other rough fellow, who never chattered with me and made me laugh
as you do--but you must not push your fingers up there, it was
something he pushed up there that hurt me so."

I withdrew my finger, and as, at my request, she had opened her thighs
a little, I felt and caressed her very nice little cunt, and with a
finger pressed externally above her clitoris, I could see that she
flushed and shivered on feeling me there. However, I did no more than
gently press and feel all her hairy mount and fat pouting cunt; she
said I must let her go, or her aunt would be coming up.

The first step was now gained. Gradually I progressed further and
further; felt her charming bare arse as she stood before me, got her to
let me see the beautiful curls she had got on her cunt, then came to
kissing it, until at last she opened her thighs and let me tongue it,
to her most exquisite delight. I made her spend for the first time in
her life, and soon she came to me for it. I had gradually introduced a
finger up her cunt while licking her clitoris and exciting her so much
that she was unconscious of my doing it; then two fingers, and after
she had spent deliriously, I made them perform an imitation of a throb,
which made her jump and ask what I was doing. I asked if she did not
feel that my fingers were inside of her sweet Fanny.

"You don't say so. It was there I was so hurt."

"But I do not hurt you, dear Jane?"

"Oh, dear no, it makes me feel queer, but it is very nice."

"Well, now you know that I have two fingers inside, I will use my
tongue again against your charming little clitoris, and work the
fingers in and out."

I did so, and she soon spent in an agony of delight, pressing my head
down hard on her cunt, and crying--"Oh! oh! it is too great a
pleasure!" and then died off, half insensible. Another time I repeated
this she told me not to forget to use my fingers. Having made her spend
twice I took her on my knee, and told her that I possessed an
instrument that would give her far more pleasure than tongue or finger.

"Indeed?" said she, "where is it? I should so like to see it."

"You won't tell."

"Oh, no!"

So pulling out my stiff-standing prick, she stared in amazement. She
had really never seen a prick, although it was evidently a prick that
had deflowered her, for with my fingers I had explored her cunt, and
found no hymen there. I put her hand upon it, she involuntarily grasped
it firmly.

"This enormous thing could never get into my body, look, it is thicker
than all your fingers put together, and only two fingers feel so tight."

"Yes, darling, but this dear little thing stretches, and was made to
receive this big thing."

I was exciting her clitoris with my finger, she grew evidently
lasciviously inclined, so saying, "Just let me try, and if it hurts you
I will stop; you know I am always gentle with you."

"So you are, my dear fellow, but take care not to hurt me." She lay
down on the bed, as I desired, with feet up and knees laid open. I spat
on my prick, and wetted the knob and upper shaft well, then bringing it
to her cunt, well moistened by my saliva in gamahuching her, I held
open the lips with the fingers of my left hand, and half buried its
knob before getting to the real entrance.

"Don't flinch, dearest, I shall not hurt." And I got it well over the
knob, and buried it one inch further.

"Stop!" she cried, "it seems as if it would burst me open, it so
stretches me."

"But it does not hurt you, dearest?" I had immediately stopped before
asking the question.

"No not exactly, but I feel as if something was in my throat."

"Rest a little, and that will go off." I slipped a finger down on her
clitoris, and as I frigged it she grew more and more excited, giving
delicious cunt pressures on my prick, it gradually made its way by the
gentle pushing I continued to make without other movements. It was more
than half in when she spent, this not only lubricated the interior, but
the inner muscles relaxing, a gentle shove forward housed it to the
hilt, and then I lay quiet until she recovered from the half fainting
state her last discharge had produced; soon the increased pressures of
the inner folds showed that her passions were awakening afresh. She
opened her eyes and, looking lovingly, said I had given her great
pleasure, but she felt as if something enormous was stretching her
inside to the utmost. Had I got it all in?

"Yes, dearest, and now it will be able to give you greater pleasure
than before." I began a slow withdrawal and return, frigging her
clitoris at the same time, for I was standing between her legs. She
soon grew wild with excitement, nature prompting her, her arse rose and
fell almost as well as if she was mistress of the art. The novel
combination of prick and finger quickly brought on the ecstatic crisis.
I, too, was wild with lust, and we spent together, ending in an
annihilation of all our senses by the extreme ecstasy of the final
overpowering crisis. We lay panting for some time in all the
after-joys. Dear Jane begged me to give her some water, as she felt
quite faint. I withdrew, still almost in a standing state, got her some
water, helped her up, seated her on the sofa and kissed her lovingly as
I thanked her for the exquisite joy she had given me. She threw her
arms round my neck, and with tears in her eyes told me I had taught her
the joys of heaven, and she should always love me, and I must always
love her, for now she could not live without me. I kissed and dried her
eyes, and told her we should in future enjoy it even more when she got
accustomed to it.

"Let me see the dear thing that gave me such pleasure."

I pulled it out, but it was no longer at the stand; and this surprised
her. I explained the necessity of its being so, but said she would
quickly see it rise and swell to the former size if she continued to
handle it so nicely. It rose almost before I could say as much. She
fondled it, and even stooped and kissed its ruby head. We should
quickly have got to another bout of fucking if the ringing of the call
bell had not brought us to a sense of its imprudence; so after
arranging her hair and dress, she hastily descended with some of the
breakfast things.

Of course, so good a beginning led to constant renewals and Jane
quickly became extremely amorous, and under my instruction a first-rate
fucker.

As all my dear friends were not in London, I was fortunate in having
such a _bonne bouche_ to comfort me. My sisters passed every Sunday
with me, and both got some good fucking out of me in every way, without
raising any suspicions in the house.

A month after I had taken up my residence at Mrs. Nichols's, Jane's
sister arrived. She was a much finer woman than Jane, broad shouldered,
wide-spread bosom, which, in after-days, I found had not suffered by
her "misfortune," but then she had not suckled it. Her hips were widely
projected, and she was grand and magnificent in her arse. Naturally of
a very hot temperament, when once she had tasted the magnificent weapon
I was possessed of, she grew most lasciviously lustful, and was one of
the best fuckers I ever met with. Her power of nip almost equalled by
beloved aunt's. Jane was fair, Ann was dark, with black locks and black
hairy cunt--a very long cunt, with a small tight hole in it, and above
it a wide-spread projecting mount, splendidly furnished with hair. Her
clitoris was hard and thick, but with little projection. She also
became madly fond of arse-fucking, and particularly liked me to spend
therein. This was partly to prevent any consequences leading to a
second "misfortune."

On her first arrival Jane was much afraid she would discover our
connection and we took every precaution, although I, in my heart,
wished this might occur, for as she occasionally waited on me, I grew
lecherous upon one whose charms, even covered, excited me greatly. I
always flattered and praised her magnificence of figure whenever she
came alone to me, but as Jane generally was running in and out, I did
not attempt further action. One morning I overheard Mrs. Nichols tell
Jane to put on her bonnet and go to Oxford Street on some errand; I
knew thus that Ann would attend on me, and there would be no chance of
interruption from Jane, so I determined to come at once to the point.
We had become on friendly, chatty terms, and when she had laid
breakfast I asked her to help me on with my coat, which done, I thanked
her and with one arm round her waist drew her to me and kissed her.
"Hallo!" said she, "that is something new," but did not attempt to
withdraw, so giving her another kiss, I told her what a glorious woman
she was, and how she excited me--just see. I held one of her hands, and
before she was aware, placed it on my huge prick, that bulged out of my
trousers as if it would burst its way through.

She could not help squeezing it, while she cried--"Goodness, gracious!
what an enormous thing you have got!"

Her face flushed, her eyes sparkled with the fire of lust that stirred
her whole soul. She tried to grasp it.

"Stop," said I, "and I will put it in its natural state into your hand."

So pulling it out, she seized it at once, and most lasciviously gazed
upon it, pressing it gently. She evidently was growing lewder and
lewder, so I at once proposed to fuck her, and thinking it best to be
frank, and put her at her ease, I told her that I knew she had had a
"misfortune," but if she would let me fuck her I should be on honour to
withdraw before spending, and thus avoid all chance of putting her
belly up.

She had become so randy that she felt, as she afterwards told me, she
could not refuse so splendid a prick of a size she had often dreamt of,
and longed for.

"Can I trust you?" said she.

"Safely, my dear."

"Then you may have me--let me embrace that dear object."

Stooping, she kissed it most voluptuously, shivering at the same time
in the ecstasy of a spend produced by the mere sight and touch. She
gave one or two "oh's," and drawing me to the bed by my prick, threw
herself back, pulling her petticoats up at the same time. Then I beheld
her splendid cunt in all its magnificence of size and hairiness. I sank
on my knees and glued my lips to the oozing entrance, for she was one
who spent most profusely, her cunt had the true delicious odour, and
her spunk was thick and glutinous for a woman.

I tongued her clitoris, driving her voluptuously wild. So she cried--

"Oh! do put that glorious prick into me, but remember your promise."

I brought it up to that wide-spread, large-lipped, and immense cunt. I
fully expected that big as I was I should slip in over head and
shoulders with the greatest ease. So you may imagine my surprise to
find the tightest and smallest of entrances to the inner vagina I
almost ever met with, it was really with greater difficulty I effected
an entrance than I had with her little sister, whose cunt presented no
such voluptuous grandeur. It was as tight a fit as Ellen's was to me on
our first coition. Tight as it was, it gave her nothing but the most
exquisite pleasure, she was thoroughly up to her work, and was really
one of the most voluptuous and lascivious fuckers I have ever met with,
excellent as my experience has been. I made her, with fucking and
frigging, spend six times before I suddenly withdrew my prick, and
pressing its shaft against her wet lips, and my own belly, spent
deliciously outside. Shortly after it rose again, and this time after
making her spend as often as before, for she was most voluptuously
lustful, when I withdrew, she suddenly got from under me, and seizing
its shaft with one hand, stooped and took its knob between her lips,
and quickly made me pour a flood of sperm into her mouth, which she
eagerly swallowed and sucked on to my great delight.

We should have had a third bout but for the necessity of her going down
to her aunt.

I breakfasted, then rang to take away. Again we had a delicious fuck,
and a third when she came to make the bed and empty the slops. This
third time I begged her to kneel on the sofa, and let me see her
gloriously grand arse, and when I had to retire I would show her a way
that would continue both our pleasure. So after fucking her from
behind, and making her spend far oftener than me, I withdrew, and
pushing it up between the lips over the clitoris, with my hand round
her waist, I pressed it tightly against her cunt and clitoris, and
continued to wriggle my arse, made her spend again as I poured a flood
all up over her belly. She declared it was almost as good as if inside.

After this very shortly I proposed to push its nose into her
bottom-hole, and just spend within.

With reluctance at first, it ended in her not only liking the point
there, but deliciously enjoying my whole prick within, and eventually
it was always the receptacle of a first discharge induced by fucking,
and a second fuck completely carried on in that more secret altar of
lust. She became a first-rate _enculeuse_.

It soon happened that both sisters knew of the other enjoying me, and
it ended in their slipping down from their attic, where both slept in
the same bed, to my room, and we had most delicious fucking and double
gamahuching.

Ann was by far the finest and the most lascivious fuck, but little Jane
had a certain charm of youth and also of freshness, which got her a
fair share of my favours.

We carried this on for several weeks until use made us careless and
noisy.

The aunt, when no lodgers occupied the room, slept overhead, and,
probably being sleepless one morning, when it was early daylight, heard
our voices, came down and surprised me in the very act of fucking Ann
and gamahuching Jane, who stood above her and presented her cunt to my
lecherous tongue. A loud exclamation from their aunt roused us up at
once.

"Get to bed, you dreadful hussies."

They fled without a moment's hesitation.

Mrs. Nichols then began to remonstrate with me on the infamy of my
conduct. I approached the door apparently to get my shirt, for I was
stark naked, but in fact to shut and lock my door, and then to turn on
Mrs. Nichols, who apparently had quite forgotten she had only her short
shift on, which not only allowed the full display of very fine, firm,
and ample bubbles, but not falling below the middle of her thighs,
showed remarkably well made legs and small knees, with the swelling of
immense thighs just indicated.

My stiff-standing prick in full vigour, and if anything, still more
stimulated by the unexpected beauties shown by Mrs. Nichols, I turned
upon her and seizing her round the waist from behind, pushed her
forward, and before she could recover herself I had hauled up her
"cutty sark," seen a most magnificent arse, and into her cunt--not
without somewhat painful violence, before she could recover from the
surprise of the attack.

She screamed out murder, but there was no one who could hear but the
girls, and they knew better than to interrupt me. I kept fucking away
in spite of cries, and passing an arm round her body, with my finger I
got to her clitoris, which sprang out into considerable proportions. My
big prick and the frigging of her clitoris produced their natural
result. In spite of herself she grew full of lust. I felt her cunt
pressures, and knew how her passions were rising. Speedily, in place of
resisting, she began to cry, "Oh, oh," and breathe hard, and then most
gloriously wriggled her splendid arse, and as I spent she too was taken
in the delicious ecstasy of the final crisis. She lay throbbing on my
delighted prick until it stood as stiff as before. I began a slow
movement, she made no resistance, except crying out, "Oh! dear, oh!
dear," as if in spite of regrets, she could not help enjoying it;
indeed, at last she said--

"Oh! what a man you are, Mr. Roberts; it is very wrong of you to do
this, but I cannot resist enjoying it myself. It is years since I did
such a thing, but as you have done it, it makes me wish you should do
it again. Let us change position."

"Very well, but you must throw off this tiresome chemise, or I won't
withdraw."

As her lust was so excited, she made no objection, so withdrawing we
stood up; she drew her shift over her head, and displayed a far more
splendid form, with an exquisitely fair and dimpled skin, than I could
have thought possible.

"My dear Mrs. Nichols, what a fine perfect form you have got, let me
embrace you in my arms."

She was nothing loath, flattered by my praise. She laid hold of my cock
with one hand, and closely clasped me with the other arm, while I threw
an arm and hand round on her truly magnificent arse, and with my other
hand pressed on a wonderful pair of bubbles as hard and firm as any
maid of eighteen. Our mouths met in a loving kiss, our tongues
exchanged endearments. She said--

"You have made me very wicked, let me have this enormous and dear
fellow again."

I said I must first gaze on all her beauties, especially on her
gorgeous and enormous bottom. She turned herself round in every way,
delighted to find that I so ardently admired her.

She then lay down on her back, and spread wide her legs, and called to
me to mount and put it in.

"First I must kiss this beautiful cunt, and suck this superb clitoris."

Her mount was covered with closely curled brown silky locks; her cunt
was large with grand thick lips and well-haired sides. Her clitoris
stood out quite three inches, red and stiff. I took it in my mouth,
sucked it, and frigged her cunt with two fingers, which went in with
the greatest ease, but were nipped tightly the moment the entrance was
gained, and I frigged and sucked until she spent madly with absolute
screams of delight. I continued to suck and excite her, which quickly
made her cry out--

"Oh, darling boy, come and shove your glorious prick into my longing
cunt."

I sprang up and buried him until our two hairs were crushed between us.
She held me tight for a minute without moving, then went off like a
wild _Bacchante_, and uttered voluptuous bawdy expressions.

"Shove your delicious prick further and harder. Oh, you are killing me
with delight."

She was a perfect mistress of the art, gave me exquisite pleasure, and,
I may add, proved afterwards a woman of infinite variety, and became
one of my most devoted admirers. Our intrigue continued for years,
while her age, as is the case with good wine, only appeared to improve
her. Her husband was not a bad fucker, but having only a small prick,
had never stimulated her lust as my big splitter had done.

We had on this first occasion three other good fucks, which she seemed
to enjoy more and more.

As I had previously fucked the girls pretty well, my prick at last
refused to rise and perform. We had to stop fucking, but I gamahuched
her once more after again posing her, and admiring her really
wonderfully well made and well-preserved body. She had a good suck at
my cock, without bringing him up again.

At last we separated, but not before she made a promise that she would
sleep with me that night, and a glorious night we had. I had the more
difficult task of reconciling her to my having her nieces. I used to
have them one night, and sleep with her the next.

Ann, as I have said, was one of the lewdest and most lascivious women I
had ever known. I had told them of the beauty of their aunt's whole
person, and of her wonderful clitoris, and how she liked me to
gamahuche it. This awakened the tribadic passions of Ann to gamahuche
her aunt.

I, at last, persuaded her to let Ann join us, and both were afterwards
extremely glad I had done so, for both were thorough tribades, and
lasciviously enjoyed each other, while being fucked by me in turns.
Mrs. Nichols too, once she got used to arse-fucking, delighted in it,
and we had the wildest orgies together.

Meanwhile, my very dear friend MacCallum had returned to town. He lived
in the outskirts, but had taken a small set of chambers at Lyon's Inn,
a sitting-room and bedroom, where he had a complete library of bawdy
books and pictures to excite to new efforts passions palled with
excess. It was here I took my sisters, and every Sunday we four,
stripped to the buff, indulged in every excess the wildest lust could
prompt.

At Christmas, uncle, aunt, the Dales, and Ellen all came to town, and
taking the same rooms with others that uncle and Mrs. Dale and her son
had formerly down in Norfolk Street, we had the most glorious orgies.

I confessed that I had debauched my sisters during the weary months I
had been left alone with them, and advised their initiation into our
society. Uncle greedily snatched at the idea, so did aunt and Harry
Dale, but his mother and Ellen rather discouraged it. However, the
majority had it, and aunt went to the school, and took them away for
the holidays. I had instructed them to keep up the idea of a late
initiation by me, and how much they liked it when done, carefully
avoiding the least reference to former freedoms.

They afforded a very effective aid to the wild variety of our orgies.
Uncle especially affected them, and was never tired of fucking, sucking
or gamahuching their splendid charms. Aunt, whose lech was for fresh
young women, was unbounded in her admiration and tribadic use of their
bodies.

I made a confident of Harry Dale about our re-unions at MacCallum's,
and, with the latter's leave, introduced him to our orgies in the Inn.

MacCallum took greatly to the fine tight arse of young Dale. He also
wished to have Ellen introduced. I took occasion to break the matter to
her, and in the end she made a delicious addition to those private
orgies. In March Mrs. Benson, Mrs. Egerton, and husbands came up to
town.

I had written to the Benson, and got a note from her the moment she
arrived. I called immediately, and finding her alone, her husband
having gone to the city, was received with delight. After flying into
each other's arms, nature was too fierce for any amorous preliminaries.
A sofa received our ardent bodies, and before one could think, legs
were opened, cunt invaded, and a most rapid fuck, too rapid for luxury,
was run off. Then while recovering from our first delirium of pleasure,
we had time for a few words of mutual praise and admiration of
improvements in both; but it was not until I had fucked her four times,
and made her spend at least twice as often, that we found time to enter
into close converse upon past events.

I had known by letter of the intrigue with the Count, Mrs. Egerton, and
herself, and now heard, from her own mouth, more exciting details. She
told me how Mrs. Egerton was eager to possess my unusually great prick,
adding--

"By the way, she must be alone at this hour. Come along, we may have
some fun to-day."

I had not seen Mrs. Egerton for many years, in fact, for long before I
had fucked Mrs. Benson. We went. Her reception was all I could wish.

Mrs. Benson told us to lose no time, but to run off at least an
introductory embrace when the field was so clear. Mrs. Egerton made no
objection; the Benson acted mistress of the ceremonies, pulled out my
prick and lifted the Egerton's petticoats, turning both sides to view,
and making the Egerton handle and admire the nobleness of my prick,
then telling her to kneel and present her fat arse to my lustful gaze,
guided my longing prick into her really delicious cunt; and a most
excellent fuck we had, which, as Mrs. Benson said, would put us at our
ease in an interview she had planned for next day, in which the Count
was to join us, and telling me I should have to show my mettle to rival
the Count.

We met next day at a quiet house in Percy Street, Tottenham Court Road.
The ladies had gone to the Soho Bazaar, leaving their carriage in Soho
Square, going out by another entrance in a back street, and driving up
in a cab to us in Percy Street.

At an evening call I had made, to be introduced to Mr. Egerton, I had
met and been introduced to the Count. We had walked home as far as his
apartments, in Berners Street, and arranged to meet in Percy Street,
before the arrival of our beautiful and dear friends. Thus we were
impatiently awaiting their coming when they arrived.

It is needless to say no sooner had they entered, and the mere embrace
and kiss of welcome been given, than they retired to another room,
opening into the one where we 'were, to take off all encumbrances to
the wildest lust, while we, too, disencumbered ourselves of all our
clothes. We were quicker than they were, and the Count was in the act
of handling and admiring the grandeur of my prick when the two
beautiful creatures entered in nature's only robe, and well might we
exclaim--

"Woman, when unadorned is adorned the most," for two more beautiful
women or more perfectly lovely in shape could hardly be seen. Women,
too, as voluptuous and lascivious in their passions as any of their sex
could be, and it was now our delight to enjoy and satisfy their ardent
lust by fucking them in every way, as well as for the first time giving
them the joy of having two real pricks in them at once. The charming
Benson, as my original initiator in love's mysteries, claimed my first
embrace, the Count fucking Mrs. Egerton. We were so placed that each
could see the other, and thus enjoy the excitement of the scene. The
dear creatures spent thrice to our once.

Then the Egerton claimed me while the Count refilled the cunt I had
just quitted.

Again we made them spend thrice to our once. They preferred these
preliminary encounters to the more lascivious excesses we were about to
enter upon as exciting and preparing their passions for more voluptuous
embraces.

Both the dear creatures loved a prick _in culo_ from time to time, but
as yet they had not had the opportunity of having a prick in each
aperture at once.

The Egerton, to whom my prick was as yet a novelty, said she must have
it in her cunt while the Count planted his lesser but very fine prick
in her arse.

The Count's prick was quite as long, or nearly so, as mine, and even
thicker close to the roots, but tapered up to a small pointed knob, so
that for the _enculage_ he had greater facility, than my huge-knobbed
affair, whose head was as thick as any part of it. This difference of
formation made the dear creatures both prefer my prick in front while
the Count attacked them in the rear. They generally each got two, with
me below and the Count above. But, although it was at first somewhat
painful when my huge prick took the rearward side with the Count in
front, they soon got accustomed to it, although invariably beginning,
after our preliminary fucking, with the Count first _in culo_.

The Egerton, as I said before, made her first trial of two pricks
fucking her at once, by having me below her. I had laid down on my
back, she straddled over me, the Benson claimed the place of
conductress to the instruments of pleasure, and, first giving a suck to
my prick, she guided it into the delicious cunt of her friend, who sank
down upon my stiff-standing prick, deliciously impaling herself
thereon, and went off in a voluptuous discharge on feeling its huge
head engulphed to the utmost; she rose and fell upon it in an upright
position, until she had spent a second time, and had brought up her
passion to the wildest rage of lust, then falling into my longing arms,
she called out to the Count to shove his prick at once into her arse.

The Benson had, meanwhile, sucked and moistened the Count's fine prick,
making him as eager as the Egerton to be into her beautiful arsehole.
The Benson conducted it to the divine entrance of that rapture-giving
receptacle, which he entered at first with little difficulty, but as
the thickening of his prick by its further entrance began to stretch
the tender folds between our two pricks, the Egerton cried out for a
momentary pause, as it was producing the strange sensation that one
prick alone produces in the earlier stage of sodomitic embraces.

The Benson came to her aid by desiring the Count to withdraw about half
the distance he had gained and having whipt up some warm soapsuds she
well wetted his lower shaft and then he more easily recovered lost
ground, and gained a complete lodgement within the tremendously
stretched affair, for as I have said, the lower part of his shaft was
thicker than I could grasp.

The Egerton felt as if the two apertures were about to be torn into
one, and cried out for a few minutes' cessation.

We both lay still, beyond the involuntary throbbing of our pricks,
pressed as they were against each other, for the at-all-times-thin
membrane dividing cunt from arsehole was now stretched to the fineness
of gold leaf, and to our sensations did not appear to exist at all.

These double throbbings soon stirred up all the wild lubricity of the
Egerton's nature, first showing itself in the responsive inward
pressures of the delicate widely stretched folds of both receptacles,
then increasing in fiery lust, she cried out for us to begin gently our
first movements. We drew in and out in unison together, at first
slowly, but the Egerton finding that we were producing the most
excessive delight to her double-gorged receptacles, cried out--

"Oh! oh! It is heavenly; fuck faster, you angelic fuckers. I--Oh!
faster, faster. Oh! oh! it is too much."

She spent in such an agony of ecstasy as to faint clean away.

We were not aware of this, not having ourselves spent as we had only
paused to let her enjoy her most heavenly discharge to the utmost.
Then, first with throbs, and then with in and outward movements, we
soon recovered her from her trance of excessive joy. Her passions were
more violently stirred than before. She wriggled her arse convulsively
sideways, she raved in the grossest bawdy terms, and so excited us that
we all three came to the final crisis in wild cries of the grossest
lust, and died away in an agony of bliss, so overpowering that we lay,
almost insensible, soaking in the sacred vases in which were compressed
our well-satisfied pricks. Meanwhile the Benson, wildly excited by the
scene enacted below her eyes, sought relief by kneeling beyond my head,
for we always fucked on the floor with mattresses spread widely around;
she then backed her splendid arse over my head, and brought her cunt to
my mouth, and I had gamahuched her continuously until my own delicious
spending annihilated all power of movement for the time being.

The Egerton, in the agony of her pleasure at the moment of the last
spend, had fastened her teeth on the glorious arse of the Benson before
her, and bit so hard as actually to draw blood and make the Benson
spring forward with a sudden start and cry. But we were all too lost in
the ecstatic joys to even hear the cry of pain she uttered.

At last the Egerton gave signs of returning life. The Benson had risen
and was eager for her turn, but Mrs. Egerton implored that she might
have once again a taste of these more than heavenly joys while both
pricks were still engulfed within her and thus avoid the pain of
entrance.

This was so reasonable that the Benson yielded with a good grace.

The Count, to indemnify her, begged her to stride over our two bodies,
so as to bring her delicious cunt to his mouth, which, as he was
kneeling, was just at the proper level; so he gamahuched, and embracing
her splendid arse, postillioned her at the same time; thus we were a
chain of delight.

This bout was drawn out to great length.

The Egerton must have spent half-a-dozen times, and when we both at
last jammed our pricks up in the ferocity of lust, making all three
give down life's essence in an almost killing ecstasy, she really
fainted quite away, and so alarmed us that we withdrew to use such
remedies as were at hand to bring her to; even then she was quite
hysterical. We laid her in the bed; she was relieved by a copious flood
of tears, which she assured us were those of joy at the exquisite and
overpowering delights we had conferred upon her. She begged us now to
gratify the Benson with the same ecstatic joys we had bestowed upon
her, and she would be a quiet, and delighted spectator of our doings.

It was now my own loved Mrs. Benson's turn to experience the
inexpressible delights of the double junction. From her love of my
splendid splitter, of which she had taken the first sweets, and which
had been initiated in her deliciously adulterous cunt into the divine
mysteries of love, and the still more sacred and secret joys of the
second altar dedicated to the worship of Priapean unutterably sensual
raptures; from this circumstance and the constant use of the rear
receptacle practised by her husband, whose prick was a very fine one,
the initiation into the _double jouissance_ was less nervously effected
than with the less used arsehole of the more delicate Egerton, but at
the same time two such pricks operating at once made her wince a little
before we were fairly engulphed to the cods, the banging together of
which in their close proximity added greatly to the stimulating of our
lust.

The sweet Benson lent herself most readily to the work, and seconded us
by her art in wriggling her arse and the delicious cunt and sphincter
pressures; enjoying herself at once and more rapidly than the Egerton,
she got four delicious discharges before our somewhat more sluggish
senses would allow us to come to the grand final crisis, which seemed
to stimulate the divine Benson to a point of raving lust, which showed
itself in cries of the grossest bawdy; shouting to us to shove our
pricks in further and faster, calling us all the loudest blackguard
names she could put her tongue to--absolutely roaring as the final
discharge seized her in the very same instant that we poured floods of
sperm into both interiors, she then sank, annihilated by the excess of
the voluptuous delights conferred upon her, but lay throbbing and
pulsating in all the after-joys of the utmost venereal satisfaction. We
lay long in this delicious inanition of such voluptuous excesses.

The darling Benson exercised her delicious "nippers" in both orifices,
which soon had their expected effect, and shortly the flesh gave
symptoms of its "resurrection" to mundane joys, after having passed
through the heavenly delights of Paradise, truly rising from the most
delicious graves in which they were lying so exquisitely buried. Like
her lovely predecessor she was eager for more, and if it were possible
our second course was superior to the first, at all events it was
longer drawn out, for the previous draughts on our slackening
appendages made the further delivery an effort requiring longer
pumping, and thus swelled the amount of pleasure by lengthening the
process before arriving at the grand final crisis.

The Benson, much more ungovernable in her passion than we were, must
have spent six or seven times in our last effort, and died away in, if
anything, greater abandon than in our first course, and eventually sank
completely overcome by the entire satisfaction of her raging lust for
the time being. We, too, both wanted a respite, so we all rose.

The two dear creatures when once on their legs found instant necessity
to evacuate their rear receptacles of the double cargo taken in, and
disappeared for a few minutes.

We all purified ourselves and well laved everything with ice cold water
to reanimate them the sooner. We then sat down to a stimulating
refreshment, in which we at least all drank a bottle of Champagne
apiece, in the midst of delightful and exciting bawdy wit and obscene
stories, in which our darling _fouteuses_ showed a witty proficiency.

In half an hour we began to take up our positions. It was my turn to
take them in the rear, but both begged off for that day. The pause for
refreshment had given time to make them feel sore after the great
stretching they had undergone for the first time, so my turn was
delayed for three days, that being the usual delay in their orgies to
prevent suspicion by too frequent absences, but not excluding any
opportunity that might occur for a rack-off in the mean time. So we
only each fucked them once and closed our exquisite orgy for that day;
parting with every expression of fully satisfied desires, and the
warmest kisses and embraces.

The Count and I walked to his apartments to refresh ourselves there
with hot tumblers of toddy; whiskey being a great favourite of his,
and, in his opinion, the best restorative after our exhausting efforts
with the two insatiable creatures.

He congratulated himself on my accession to these orgies, as being a
great relief to the burden he had had in satisfying both in both ways
when all alone with them.

However, the Count was an indefatigable and an unwearied fucker, but
two such insatiable cunts often had tried his powers to the utmost, and
was more than he liked to do at the interview, so he had found whiskey
toddy a remedy at once efficacious and agreeable. I myself with my
private excesses at home was glad to know so pleasant a restorative.
The Count and I became the most intimate and attached friends; through
him I perfected myself in Italian, and not many years after this,
passed some happy months with him in Italy after he had been amnestied,
returned to his country and recovered part of his once large property,
but of that hereafter.

I called next day on my adored Benson, who had developed into a
glorious woman, more lovely and lustful than ever.

We had but a moment to ourselves, and could not use it for amatory
purposes but as we both had much to relate we agreed to meet at our
house in Percy Street the next day.

This house was taken furnished for love purposes only, and merely an
old woman was kept to take care of and arrange matters when we were
gone; it was held in the Count's name but paid for by the two fair
users of it. They had latch keys each, and the place was kept ready for
everyday use.

The dear libidinous Benson avowed that she used it for other lovers
unknown to the Count or the Egerton; paying the old woman liberally,
she had all her own way.

We met there the next day, rushing into each other's arms, and then
assisting in the undressing we had three exquisite fucks, during which
the delighted Benson spent seven times, and then we could have a long
and uninterrupted talk over old times, and my after-doings. I told her
all, and how the Vincent, my elder sister, Miss Frankland, my aunt, and
Mrs. Dale had all thought me an innocent, receiving his first lesson in
their delicious cunts, and how true and wise had been her sage
counsels. She listened in wonder and delight, drew from me descriptive
pictures of our conjunctions and thrice interrupted my narrative to
have a delicious fuck to calm the excitement raised by the lascivious
descriptions of my acts with all those most glorious women. I told her
also of my intrigue at my lodgings with the two sisters and the Count.

My description of the latter set her off in raging lust, and produced
another most excellent fuck. But afterwards she told me I must find
other quarters in some place where Mrs. Egerton and she, or either of
them, could call and receive comfort without observation.

I told her I was inscribed for chambers in the Inner Temple, which I
had reason to believe I should get in a week or two. This much pleased
her, and it will be seen that I succeeded in getting just such a set as
exactly suited the great object in view, approachable without being
under the observation of others; commodious and agreeable, where all
that the dear Benson wished to be added to our set were brought
together, and the wildest orgies of the most insatiable lust were
carried on.

My description of my aunt, of Mrs. Dale, and especially of Miss
Frankland, now Mrs. Nixon, excited all the tribadic passions for which
the dear Benson was so famous.

Her clitoris, which was formerly prominent, was more so now, and she
dearly loved to gamahuche her own sex. In that way she took a great
fancy to my sisters, especially Eliza, who had all the same instincts
very decidedly pronounced. So we had the prospect of the most
consummate orgies in 'near view, and most gloriously in the end we
realised our wildest expectations.

In men we were more restricted; the Count would only consent to have
Harry Dale and my uncle in any orgy of which he formed part. He was
nervously timid about his sodomistic tendencies being known to many,
and only yielded on account of the relationship and the closer ties of
Harry Dale and myself, who eventually shared my chambers, and we lived
together, so that perforce he was obliged to put up with his presence.

He soon came to delight in having Harry's prick in his bottom when
fucking others at our orgies. It will thus be seen that the Count's
timid exclusiveness shut out from these family orgies my dear and
esteemed friend and master MacCallum More. However, in a certain sense,
it was an advantage, as we had at least the pick of the young ones, in
my two sisters and Ellen, who wanted very little persuasion to join our
Lyon's Inn orgies. And our excellent friend had some of his own set,
both male and female, to meet us either with one, two or all, for we
could not always manage to have the whole of the dear creatures
together. En revanche, dear MacCallum had several youthful ganymedes,
whose tight young bottom-holes were a great solace when cunts were
altogether absent.

We thus had two distinct and separate sets of orgies, which had all the
natural effect of novelty, and by exciting comparison, making us turn
from one to the other with renewed passions and power of enjoyment.

As my sisters could only come on Sundays, that was our exclusive day,
and we made an entire day of it, but I, in the end, persuaded Ann to
join our orgies with MacCallum, and she proved a first-rate addition in
every way.

I have already stated that she was of a most libidinous temperament,
and developed into one of the most lascivious and lustful of women one
could possibly find, and as she had rare beauties and splendour of
form, she was made to raise the most raging lust in man or woman, for
she, too, was as fond of tribadic indulgencies as my aunt or the
delicious Frankland. Her position as a servant prevented our
introducing her to Ellen or my sisters. As a matter of worldly prudency
it was best not to trust her with the knowledge of their complying with
all our lustful demands on their charming persons.

The Count, myself, and our two charming lovers met on the appointed day
to renew our delicious orgies. After both of us had fucked each dear
creature came the _double jouissance_.

We took the adorable Benson first, that the scene of our erotic sports
might stir the lust of the darling Egerton to a greater heat. It was my
turn to lay my offering on the secret altar of Priapus, while the Count
filled her cunt with delight.

As I have before said, the arsehole of the Benson was much more used
that that of the Egerton, whose husband never dreamt of such a horror,
as she would call it. Mr. Benson, on the contrary, delighted in it, and
seldom passed a night without paying his devoirs to that delicious
aperture. So, although it was but the second time she had indulged in
the _double jouissance_, yet her lust enabled her to take in with
greater ease my big prick in her arsehole, with the Count's fine prick
in front, than when our parts were reversed. She revelled in the wild
fury of raging lust, created by the glorious ecstasy of having a prick
in each aperture--screamed with wild cries of heavenly joy, spent
furiously, and eventually died away in an overpowering and
indescribable felicity. She soon recovered her senses, and begged for
another bout before withdrawing. Of course there was immediate
compliance and another more soul-killing encounter was run off with the
usual death-like termination.

I had continuously gamahuched the Egerton who straddled over the two
bodies below her, and brought her delicious cunt to my mouth, while my
arms encircled her beautifully formed and cream-like coloured buttocks,
at the same time acting postillion with two fingers to increase her
lustful gratification.

We purified ourselves after this, and drank some Champagne, then
standing stiff at the prospect of now possessing the lovely body of the
Egerton, we took up the same position as before, the Count under, in
cunt, the Egerton above, with her deliciously fair arse exposed to my
embraces first, and my big prick afterwards.

The adored Benson gave it a suck first, and well wetting the knob,
guided it to the narrow entrance of love's secret bower. Its head was
soon housed, and although still creating strange feelings, the previous
day's attack had made the entrance more facile.

With little halting we drove on to the first delicious discharge. The
second bout was all divine pleasure, and ever after the delicious
Egerton enjoyed it completely.

These delicious orgies with these two lovely women were indulged in on
every third day.

I became a favourite with both their husbands, thanks to a kind of
sheepish innocence that I had the power of putting on.

At the same time as my education had been well attended to and as I
myself was fond of study, attentive to my college instruction, and
anxious for a knowledge of foreign languages, I had become fairly
proficient in German and Spanish, and well read in French and Italian.
The latter was perfected by the Count's friendship, as we were much
together and spoke nothing else. Perhaps it was this which led to a
greater friendship for me on the part of Mr. Egerton, who was an
excellent Italian scholar. His wife's intrigue with the Count had also
perfected her, so that when we all four dined together Italian was the
only language spoken among us.

The dear Benson, too, was a perfect mistress of the Count's tongue, as
well she might, having it so often in her mouth; and as it is a soft
language that lends itself to love and lust, it became ours in all our
orgies.

The delicious Frankland, now Mrs. Nixon, returned to town with the
spring. By that time I was established in my chambers in the Inner
Temple, and had them simply furnished, but with every accessory for
love's combats in couples, or in the wildest orgies. The adorable
Benson inaugurated and dedicated them to the service of holy mother
Venus and her son Cupid, as well as the more lustful Eros.

The Egerton and the Count afterwards came to consecrate them to the
worship of Priapus, and we had a most delicious orgy on that sacred
celebration.

It was on this occasion that those two wild lustful creatures insisted
on seeing the Count and me in conjunction together. The Benson guided
me into the Count's bottom, while he was in the bottom of the Egerton,
and the Egerton conducted the Count into my bottom while I was
luxuriating in the delicious arsehole of my adored Benson. It satisfied
a longing desire on their parts to see man with man, and did not
displease either the Count or myself, who, in our secret hearts, had
each wished to possess the other.

The Count was a powerful and very hairy man, and had an especially very
full hairy arsehole, which to me was wildly exciting.

In that I differed from my dear friend MacCallum, who loved bare-arsed
youths with no hair there, telling me that coarse hairy arsed men
rather disgusted him, and although in his wide sodomitic experience he
had had such, it was with a certain repugnance that went against the
grain.

In that I differed from him entirely, the hairier and the coarser a
man's arsehole was the more it excited me. In that respect the Count
was exactly to my taste. He was very hairy all up the chink of his
arse, and had a very coarse skin and an almost black arsehole, so deep
a brown it was, the very sight of which always drove me mad with lust.

He as much loved me from another cause. His great letch was to frig a
fine prick while buggering the possessor, hence, as he had never met
with so fine a one as mine, he was insatiably fond of being into me and
frigging me at the same time.

We thus had two points of private attraction, that made us become the
closest of friends, but we did not let any of our dear female
participants know of the mutual joys of which they were not
participants.

The superb Frankland, now my guardian's wife, also came alone to my
chambers, and we had a renewal of all our wildest experiences. She told
me it was such a comfort to her, for although her husband, Mr. Nixon,
was very loving, and did all he could, still it was nothing but
exciting her to long for others, especially for my own huge prick, of
which she never knew but that she had been the first initiator of it
into love's delicious recess in either sacred grove.

So fresh and eager as she was for the fray you may easily imagine the
wild excess we indulged in, sucking, gamahuching, fucking, and
buggering. I cannot tell how often in every way her exciting and
glorious body carried me away to an excess beyond anything I could have
thought myself capable of.

When fairly exhausted, and we could uninterruptedly talk over all that
had occurred since I had left my mother's house, she heard in full
detail, for the first time, all my adventures.

I had given her, at the time of her marriage, a hint of how matters had
gone, yet without any details, which now she was voracious to hear. I
told her of my aunt's and uncle's apparent seduction of me, nor did I
hide our goings-on with young Dale, and my after-possession of Ellen
and his mother, who was the last to believe herself my seducer, for as
I told the delicious Frankland (I can never bear to call her Nixon), I
had followed her sage advice, and up to the Dale had played off the
innocent game with perfect success; but now that I was a man I threw
all that overboard.

"Indeed," said she, "and who have you been throwing it overboard with."

I laughed at her ready taking of me up, and then went on to a full
confession of all my intrigues.

She did not like my having taken up with the two servants, the nieces
of my late landlady, thinking it derogatory in one endowed with a prick
that any lady would be too glad to possess, but she was very much
struck with my description of the superb body and wonderful lubricity
of the Nichols.

It excited her much, especially when I told her that she had given me
the idea of her near approach in body and wantonness to herself.

It will be seen hereafter to what a closer alliance with the Nichols
this led. Pressing her enquiries, I acknowledged my intrigue with the
Benson, Egerton, and Count. This evidently excited her lust, as I could
see by the wild sparkle of her eye. It led to an immediate and
delicious fuck, and when recovered from its ecstatic finish, to closer
and more searching enquiry as to how I got into such intimacy, but I
had expected this somewhat jealous scrutiny, and was quite prepared for
it. I led her to believe they had been here nearly all the winter. I
told her my mother had desired me to call and see the Bensons as
friends of hers. I had done so. The Bensons quickly observed how
largely I was furnished, very soon gave me encouragement, of which I
did not want much after the late intercourse I had had with herself,
aunt, and Mrs. Dale.

Thus matters came quickly to their natural conclusion. She was
perfectly astonished at my powerful weapon, and as she and her dearest
friend already shared lovers, I was quickly introduced to her friend
Mrs. Egerton, and they had me together, and let me into the secret of
their intrigue with the Count, which was followed by my initiation into
their orgies.

My praises of these two ladies, and my saying how glorious it would be
for her to make a fifth, and my description of the exquisite body and
the tribadic tendencies of Mrs. Benson, fired her wild imagination, and
woke up all her tribadic lusts, and it ended in her begging me to give
a luncheon at my chambers to the Benson and the Egerton, that she might
be introduced to them, more especially as they really moved in a
society somewhat higher than Mr. Nixon's connections, although, in
point of wealth, the Nixons were far superior.

The little luncheon came off most agreeably. The ladies all took to
each other most warmly; seeing which, I boldly broke the ice, and
telling the Benson and Egerton that dear Mrs. Nixon was my first
initiator in love's mysteries, and as had both of them, the wisest
thing we could do would be to throw away all restraint and have a
jollification all round. To set them at their ease--for there was a
momentary hesitation--I pulled out my prick at full stand, and said--

"There's a prick worthy of all your exquisite cunts, and one, too, that
has enjoyed them all, and been enjoyed by every one of you. So throw
away all hesitation and let him enjoy you all again. Who is to have it
first?"

They laughed, and all approached and handled it, interchanging their
opinions upon its being the very finest one that any of them had ever
seen.

"Ah, now," said I, "that is just the thing, you are at once put at
ease, then let us do it with ease; strip is the word, and let us have
it luxuriously."

They laughed, kissed each other, and said the dear fellow must have his
way, and all at once proceeded to undress. The glorious and wonderfully
hairy body of the Frankland perfectly astonished them, and raised their
tribadic passions to fever heat, especially the Benson, who threw
herself on that glorious form in an ecstasy of delight, more especially
as the Frankland's passions being excited, her long red clitoris stood
out from the dense black mass of hair which covered not only her belly
and mount, but all down and around her cunt. Nothing would satisfy the
Benson but an immediate mutual gamahuche, for, with true tribadic
instinct, these two beautiful and libidinous women divined their mutual
letch for that particular lascivious inclination, and at once
proceeded, one on the top of the other, to wildly gamahuche each other.
The Egerton and myself seized the opportunity of having a delicious
fuck together, which we brought to a conclusion before the others had
satisfied their immediate desires.

The Frankland, who at first was under, was now above, and as she knelt
and pushed out her stupendous arse to bring her cunt over the Benson's
mouth, the sight of its hairy arsehole roused my desire to fuck it, and
my cock responded instantly, so kneeling behind her, I introduced it to
the well-known receptacle, and to her infinite additional delight,
sodomised her to perfection. This was another means of putting them all
at ease, and I fucked and buggered them all until neither handling nor
suction could get my prick to raise his head again.

You may easily imagine after this how delighted they were to make the
glorious Frankland a participator in our orgies with the Count. Nor
shall I forget the wild gaze of surprise and lust when the Count first
beheld the splendid and hairy form of the glorious Frankland when she
entered the room in all the dazzling splendour of her perfect
nakedness. These two natures were made for each other, both salacious
to a degree, both vigorous in body and untiring in the most libidinous
excesses of the wildest lust. Both hairy to a degree, showing the
meaning of that vast display all over both their bodies. They were
instantly attracted to each other, flew into the closest of embraces,
and sinking on the floor where they met, two strokes were racked off
before they came to a state of more moderation, amenable to our general
operations. It had been all the same an exciting scene to us.

The Benson was madly stimulated by the sight of the Frankland's superb
body; her long red clitoris, not satisfied with the double rack-off
with the Count, appeared only to be more excited, and stirred the whole
soul of the adorable Benson. She threw herself in reverse upon the
Frankland before she had time to raise herself, seized with her mouth
the wonderful clitoris, called upon me to fuck her from behind, and
then with fingers up arsehole and cunt worked furiously. The dear
Frankland responded on the fine clitoris of the Benson, and
postillioned me at the same time. We ran off two bouts in this
delicious position, and then with more regulated passions rose to form
more general combinations.

The Count had fucked the Egerton while we were engaged above the divine
Frankland. Our first pose was suggested by the Egerton, who had been as
yet less fucked than any. She had been also greatly taken with the
glories of the Frankland's superb body, and especially struck with her
extraordinary clitoris, and had taken the curious letch of wishing to
have it in her bottom-hole while riding St. George on my big prick. We
all laughed at her odd choice, but agreed at once, especially the
Frankland, whose greatest letch was to fuck very fair young women with
her long and capable clitoris. A fairer creature than the lovely
Egerton could not be found. The Frankland admitted that in her inmost
heart she had longed thus to have the Egerton from the moment she had
first seen her, and her delight and surprise at finding the dear
Egerton had equally desired to possess her, fired her fierce lust with
increased desire. I lay down, the Egerton straddled over, and feeling
the delight of my huge prick when completely imbedded, she spent
profusely with only two rebounds. Then sinking on my belly she
presented her lovely arse to the lascivious embraces of the salacious
Frankland, whose first act was to stoop, embrace, kiss, and tongue the
beautiful little pinky aperture, wetting it with her saliva, she
brought her fine long clitoris, stiff as a prick, and plunged within.
The letch that both had taken for the same indulgence lent enchantment
to the act, and their wild imaginations created an excess of joy that
the smaller size of the Frankland's clitoris, in comparison with the
dimensions of our longer pricks, might not have led one to suppose
possible.

Twice we indulged in this excess, the women going off half a dozen
times to my once.

I had aided the Frankland by using a double dildo, which at once filled
both apertures. This excellent instrument was an invention of the
Frankland, which she had suggested to a Parisian dildo maker, and had
had it made in two or three sizes. It became very useful in our orgies,
as from disparity of numbers an odd couple were left out, when the
_double jouissance_ was in operation, and then the two outsiders, with
tongues and dildoes, could gamahuche with great satisfaction.

During our tribadic junction, with the Egerton fucked by the Frankland
in the arse, the Count had first fucked and then sodomised the Benson
to their mutual satisfaction. We all rose, purified, and refreshed with
wine and biscuits, while discussing what our next move should be. The
Count had not yet had the Frankland _in culo_, and suggested, as it was
her introductory meeting, that the greater honours should be conferred
on her on this happy occasion, so I was to fuck her while he enjoyed
her in the rear quarters. The Egerton and the Benson should use double
dildoes to each other, or in any other way amuse themselves.

This was a most exquisite encounter, and with such unutterable
enjoyment that we hardly paused between the first and second, and it
was not until we had deluged thrice both interiors that we withdrew.
The delighted Frankland had never ceased spending, but so vigorous a
nature could easily have taken twice as much; but the other dear
creatures had now to be conciliated.

The Count next took the Benson in cunt while I blocked the rear
aperture, and the Frankland once more enculed the Egerton, who dildoed
herself in cunt at the same time; all of us running two courses. We
then rose, purified, and refreshed. When our pricks were ready it was
the Egerton who took me in front and the Count behind, and the Benson,
who had grown lewd on the Frankland's clitoris, was sodomised by her
and dildoed by herself. The Egerton still suffered a little in the
double stretching, so that we ran but one exquisite bout, enabling us,
whose powers began to fail to be re-excited, to finish with the _double
jouissance_ in the glorious body of the Frankland.

We carried this on until the midsummer holidays, when at their desire I
introduced the Benson, Egerton, Frankland, and the Count to my uncle,
aunt, Mrs. Dale, Ellen, and Harry, and we had some glorious orgies in
my chambers.

The splendour of my aunt's arse captivated the Frankland and the Count.
The latter soon got into young Dale's arse, which he did one day when
arriving for the very purpose half an hour before the appointed time of
all meeting. I was present, and was so excited at the sight that I
seized upon the Count's arse and delightedly astonished him by giving
the double enjoyment.

It was after this, as Harry remained to live with me, that he was
introduced to our general orgies, and thus we occupied all the dear
creatures at once, and most voluptuous and lascivious meetings we all
enjoyed, the Count occasionally giving us a private visit.

Meanwhile Ellen had been put to the same finishing school where my
sisters already were, with permission to go out with them on the
Sundays, when we always had a delicious orgy at our dear friend
MacCallum's. He, like the Count, had taken a peculiar fancy for the
tight young arsehole of Harry Dale, without altogether deserting the
women, especially my sister Eliza, whose delight in rear sports was
supreme, and she never would be fucked but when she had a prick in each
aperture, preferring mine in her cunt with either Dale or MacCallum
operating in the rear.

Knowing the hours when I could not be interrupted by any of my lady
friends, I did not neglect the superb Nichols, but had her and Ann to
come together for an hour and a half, from half-past nine to eleven
a.m., and most delicious fucking I had with both. I had equally
initiated them into the mysteries of rear delights, and both took it
with great gusto. Upon finding this I gradually descanted on the
exquisite delights of the _double jouissance_ with two male pricks,
filling with ecstasies indescribable the two apertures at once.

When once I had excited their desires on this point, I mentioned my
dear friend MacCallum More, as one in whom we could all confide, and
with some little hesitation obtained their consent to introduce him. I
had already mentioned the matter to him; told him he might think the
Nichols too old, but she was gloriously superb in body, and so
extraordinarily well preserved that her body was twenty years younger
than her face and her lust and fucking powers were far superior to a
woman of twenty-five. Besides, I hinted that he might persuade Ann, and
perhaps her sister Jane, to join our Lyon's Inn revels.

We met by appointment on a given morning. I advised MacCallum to come
sooner, and when the women came, under the pretence of his not being
able to join us that morning, I would get them stript, and when all was
ready he should appear in buff, and so break any _mauvaise honte_ they
might have at first undressing before him.

He was wonderfully struck with the superb body of the Nichols, and, as
the stranger, we gave him his choice. He clasped her in his nervous
arms, devoured her with kisses, and incontinently laying her down on
the mattressed floor, proceeded to fuck her in the good old English
fashion, with legs and arms around her body. Ann and I gazed for a
little on the splendid action of her aunt's arse, and the evident way
in which she milked the teat as it withdrew each time he heaved his
arse to re-enter with exciting vigour. We could hold no longer and each
ran a course of ecstatic delight ending in all the frenzy of lust to
die inanimate the next instant.

Our charming partners had spent repeatedly during our encounter. They
wanted an immediate renewal, but MacCallum suggested a change of
partners and of position, that is to say, fucking them on their knees
with their splendidly developed buttocks turned up but taking them in
the cunt.

This change was rapidly effected. We placed ourselves in such a
position that each could see all the action of the other. It was a
splendid fuck, and as our edge was taken off we drew it out a
considerable length, giving the dear recipients the opportunity of
spending four or five times to our once.

After recovering from the soaking after-joys of this delicious
encounter, we had some champagne and some smutty talk, as well as
outspoken praise of their splendid power of fuck; feeling their cunts
and they our pricks, till renovated and renewed, we arranged for
further action. As it was their introductory lesson in the double
enjoyment, the splendid Nichols had, of course, first choice. She chose
me for cunt, and to his intense delight, our dear friend for the rear
attack. Ann was to straddle over her aunt and me, and be gamahuched
both in cunt and arsehole by our friend. We had no difficulty in
hilting ourselves to the cods in both apertures, but so excited was the
Nichols that with the mere throbbings of our pricks on completely
housing ourselves, she spent, squealing like a rabbit. We gave her time
to fully enjoy it, and then commenced a slow, regulated movement, which
quickly drove the Nichols into a state of furiously raving lust, and
again she spent in an almost killing agony of delight, screaming with
excess of ecstasy. Again we paused to allow of the utmost enjoyment,
but renewed when her delicious cunt and arse pressures announced a
return of craving appetite. These pauses enabled us to bring on seven
overpouring discharges on her part, until she was quite exhausted,
especially when we both came together in an excess of joy that ended in
perfect inanition, on recovering from which we relieved the Nichols of
the double cargo within her.

She had already almost strangled me with her embraces in the
unutterable joys I had procured her. Rolling off on her side she drew
MacCallum also to her, to embrace him for the intense gratification he
had afforded her. We again refreshed the inward man after a
purification and laving with cold water, as a restorative. Then Ann
took up her position in her turn, for she, too, wished to try the novel
experiment with the smaller prick in her arsehole.

The Nichols felt exhausted for the moment, so lay on the sofa and
enjoyed the sight of our three persons in all the delirium of raging
lust and sodomy. The experiment enchanted Ann as it had overpoweringly
enchanted her aunt. She, too, spent seven or eight times before joining
us in our soul-killing discharge. The Nichols had laid still for about
two thirds of the time this bout continued, she then rose to straddle
across Ann and me, and was about to present her magnificently large
cunt to be gamahuched by MacCallum, but he begged her to turn her
bottom to him and heave it well up, while resting her hands on Ann's
shoulders. He then could first contemplate and handle her huge superb
buttocks, then transferring his hands to her clitoris and cunt, he
licked and tongued the grand aperture of her arse--rough, brown, and
corrugated, just my taste.

We had a most glorious bout, ending in all the ecstatic joys of
spending and after-delights. Ann was as greatly gratified with the
_double jouissance_ as her aunt had been before. We again laved and
refreshed, and closed this most delicious orgy with MacCallum first in
the Nichols' cunt, with my big and doted-on prick in her arse, which,
now she was used to it, pleased her more than ever.

In the same order we double-fucked Ann, although she expressed her
greater gratification of MacCallum in her arse and my splitter in her
cunt. Again we gamahuched them both, as time would not allow of our
resurrection, then they left us.

My guardian, at his marriage, had bought a house in Portland Place, but
the lease of its then tenant only expired on the 20th March this
spring, and before being occupied it had to be entirely new painted and
decorated, so that July was nearly at an end before they could
comfortably take up their residence in it. Meanwhile they had
apartments at a hotel near Hyde Park corner.

When once they were completely housed, which was not the case until the
middle of August, my guardian desired his wife to send the carriage for
the girls every Sunday morning. Hearing that Ellen was their intimate
friend, she became included in the invitation. This put an end to our
Sunday orgies in our friend MacCallum's chambers, much to our mutual
regret.

As far as Harry and I were concerned the ever thoughtful and delicious
Frankland came to our aid. Pretending that the girls must need walking
exercise, she always after luncheon proposed they should walk down to
their brother's chambers in the Temple, take him and Harry as their
further companions up to Kensington Gardens or the "Zoo," and bring all
back to dinner.

As my guardian always took a siesta on Sundays after luncheon, for
being too old to fuck his wife every night, Saturday night, or rather
Sunday morning, when he had nothing in the way of business to trouble
him, was dedicated to two or three hours of extra dalliance with his
adored wife. She told me he was very amorous upon her, could not do
much fucking, indeed, she thought his efforts that way were even more
than he ought to do at his age, but he was never tired of gamahuching
her and posing her in every attitude when stark naked; of course she
lent herself to every wish of the old man, and had, even after great
persuasion, which only her love and attachment to him could have even
made her consent, allowed him the honours of her beautiful arse-hole.
This requiring, as he said, an extra firmness of prick, she further did
him the extra favour of toying and sucking his prick up to the utmost
stiffness. So she had made him absolutely adore her, and she could turn
him round her little finger. Her word and will was law, so she could do
as she liked.

She told me on several occasions that she thought he was exerting his
erotic powers to too great an extent, and that she did all she could to
moderate his excitement, but all to no purpose; he was infatuated with
the glorious charms of her body, or what is called cunt-struck, perhaps
the strongest passion that can seize on man and dangerous for a man of
advanced years. Well, his Sunday afternoon's siesta was long, and left
the Frankland at liberty to come to my rooms with my sisters, where
strip was the word, and fucking in every variety followed.

I soon found we must have other help; the pace I was going at was
beginning to tell, so with the consent of the darling Frankland I made
a confidant of the Count, and asked him to join our Sunday's orgy. You
may imagine with what joy he accepted, for apart from his delight in
seeing me in incestuous connection with my sisters, their young charms,
especially Eliza's, had great attraction for him, and then the
Frankland, so similar in lust and temperament. We had thus most
delicious orgies every Sunday afternoon, until the end of October of
the following year, when my sisters had finished their schooling, and
I, too, had left college, entered at the Middle Temple, and had been
for three months in a conveyancer's office, reading up previous to
being called to the bar.

It was then that Mr. Nixon's health gave symptoms of serious
disturbance, and his doctor recommended him to pass the winter in a
warmer climate. His wife suggested the advantage travelling would be
both to the girls and myself; she had only to express the wish to have
us all together, and we were warmly invited to join them.

We passed through Switzerland, Milan, and Florence to Rome, where we
took up our residence for four months.

The Egertons and Bensons happily spent the same winter at Rome.

My rooms were in an adjoining palace to where Mr. and Mrs. Nixon and my
sisters resided, there not being accommodation for me. I thus had a
charming entresol of five rooms all to myself; one of which looked on
and over the Tiber, and was in no way overlooked. To this room we
constantly resorted for orgies.

The Egertons had passed some winters in Rome, and she had two or three
clerical lovers, and these had introduced two others to the Benson on
her former visits, and all had been accustomed to general orgies. You
may imagine the delight of these priestly debauchees when they found
themselves introduced to our circle of three fresh cunts, and such
splendid ones, and all without any mock-modest prejudices but up to
every excess of lubricity. So to five women we thus had six men, and
eventually a very handsome young priest, debauched by the others,
joined our party, and we carried on the wildest and most extravagant
orgies of every excess the most raging lust could devise. We made
chains of pricks in arseholes, the women between with dildoes strapped
round their waist, and shoved into the arsehole of the man before them,
while his prick was into the arsehole of the woman in his front.

These holy fathers had immense resources in the way of infinite
variety, stimulating to excesses of debauchery that very soon brought
the rod into requisition.

We all from time to time enjoyed the double coition, the women
invariably so at every meeting.

These holy fathers had all very fine pricks, but none so large as mine,
and many of them loved to have my prick in their arses when opportunity
offered. In such delights the winter passed rapidly away.

In the spring Mr. Nixon's health seemed very precarious, and we moved
to Naples, where from necessity our extreme indulgence in venereal
excesses was much curtailed.

In May we returned to England, but poor Mr. Nixon was evidently fucked
out. The Frankland told me that the more his health failed the more
lewd he seemed to grow. His passion for gamahuching her cunt had
increased, and even his prick seemed to gather new life as life ebbed
away, for hardly a night passed without his fucking her, at night in
the cunt, and at morning, in full daylight, kneeling and feeling her
splendid arse, he took her in the rear aperture. He and she too felt it
was killing him, but his infatuation was overpowering, and he declared
if it did kill him he could not die a happier death. In fact a month
after we returned he had an apoplectic fit actually when his prick was
spending in her arsehole. He lived but a month afterwards. He left all
his property to his wife absolutely, with legacies of £2,500 to each of
my sisters, and £1,000 to me.

This sad event cast a gloom for some time over all our pleasures.

The Frankland took my sisters to reside with her, but all went down to
spend the first three months of mourning quietly with my mother. She,
too, took ill when we were with her, and died before the three months
were up. This drew me down to home, now mine, and the dear Frankland
continued to stay with us for two months longer, and then left for
London. We three orphans remained for all that winter in our old home,
settling a variety of things.

My sisters now with their succession to some £600 apiece, the £1,000
left them by our uncle, and the £2,500 by Mr. Nixon, and the £400 which
I promised them as a marriage present, and with their great beauty of
form and face, for both had grown into remarkably fine young women,
became very eligible matches.

Many country families sought us out after the first three months of our
mourning, and several offers were made to the girls. They were both
somewhat fastidious after the life they had led, but eventually both
were married. Mary to a very nice fellow, who proved, as she told me, a
first-rate fucker. He got her with child, and they had a son, a fine
boy, in the tenth month of their marriage. She was very happy, now and
then coming to see me, and getting a jolly good fuck from my renovated
prick, for now that he was lying fallow, my somewhat exhausted system
was getting quite recruited.

Alas! poor Mary lost her husband by cholera in the second year of their
marriage. He had a handsome estate, and left her well off, and sole
guardian to his son, who grew up a very fine fellow, and when at
puberty became the solace of his widowed mother, who had initiated him
into all love's mysteries.

Eliza was not quite so fortunate as her sister in her husband; he was a
good sort of man who, one would have thought, would just have suited
the hot temperament of Eliza, well and powerfully built, and with an
air of being a man of erotic passions; but he turned out to be of a
languid unimpassioned nature, who could not imagine any other manner
than simply mounting on a woman's belly and fucking her once a night,
and with no conception of using either preliminaries or aids to her
passions. So that he left poor Eliza only in a state of excitement
instead of giving any satisfaction to her lascivious nature. She did,
eventually, work him up to good night and good morning, but for her
full satisfaction she used too seek elsewhere, and even to content
herself with the embraces of a man servant, who, if not good looking,
proved to have a splendid and powerful prick, and nearly daily gave her
comfort. She also occasionally came to me, when she had both apertures
well exercised, and left me much comforted.

She never had any children, and so managed her intrigues as never to be
found out.

I returned to London in the spring, and was called to the bar.

I went the western circuit for odd assizes, and then abandoned the bar
as a profession.

Harry Dale, with more perseverance, as well as greater necessity for
exertion, continued in the profession, was duly called to the bar, and
eventually became a rising and successful barrister, and at this period
of our old age is now a distinguished judge.

But to return to our earlier days.

Harry and I carried on our intrigue with the Nichols and Ann, aided by
our dear friend MacCallum. Also from time to time with the Benson,
Egerton, and Count, to which generally the darling Frankland brought
her exquisite charms to intoxicate us with pleasure.

This delightful reunion was sadly affected by the loss of the Count,
who received an amnesty--I think I before have said he was a political
exile--returned to his own country, and we never again had his
delightful aid in our sadly shortened orgies.

The Count and I met in a future year at his old castle on the hills of
Pied, of which I shall have much more to say on a later occasion.

It was a sad loss, especially for the Egerton, who dearly loved the
Count. He had been her first lover, indeed, her initiator in the real
mysteries of Venus. It will be remembered that her husband was one of
those old insensible natures that think it is only necessary to hastily
"piss their tallow," as Falstaff says, as quickly as they can, and
leave a poor woman just sufficiently excited to be madly anxious for a
thorough good fucking. It is these insensate cold-blooded husbands who
raise, without satisfying, their wife's erotic passions, and drive them
perforce to seek salacious comfort in other arms.

Oh! how many women if only fucked with some regard to their own
naturally lewd feeling, would have never committed adultery or made a
scandal. Many are the women who have told me, with tears in their eyes,
of the cold insensible conduct of their husbands, who, never fucking
them but when their sluggish natures felt the want, then turning upon
them without the slightest preparatory handling or embracing, mount,
shove it in, give a few in-and-out movements, spend, and then withdraw,
just as they have done enough to excite their poor wives' passions
without satisfying them, and thus leaving them a prey to inordinate
longing that forces them to seek the relief to their passions the
selfish brutes of husbands had only raised without allaying.

I remember an intrigue I had with an Italian Countess. Her husband, a
tall and very capable man, was an extreme bigot, who thought it deadly
sin to indulge in any caresses or carnal excitement, or even for his
wife to expose any naked flesh to raise concupiscent ideas, so she had
to have her nightgown closed up to her throat, with long sleeves and
skirts, in the centre a slit through which he performed his duty when
in want of relief to himself. He never kissed or embraced her body at
any time, but lay like a log by her side, with his back turned to her.
When his own passions prompted him to fuck, which was very seldom, he
was naturally quite ready and rapidly finished his coup. He used to
turn to her, waken her up with a shake, cry out, "Marietta, porgemi il
vaso generative" (Marietta, reach me the generative vase), upon which
she stretched herself on her back, he got on her without lifting her
petticoats or feeling her cunt, but opening the slit, pointed his prick
to her cunt, thrust it up to the hilt, and being himself in want of
spermatic relief, in a very few strokes spent, just staying in long
enough to "piss all his tallow," and then withdraw, turning his back
again to sleep, leaving his wife just sufficiently excited to have
enjoyed it, and thus left her madly longing for the satisfaction he did
not afford. She said he was quite capable, too, of giving satisfaction
if his bigotry had allowed him. We used to fuck at a tremendous rate,
and I always commenced with a "Marietta, Marietta, porgemi il vaso
generative," and then proceeded to fuck and laugh like mad.

Of course, irritated as her hot passions were by her booby of a
husband, she resorted, not only to me, but to whomsoever she could get
to satisfy the cravings of her irritated cunt.

The Bensons and Egertons again left in the autumn for Rome.

The Frankland, not yet out of her year's widowhood, did not go much
into society, and we saw much more of her than before. She came at
least three times a week to my chambers, when Harry and I gave her the
comfort she so much required; first each fucking her singly twice over,
and then three double-pleasure fucks, with change about in the
apertures: finishing off with a mouth fuck from one or the other, and a
double gamahuche.

About once a week the amorous and delicious-fucking Nichols with Ann
would come of a morning, when we managed to send both away satisfied
for the day.

When winter drove our friend MacCallum home from his fishing, we
renewed some excellent orgies at his chambers, where Ann, and
afterwards Jane, occasionally came. By the way, Jane's arse had
developed in an extraordinary manner, and became one of the most
exciting delights of our orgies at MacCallum's. He also now joined in
our morning encounters with the Nichols and her niece.

At Christmas time the Frankland, Harry, and I all went down by
invitation to the Rectory, where uncle welcomed with great delight the
glorious and exciting Frankland. Mrs. Dale and Ellen joined our party.
Dear aunt positively devoured me with her caresses, and before I was
shown up to my room, had drawn me into her little room downstairs, had
a suck at my prick, leant her body on the table, stuck out her immense
arse, and had me into her cunt for a rapid rack-off; but this only
excited me to an immediate renewal, for the touch and sight of her
splendid buttocks instantly produced a stiffness, she herself in the
middle of my movements in front, drawing my prick out of her cunt and
guiding it into the inviting entrance to the secret altar of Juno and
of Venus Callipyge. Both courses were run off at a gallop, and were a
momentary allaying of the insatiable salacity of my most lewd and
lascivious aunt. She then next conducted the Frankland, I can never
call her Nixon, into her bedroom, under pretence of showing her to it.
She no sooner had her there than up went her petticoats, and aunt glued
her lips to the wonderful clitoris of the divine Frankland, and using
fingers up both apertures, made the Frankland quickly give down her
first offering to the obscene god.

As soon as aunt's tribadic rage to possess the Frankland was thus
abated for the moment, she allowed Mrs. Nixon to remove bonnet and
shawl, but then as quickly demanded and obtained a double gamahuche.
The Frankland the more readily consenting as she knew aunt had taken
the keen edge off my lecherous appetite, and she would revel in the
thick raging sperm I had shot into both orifices. These preliminaries
settled, we were able to be much more tranquil all the afternoon.

The Dale and Ellen came to dinner; I slipt into their room when all
were dressing for dinner, and had a delicious rack-off in both their
lecherous and longing cunts. Uncle had equally enjoyed the tight
favourite arsehole of Harry Dale, he having conducted him to the
well-known summer house for that purpose as soon as we arrived.

We could all thus peaceably enjoy the good things set before us, and
during our wine after dinner exchange accounts of all events that had
passed since last we met, and they were varied, for Mr. Nixon's death
and legacies to my sisters and myself were subjects of congratulation,
while the death of my mother was, on the contrary, one of condolence
and sympathy.

By ten o'clock we all broke up, but with the whispered request to all
to repair to aunt's bedroom half an hour after the household had
retired. We were all too interested in the delicious orgy there to take
place to fail. Blazing fires in both that and the adjoining room had
been kept up all the afternoon; plenty of lights were burning so as to
illuminate all sides at once. We all met in mere night wrappers, and as
soon as we were assembled and the word given "off," they were thrown
aside, and we all stood in nature's lovely nakedness. Aunt, in her
eager and lascivious inspirations, flung herself on my naked body, drew
me to the bed, and had me into her longing and delicious cunt at once,
and with legs and arms thrown round me, was instantly pressing
furiously forward, notwithstanding the remonstrance of my uncle, who
wished to arrange a general plan of operations so as to include all at
once. Aunt's voluptuous eagerness produced a rapid discharge on her
part. Seeing this, while she was in the momentary ecstasy of spending,
he was enabled to drag me from her arms, fortunately before I had
weakened my powers by spending for a fourth time that day. Aunt, too,
was now in a condition to listen to reason, and bring her ideas of our
after-combinations into play.

As we had brought the Count with us for a week's stay, we were just
four cocks to four hens; so we could couple in the first instance on an
exact equality, it being necessary by previous good fucking to bring
the women's passions up to a boiling heat of lust to make them enter
into our greater excesses with all the wild energy of the most
salacious lubricity. Aunt had taken a great fancy to the Count when up
at midsummer.

Uncle was most lecherous on the glorious Frankland. I took most readily
to the luscious and lascivious Dale, who was equally eager to repossess
the prick which she firmly believed she had initiated into all the joys
of cunt, and a most delicious fuck we had, she spending furiously and
frequently to my once.

Harry was equally pleased to pair off with his loved cousin, whose
maidenhead he had undoubtedly taken.

The women would gladly have had each fucker run a second course without
drawing. But both aunt and uncle opposed this, as both more exhausting
and less variety. So aunt chose me, uncle took the exciting young cunt
of Ellen, Harry turned on to his mother's cunt, from whence he had
originally come into the world, and the Count got the glorious
Frankland, of whom he was never tired. This course was more prolonged
by the men than the first, with the object of somewhat allaying the
insatiable lust of the women by making them spend infinitely oftener
than their fuckers.

We so managed matters that we all came together or nearly so, and the
women followed suit at the last final crisis, which was ushered in with
wild cries of lust, and then a sudden overpowering silence fell on all
as they lay panting in all the after-joys that follow the ecstatic
discharge of life's essence.

We rose for a general embrace of our naked bodies, then a romp, and a
mutual slapping of arses and seizing of pricks and cunts, a very
exciting game, which soon brought evidences of renewed vigour in all
except poor uncle, who required a longer pause and an extra excitement
before he could indulge in a third encounter.

The Count took the delicious arsehole of the Frankland, who begged for
me as her fucker. Aunt got Mrs. Dale under for a double gamahuche,
while Harry crammed his prick up aunt's arse. Uncle enjoyed a delicious
gamahuche with Ellen, who sucked his limp prick all the time without
any success.

This was a delicious bout for us all, and ended in heavenly raptures.

Our second double couplings were: myself in my aunt's cunt, which
incest stimulated uncle to a stand, and he took to his wife's arse
while her nephew incestuously fucked her cunt. The Count took to the
delicious and most exciting tight cunt of the Dale, while her son
shoved his prick into his mother's arse, to her unspeakable
satisfaction. Ellen and the Frankland amused themselves with tribadic
extravagances.

This bout was long drawn out, and afforded inexpressible ecstasies to
all concerned. And after the wild cries and most bawdy oaths that
instantly preceded the final ecstasy, the dead silence and long
after-enjoyments were drawn out to a greater length than before. After
which we all rose and purified, and then took refreshment of wine and
cake, while discussing our next arrangement of couples.

Uncle had, fortunately for him, managed not to spend in the last bout;
he, therefore, was still capable of entering an arsehole, and he chose
the delicious arse of the Frankland to receive this final offering, for
after that he was done for that night. I was below engulphed in the
exquisite cunt of the Frankland. The Count fucked Ellen while Harry was
into her behind. Aunt and Mrs. Dale mutually gamahuched and dildoed
each other. This, too, was a long-drawn-out affair and ended in
perfectly convulsive ecstasies and cries of the wildest sensuality that
our most salacious passions could prompt.

I then took my aunt's arse while the lecherous Dale was underneath
gamahuching and dildoing her, and by putting the Dale close to the edge
of the bed, the Count stood between her legs, which were thrown over
his shoulders, and thus he fucked her, having taken a letch to fuck her
cunt, which was an exquisite one for fucking: her power of nip being
nearly equal to the Frankland, and only beaten by aunt's extraordinary
power in that way. We thus formed a group of four enchained in love's
wildest sports together.

The Frankland was gamahuched by uncle while having Harry's prick in her
arse, Ellen acting postillion to Harry's arse while frigging herself
with a dildo.

The closing bout of the night was the Count into aunt's arse, my prick
into the Frankland's arse, Harry enjoying an old-fashioned fuck with
his mother, and Ellen under aunt to dildo and be gamahuched and dildoed
by aunt. We drew this bout out to an interminable length, and lay for
nearly half an hour in the annihilation of the delicious after-joys. At
last we rose, purified, and then restoring our exhausted frames with
Champagne, embraced and sought well-earned sleep in our separate
chambers.

I slept the sleep of the just, and awoke late to find aunt sucking my
stiff-standing prick at the very instant it was filling her mouth with
a deluge of creamy spunk. She sucked up to the get all out, and in
doing so brought him up to the scratch again, so jumping out of my low
bed I made her kneel on it, stick out her enormous arse, and licked her
reeking cunt until I could stand it no longer. Then bringing my huge
prick I plunged in a single vigorous thrust up to the very top of her
cunt, and made her squeal and spend with that alone. Pausing to let her
enjoy it, I recommenced and ran a delicious course in that most
exquisite cunt, and would have done so a second time, after a pause of
ecstasy, if Harry Dale had not rushed into the room to say that all
were impatiently awaiting me to sit down to breakfast. Aunt just stayed
to give a final suck to my prick, and then vanished.

I hastened to wash and dress, having sent Harry off to beg they would
not wait for me.

On joining them the sly jokes they cut at my apparent laziness proved
that they knew of the cause of detention. I looked at dear aunt, and at
once saw by the air of gratification on her dear plump face, that she
herself had been boasting of her exploit, for it was all her own doing.

Being Sunday, we all went decorously to church. The doctor gave us a
very unctuous sermon on the goodness of virtue and chastity. It was a
really fine sermon, and delivered with an unction that forbade the
possibility of supposing that the preacher could be in reality the very
reverse of his doctrine. It much pleased some of the country families,
and one or two with their wives waited for the doctor leaving the
church, to compliment him on his eloquence and admirable teaching. The
flattered doctor ended by inviting two rather distant residents to
luncheon at the Rectory, so that we formed a numerous party, all on our
best behaviour. It was quite edifying to hear the pious and virtuous
remarks of the admirable Frankland, and the no less virtuous and
correct Dale. It gained them the entree into the exclusive set of both
these high country families, and eventually led to an excellent
marriage for the dear little Ellen. So much for the success of
dissimulation. Vice playing the part of virtue, and succeeding to
perfection. So goes the world. One thing is certain, that on this
occasion it enforced chastity, in one sense at least, that we had no
opportunity of practising vice that afternoon. The charming
Frankland-Nixon made a great impression on the wives as well as
husbands, to be sure it was well known that she was a very wealthy
widow, and they may have had some design of securing her for a son,
nephew, or at least having the chance at it. She thanked them with that
grace and charming ease of manner which so distinguished her and made
her so captivating, excusing herself from visiting, during the first
year of her widowhood, anywhere but among family friends, and as her
late husband was Charles Roberts's and his sisters' guardian, she
considered his family as almost her own. They hoped to have the
pleasure of seeing her some future day.

The whole visit passed off very pleasantly, and left us only an hour
for a stroll in the garden and time to dress for dinner. It will be
recollected that the doctor was a great exacter of full evening dress
at dinner, as tending to keep up proper appearances.

We met at the accustomed hour at night in aunt's room, in the full
dress of Adam and Eve before they munched the apple.

This night was dedicated chiefly to sacrifices to Venus Apostrophia,
for the doctor commenced by having the Count while he was fucking his
wife, and when able to get his fine old cock in for another go, would
only again have it in my arse, while I was doing the same to aunt's
glorious immensity with the Count below fucking her.

That was the end of poor uncle's powers for that night, but he
gamahuched all the women at the finish of their encounters with us
three men. We gave them all the _double jouissance_, while those
unoccupied carried on their own little game with tongue or dildo.

It was again a night of most exquisite enjoyment.

The following and remaining nights of our visit brought into
requisition the rod before uncle could get his dear old prick to stand,
and myself tailed off on the next Sunday night, the last of our visit,
so that uncle seeing what he called the laziness of my prick, seized
the rod, and gave me as sound a flogging as ever he had done in my
schoolboy days. The fact was that he had been longing to renew on my
arse his letch for giving a really severe whipping. He had already by
dint of the same punishment fucked the arses of the Count and the
divine Frankland, and was now so excited anew that his prick stood as
stiff as ever it did; and my red excoriated arse excited and renewed
his very fine prick; but first I insisted upon moving to aunt's arse,
who at the moment was having a last fuck from the Count, and this
incestuous group closed our orgies on this occasion, for we left for
town the next day.

After breakfast in the morning I slipt into the Dale's room, and had a
parting fuck both with her and Ellen. Harry came in while we were at
work, Ellen under the Dale gamahuching her, and I above administering a
rear adieu. Harry stopped us for a moment until he could withdraw Ellen
and take her place, that he might have a parting fuck with his loved
mother, who thus had the two pricks she most loved in the world into
her together. We drew our pleasure out to the utmost length our lust
would allow of and spent in the most ecstatic joy that poor human
nature could support.

Aunt had gone to the Count's bedroom at the very time we were meeting
in Mrs. Dale's. Notwithstanding which, her insatiable cunt made her
draw me into her sanctum downstairs for a final fuck at the last moment
of our parting.

Harry Dale staying behind to pass a week at home with his mother, the
adorable Frankland, the Count and I returned to town together. On the
journey up we agreed to dine at Very's in Regent Street, and have a
comparatively quiet night all together at my chambers, which we did,
luxuriating in having the glorious naked body of the delicious
Frankland between us. After we had each bedewed both her front and rear
orifices with our life's balmy essence, we slept soundly till morning,
when we renewed our double offerings on those glorious and delicious
altars, then breakfasted.

This was the last occasion but one of our having the Count, whose time
for departure to his own country was drawing near.

He left that day on a visit to a family in Scotland, whose son and heir
was really the fruit of his loins.

On his return some fortnight later we again passed a night with our
exquisite friend the Frankland, and being both fresh from the country,
we administered so many delicious coups to both apertures as quite
contented her salacious love of prick. We parted next day with our
loved friend the Count, but not for the last time, as I shall relate in
its proper place--a delightful visit we paid to him in his old
ancestral castle, and an after-rencontre with him and his sister in
Turin.

I saw my loved Frankland to her home and left town myself the same
afternoon for my home in the country, to arrange for various repairs
and alterations required on the property.

I took my dear friend MacCallum with me. We spent a pleasant ten days,
varied with a visit first from one of my sisters and then from the
other, for two nights each, and jolly nights we spent fucking in every
way.

Mary's belly was up, but she declared it only made fucking more
delicious than ever to her, still more with the _double jouissance_, in
which she preferred the smaller prick of MacCallum to mine in her arse.

When Eliza came she stayed a third night, and taxed our powers to the
utmost; she was such a glutton for fuck on this occasion, declaring
that her husband's want of power, as well as tact, left her more lewd
after his fucking her than she was before, so that she had been forced
by the excess of her unsatisfied lust produced by her husband to have
recourse to the fine prick of her footman, a powerful young fellow,
otherwise very plain, and not likely to inspire jealousy to any
husband, but with whom she rarely could do more than get a rack-off in
a hurry, which was far from satisfaction sufficient for her hot
passions. It was this that made her revel with such insatiable desires
in the possession of our almost untiring pricks. Differing from Mary in
her love of rear-fucking, it was my big prick she loved best to have in
her arse, while MacCallum's lesser shaft satisfied her less exacting
cunt. She was certainly one of the lewdest creatures ever made, wildly
lascivious and full of variety. She had the most engaging ways with
her, and could raise a prick from the dead. She was a worthy pupil of
the Frankland, and had all the love and longing for prick, and cunt
too, that our deliciously insatiable aunt was so famous for. She grew
older, and becoming one of the most desirable women, I never tired of
fucking her in both orifices whenever the opportunity presented itself.

I returned to town just in time to have a parting orgy with the Count
and the Frankland in my chambers, which I before said was a night of
the wildest orgies.

MacCallum was called to the country by the illness of some of his
family, and was absent for six months, so I was left with Harry to have
occasional orgies together with the Frankland three times a week, and
with the Nichols and Ann or Jane once a week by way of variety, but as
they only came for a morning visit, these were not exhausting
encounters, so that we lay comparatively in fallow, till the return of
the Benson and Egerton, when they and the lovely Frankland taxed us to
the utmost twice or thrice a week.

Thus time progressed. The Frankland had been a widow for nearly two
years when she proposed to travel for two or three years without
returning in the interval to England. She wished me to accompany her,
and made a most surprising and unexpected proposition to me.

She said, "Charlie, my own darling, I love you more dearly than ever.
It is true I am considerably older than you, but you are now
twenty-five years of age, and, therefore, a full-grown man. I wish to
endow you with all my great wealth, and I offer you my hand in
marriage. Do not suppose I want to monopolize this dear prick." (We
were in bed naked, and had just concluded a most exquisite fuck.) "No,
with our love of variety we will still seek it out, but as husband and
wife we can do so with perfect ease and safety; whereas if not married
and travelling together we should be compromised at every city we stop
at. What say you, my darling Charlie?" Here she threw herself on my
bosom with loving eyes upraised to mine.

"Say, beloved of my soul! Why, look how the very idea has raised my
prick to instant life. If anything in the world could delight me more
than another it is your generous noble offer. To dedicate my life to
the woman I love more than any other is a joy greater than I can
express. I thank you from my soul, adorable creature as you are. Oh!
come to my arms as my future wife and let us revel in the glorious
idea."

Such was the way in which this happiness was conferred on me, which
endured for long years, although, alas, my widowed heart now all
hopelessly ever regrets that most lovable of women and best of wives.
Oh, what happiness it was as long as I possessed her.

We were married in a few days after this by special license.

The Benson and the Egerton were present and Harry Dale was my best man.
We adjourned to her house, now ours, to breakfast. They also stayed to
dinner and slept at our house, that we might celebrate our marriage
with a parting orgy, for we announced to our friends that in marrying,
so far from renouncing our orgies, we meant our union to promote ever
varying ones, and that on our return we would renew the exquisite ones
we had so often enjoyed with them.

Harry and I did all we could on that happy occasion to satisfy three of
the finest women in the world, whose delicious power of fucking was
never surpassed and rarely equalled.

Oh! we had such a delicious night. As to the women, their amorous
gamahuching of each other was ever renewed, and was most exciting to
see.

After breakfast that morning they stopped to see us off, and threw old
slippers after us for luck.

We posted down to aunt's for a day and a night on our way to the
continent.

They were, of course, delighted with my marriage as bringing great
wealth into the family, indeed, my darling presented aunt with a cheque
for £1000.

Mrs. Dale and Ellen came over, and we had another delicious night's
orgy, in which all exerted themselves to the utmost.

We parted from dear aunt and uncle, Mrs. Dale and Ellen, after
luncheon, and posted down to Dover; slept at Birmingham's Hotel, where
we had our real first night's fucking all to ourselves, enjoyed it in
moderation but in every endearment that two lovers could devise.

We crossed to Calais next day.

The sea was smooth at first, but we found it after passing the Foreland
very rough. My dear wife suffered severely; fortunately I myself never
felt better, and was thus able to devote every attention to the dear
sufferer. It left her even after we landed with nausea and a severe
headache, so that night at Devaux's Hotel we slept each in one of the
separate beds in the same room, as is usual in French hotels, and
indeed in continental hotels in general.

My darling wife was far from feeling well next morning, but fancied
that posting on to Abbeville would rather tend to recovery than
otherwise. We accomplished this easily between breakfast and dinner,
found a very comfortable hotel with very fair cooking and excellent
wines. My wife enjoyed her dinner, and felt something like herself
after it. We slept together by bringing the two beds side by side, but
only took a single fuck before sleeping, and next morning a double one.

We spent the day at Abbeville, wandering through its quaint streets and
seeing its fine unfinished cathedral. The following day we posted to
Amiens, visiting its very beautiful cathedral, posted the following day
to Beauvais, again slept, passed next day there, and on the following
day posted up to Paris, and drove to Meurice's Hotel in the rue de
Rivoli.

We had previously written for a set of rooms _au premier_, overlooking
the Tuileries Gardens, with orders to have dinner ready at a given
hour. We arrived just in time to change our travelling costume and to
sit down to a luxurious dinner. Here, as we had ordered, our bedroom
contained a proper large bed for both to sleep in. This hotel being
much used by the English was furnished with French taste but English
comfort.

The dilatory manner of our journey, the agreeable breaks we had made at
different interesting towns had quite restored my beloved wife to all
her accustomed health, energy, and lubricity. The comfort of the bed,
the stimulating cheer, and the excellent wine also nerved me to meet
her utmost lasciviousness, and we had a night such as we used to have
when I first had her in my mother's spare bedroom.

We recalled those happy days, and revelled in every lascivious act of
the hottest lust. My adored wife excelled herself, and I myself was
fully up to the mark; we fucked ourselves to sleep, with prick left
soaking in her deliciously tightest of cunts, so that on awaking in
full daylight I found my cock stiff standing in her cunt, which was
giving it most delicious pressures, quite involuntarily, for the
darling was not yet awake. I roused her by gentle movements, and the
frigging of her long delicious clitoris, so that she awoke to joys of
which we never tired. On this occasion natural wants compelled a
temporary withdrawal to relieve our distended bladders. We found that
it was already past ten o'clock, so she smacked my bare bottom and sent
me off to my dressing-room, that both might get ready for breakfast,
for which our appetites were already craving. I slipt on a
dressing-gown, went into our sitting-room, rang for a waiter, and
ordered breakfast to be got ready immediately, so that by the time we
were dressed it was on the table all smoking hot, and we sat down and
did full justice to it.

We spent several days in visiting the wonders of Paris.

I had heard of a famous bawd residing at No. 60, rue Richelieu, and
another, Madame Leriche, in the rue de Marc, where they had rooms, from
which, through cleverly arranged peep-holes, any operation in the next
room could be distinctly seen.

Madame Leriche's girls were instructed to get the finest men they could
see in the street, to bring them in, and there to pretend to be so
struck with their beauty that they would not be content without having
them quite naked, stripping themselves also. When quite naked they
caressed their pricks, waltzed round the room, taking care to stop
exactly opposite each hidden opening, and there caress, handle, and
show the standing prick to any looker-on, eventually fucking in such a
position as all peepers could fully see and enjoy.

The fun of the thing was the perfect unconsciousness of the men as to
the purpose of all these gyrations. They took it proudly as a homage to
their virility, and the power of their charms over their new conquest,
and were doubly lustful in consequence, little imagining it was all a
well-acted scene, got up for an exhibition to please others, and show
all their virile gifts. Sometimes both man and girl were very
attractive, and I used to fuck my loved Florence while in the act of
peeping.

The place where we sat to see was a small narrow room, with just space
for a couch on one side and two chairs at the end, next to each
peep-hole. Three other similar narrow rooms looked into the same
operating room.

One day we had an exciting fuck from the exhibition of a very fine man
fucking his girl with a splendid prick. We were kneeling on the couch
with my prick soaking in the quietude of the after-joy. We heard a
scuffling with suppressed bawdy exclamations on the other side of the
thin partition next to us. We, too, had made use of bawdiness. I had
whispered to Florence how deliciously tight her hairy cunt was, and how
splendidly her enormous arse moved below my eyes as I fucked her.

We now discovered that the couple next to us had overheard us, for we
could just hear her ask if her arse's movement and size pleased him as
much as their neighbour's seemed to have done.

"Oh, yes, my angel, you wriggle your immense arse to perfection, and
your cunt is almost too tight."

"Then fuck on with your splendid prick as hard as our neighbours were
at it." A happy thought seized me. I put my finger to my lip to give
the hint to Florence, slipped out into the passage and peeped through
the keyhole, which commanded the whole of the narrow room. I beheld a
handsome man fucking a superbly stout woman, kneeling with her head
down low, but towards the door. Her arse uncovered and held aloft was a
remarkably fine one, wriggling indeed to perfection.

I slipped back, described it to my dear wife, and suggested our
speaking to them through the partition as soon as they were done, to
avow that we had heard all their goings-on, as they had ours, and to
propose that we should form a _partie carrée_.

Florence jumped at the idea, just as their sighs and shaking of their
couch against the partition announced the grand final crisis.

We allowed them some minutes for the after-satisfaction; we then heard
the lady beg him to do it again as she felt his cock was stiffening
within her cunt.

"No wonder," said he, "when your delicious tight cunt is giving me such
exquisite pressures."

We thought this a happy moment, as they were both in a state of
lasciviousness; so tapping at the partition, and raising my voice just
sufficient to be clearly heard, I said--

"You have been following our example, and seem as lustful as we are,
suppose we join parties and exchange partners. I am sure you must be
two desirable persons, and you will find us worth knowing. It will be a
novelty exciting to all, and will lead or not, as it may be, to a
further acquaintance or just a momentary caprice. What say you?"

A pause and a whisper was followed by--

"Eh! bien, nous acceptons."

"Come to us, for I am half undressed," cried the gentleman. 
 
 
Read the ending >> The Romance of Lust: A Classic Victorian Erotic Novel (1873
 

No comments: